This is a modern-English version of The Journal, with Other Writings of John Woolman, originally written by Woolman, John.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

EVERYMAN'S LIBRARY
EDITED BY ERNEST RHYS
BIOGRAPHY
JOHN WOOLMAN'S JOURNAL
WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY
VIDA D. SCUDDER
WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY
VIDA D. SCUDDER
THE PUBLISHERS OF EVERYMAN'S LIBRARY WILL BE PLEASED TO SEND FREELY TO ALL APPLICANTS A LIST OF THE PUBLISHED AND PROJECTED VOLUMES TO BE COMPRISED UNDER THE FOLLOWING TWELVE HEADINGS:
THE PUBLISHERS OF EVERYMAN'S LIBRARY WILL BE HAPPY TO SEND FREE OF CHARGE TO ALL REQUESTS A LIST OF THE PUBLISHED AND PLANNED VOLUMES THAT WILL FALL UNDER THE FOLLOWING TWELVE CATEGORIES:
TRAVEL
SCIENCE
FICTION
THEOLOGY & PHILOSOPHY
HISTORY
CLASSICAL
FOR YOUNG PEOPLE
ESSAYS
ORATORY
POETRY & DRAMA
BIOGRAPHY
ROMANCE
TRAVEL
SCIENCE
FICTION
THEOLOGY & PHILOSOPHY
HISTORY
CLASSICAL
FOR YOUNG READERS
ESSAYS
SPEECHES
POETRY & DRAMA
BIOGRAPHY
ROMANCE
IN TWO STYLES OF BINDING, CLOTH, FLAT BACK, COLOURED TOP, AND LEATHER, ROUND CORNERS, GILT TOP.
IN TWO STYLES OF BINDING: CLOTH WITH A FLAT BACK AND A COLORED TOP, AND LEATHER WITH ROUNDED CORNERS AND A GILT TOP.
London: J. M. DENT & SONS, Ltd.
New York: E. P. DUTTON & CO.
London: J. M. DENT & SONS, Ltd.
NYC: E. P. DUTTON & CO.

A GOOD BOOK IS THE PRECIOUS LIFE-BLOOD OF A MASTER SPIRIT EMBALMED & TREASURED UPON PURPOSE TO A LIFE BEYOND LIFE—MILTON
A GOOD BOOK IS THE VALUABLE LIFE-BLOOD OF A MASTER SPIRIT PRESERVED & TREASURED FOR A LIFE BEYOND LIFE—MILTON
THE JOURNAL with other WRITINGS of JOHN WOOLMAN
LONDON: PUBLISHED
by J. M. DENT & SONS Ltd
AND IN NEW YORK
BY E. P. DUTTON & CO
LONDON: PUBLISHED
by J. M. DENT & SONS Ltd.
AND IN NEW YORK
BY E. P. DUTTON & CO
All rights reserved
All rights reserved
INTRODUCTION
From the days of Charles Lamb to those of Dr. Eliot of Harvard, the unique charm and worth of the Journal of John Woolman have been signalled by a thinker of distinction here and there, and the book, if not widely known, has quietly found its way to many hearts and been reprinted in sundry editions. The more formal works, however, in which this gentle and audacious eighteenth-century Quaker-preacher spoke out his whole careful mind have been for the most part neglected. These works are sometimes prosy, always indifferent to style in their unflinching quest for "pure wisdom," often concerned with the dead issue of negro slavery. Yet even in this last case they have much value as historic documents; no full knowledge of Woolman's spirit is possible without them; and not to know that spirit in its entirety is a distinct loss.
From the time of Charles Lamb to Dr. Eliot at Harvard, the unique appeal and significance of the Journal of John Woolman have caught the attention of notable thinkers here and there. While the book might not be widely recognized, it has quietly touched many hearts and has been reprinted in various editions. However, the more formal works in which this gentle and bold eighteenth-century Quaker preacher expressed his thoughtful ideas have mostly been overlooked. These writings can be somewhat dull, always lackluster in style as they relentlessly pursue "pure wisdom," and often deal with the outdated topic of slavery. Yet, even in this last regard, they hold substantial value as historical documents; one cannot fully understand Woolman's spirit without them, and missing out on that spirit in its entirety is a significant loss.
The present edition, while making no claim to critical completeness, presents the main accessible body of Woolman's writings. Here is a well of purest water, "dug deep," to use the Quaker phrase. The mere limpidity of the water will be joy enough for some: others gazing into it may feel that they see down to the proverbial Truth—the very origin of things, the foundations of the moral universe.
The current edition, while not claiming to be fully comprehensive, offers the main accessible collection of Woolman's writings. Here is a well of the purest water, "dug deep," as the Quaker saying goes. For some, the sheer clarity of the water will be enough joy; others looking into it may feel like they are peering down to the ultimate Truth—the very origins of everything, the foundations of the moral universe.
A studious moderation of utterance is the first quality to make itself felt in Woolman's works. To casual or jaded readers who crave the word-embroidery, the heightened note, of the romanticist in style, the result may seem colourless. Here is a lack of adjectives, an entire absence of emphasis, a systematic habit of under-statement that, in the climax of a paragraph or the crisis of an emotion, seems at times almost ludicrous. Yet to the reader of severer taste, this very absence of emphasis, so quaintly sober, so sensitive in its unfaltering reticence, becomes the choicest grace of Woolman's style. As is the style, so is the man.[Pg viii] Woolman "studied to be quiet," and his steady self-discipline was rewarded by a scrupulous yet instinctive control over the finest shades of verity in speech and life. In the youthful trouble of deep religious feeling, when he "went to meetings," as he expressively tell us, "in an awful frame of mind," he spoke a few words one day, under "a strong exercise of spirit." "But not keeping close to the divine opening, I said more than was required of me, and being soon sensible of my error, I was afflicted in mind some weeks, without any light or comfort, even to such a degree that I could not take satisfaction in anything." The mistake was not often repeated; for as he writes in memorable words: "As I was thus humbled and disciplined under the Cross, my understanding became more strengthened to distinguish the pure spirit that inwardly moves upon the heart, and taught me to wait in silence, sometimes for many weeks together, till I felt that rise which prepares the creature to stand like a trumpet through which the Lord speaks to His flock." A fine passage towards the end of the Journal shows that the danger of speaking without this "pure spirit" was ever present to him. "Many love to hear eloquent orations, and if there is not a careful attention to the Gift, men who have once laboured in the pure Gospel ministry, growing weary of suffering and ashamed of appearing weak, may kindle a fire, compass themselves about with sparks, and walk in the light, not of Christ who is under suffering, but of that fire which they going from the Gift have kindled; and that in hearers which has gone from the meek suffering state into the worldly wisdom, may be warmed with this fire and speak highly of these labours. In this journey, a labour hath attended my mind that the ministers amongst us may be preserved in the meek, feeling life of truth." No man could so keenly analyse the snare of fluency and popularity, who had not spent a life on guard. The reserve of his writings is a natural consequence. One searches these pages in vain, often controversial though they be, for a single point in which the note is forced or emotion escapes control.
A careful way of expressing himself is the first quality that stands out in Woolman's work. To casual or bored readers who want the flowery language and dramatic flair of romanticism, his style may seem bland. There's a noticeable lack of adjectives, no emphasis, and a consistent habit of understatement that can sometimes feel almost ridiculous, especially at the peak of a paragraph or emotional moment. Yet, for readers with a more refined taste, this very absence of emphasis—so uniquely sober and sensitive in its unwavering restraint—becomes the most appealing aspect of Woolman's style. As his style reflects, so does the man. Woolman "studied to be quiet," and his constant self-discipline led to a careful yet instinctive control over the subtleties of truth in both speech and life. In his youthful struggle with deep religious feelings, when he "went to meetings," as he expresses it, "in an awful frame of mind," he once spoke a few words under "a strong exercise of spirit." "But not staying true to the divine guidance, I said more than necessary, and realizing my mistake soon after, I felt troubled for weeks, without any light or comfort, to the point that I couldn't find joy in anything." This mistake wasn’t often repeated; as he writes in memorable words: "As I was humbled and disciplined under the Cross, my understanding grew stronger to recognize the pure spirit that moves within the heart, teaching me to wait in silence, sometimes for many weeks, until I felt that rise that prepares the soul to stand like a trumpet through which the Lord speaks to His flock." A striking passage near the end of the Journal shows that the threat of speaking without this "pure spirit" was always on his mind. "Many love to hear eloquent speeches, and without careful attention to the Gift, men who have once ministered in the pure Gospel may, after growing tired of suffering and feeling embarrassed to appear weak, ignite a fire, surround themselves with sparks, and walk in the light—not of Christ who suffers, but of that fire they have started after moving away from the Gift; and those who have shifted from the humble, suffering state to worldly wisdom may feel warmed by this fire and speak highly of these efforts. Throughout this journey, I have felt the burden that our ministers may remain anchored in the humble, heartfelt truth.” No one could analyze the trap of fluency and popularity so sharply without having lived a life on guard. The reserve in his writings is a natural outcome. One searches these pages in vain, often controversial though they may be, for a single instance where the tone feels forced or emotion escapes control.[Pg viii]
Yet the emotional intensity concealed beneath this[Pg ix] equable habit of soul, is evident from the first line to the last. In the fine phrase of the Friends after his death, Woolman "underwent many deep baptisms;" how deep, the Journal reveals. He was a man of impassioned tenderness. Even as a child he saw "that as the mind is moved by an inward principle to love God as an invisible, incomprehensible Being, so by the same principle it is moved to love Him in all his manifestations in the visible world. That as by his breath the flame of life has kindled in all sensible creatures, to say that we love God as unseen and at the same time exercise cruelty toward the least creature moving by his life, or by life derived from Him, is a contradiction in itself." Woolman did not only say these things, he felt them. He is among the great lovers of the world. His tenderness for animals was always keen, from the days in which, as he has told us, he suffered childish remorse from having killed a robin, to his last voyage, when in the midst of personal suffering, he noted pityingly the dull and pining appearance of the "dunghill fowls" on board. "I believe," he writes, "where the love of God is verily perfected, a care will be felt that we do not lessen that sweetness of life in the animal creation which the great Creator intends for them under our government."
Yet the emotional intensity hidden beneath this[Pg ix] calm demeanor is clear from the first line to the last. In the eloquent words of his friends after his death, Woolman "went through many profound experiences;" how deep they were, the Journal shows. He was a man of passionate compassion. Even as a child, he understood "that just as the mind is moved by an inner principle to love God as an invisible, incomprehensible Being, it is also moved by the same principle to love Him in all His forms in the visible world. To claim that we love God as unseen while being cruel to the least creature that lives by His life or life derived from Him is a contradiction." Woolman didn't just speak these words; he lived them. He is among the great lovers of the world. His compassion for animals was always strong, from the times when, as he recounted, he felt guilty for killing a robin, to his last journey, when despite his own suffering, he noticed with concern the sad and listless state of the "dunghill fowls" on board. "I believe," he writes, "where the love of God is truly perfected, there will be a concern to not diminish the sweetness of life in the animal creation that the great Creator intends for them under our care."
He who so sympathised with the robin and the cock was filled with a yearning compassion for the sorrows of humanity. Of him as of Shelley it might well be said, "He was as a nerve o'er which do creep the else unfelt oppressions of the earth." We read of his appetite failing through the agitation of his mind over human pain and his relations to it. In his last illness he broke forth in words that might have been uttered by S. Catherine of Siena: "O Lord my God! The amazing horrors of darkness were gathered around me and covered me all over, and I saw no way to go forth. I felt the misery of my fellow-beings separated from the divine harmony, and it was heavier than I could bear; I was crushed down under it." All great lovers are great sufferers: Woolman was no exception to the rule.
He who felt such a connection with the robin and the rooster was deeply compassionate towards the struggles of humanity. Like Shelley, it could rightly be said of him, "He was like a nerve that reacts to the otherwise unnoticeable burdens of the world." We read that his appetite diminished due to his distress over human suffering and his connection to it. During his final illness, he expressed thoughts that could have been spoken by St. Catherine of Siena: "O Lord my God! The terrifying darkness surrounded me and engulfed me completely, and I saw no way out. I felt the pain of my fellow beings disconnected from the divine harmony, and it was more than I could endure; I was crushed by it." All great lovers are also great sufferers: Woolman was no exception to this truth.
If he knew deep sorrow he knew deep joy also, as all must do who like him "live under the Cross and simply[Pg x] follow the operations of Truth." More is unuttered than uttered in the Journal, yet through its silences we may read an inner experience akin to that of Bunyan or Pascal. Like these great protagonists of the Spirit, he knew a peace given "not as the world giveth." For peace can be where ease is not. Decorous son of an unillumined century, John Woolman is of the company of the Mystics. He is of those led by the Shepherd of Souls beside the still waters. He has suggested his own secret: "Some glances of real beauty may be seen in their faces who dwell in true meekness. There is a harmony in the sound of that voice to which Divine love gives utterance, and some appearance of right order in their temper and conduct whose passions are regulated. Yet all these do not fully show forth that inward life to those who have not felt it; but this white stone and new name are known rightly only to such as have them." "Pure" is the central word of the Journal, and the beauty of pure contemplative quietude is the final impression conveyed by this record so full of anguish over the sorrows of humanity and of unflinching witness against wickedness, borne at the expense of the crucifixion of the natural man.
If he experienced deep sorrow, he also knew deep joy, just like anyone else who, like him, "lives under the Cross and simply[Pg x] follows the operations of Truth." There’s more left unsaid than said in the Journal, yet through its silences, we can glimpse an inner experience similar to that of Bunyan or Pascal. Like these great spiritual figures, he understood a peace given "not as the world gives." Peace can exist where comfort does not. As a well-mannered son of a unenlightened age, John Woolman belongs with the Mystics. He is among those guided by the Shepherd of Souls beside still waters. He has hinted at his own secret: "Some glimpses of real beauty may be seen in the faces of those who truly embody meekness. There is a harmony in the sound of that voice to which Divine love expresses itself, and a sense of order in the demeanor and behavior of those whose passions are in check. Yet none of this fully reveals that inner life to those who have not experienced it; but this white stone and new name are understood only by those who possess them." "Pure" is the key word of the Journal, and the beauty of pure contemplative calm is the final impression left by this account, so filled with anguish over humanity's suffering and an unwavering stand against evil, all at the expense of the crucifixion of the natural self.
A chief value of Woolman's works consists in his serene application of his mystical intuitions to the affairs of this world. He who "dwelt deep in an inward stillness" studied his age with a penetrating sagacity that allowed no evasions. The man so carefully on his guard against extravagance was a reformer who pushed his demands, as some would think, almost beyond the border of sanity. No temper was ever more opposed to fanaticism: yet many readers may question whether he escaped the doom of the fanatic. And the most pertinent reason for a re-issue of his works at this juncture is, that in our own day so many hearts are troubled like his own. A generation seeking guidance on the path of social duty will find here a precursor of Ruskin and Tolstoi, a man whose thought, despite the quaintness of his diction, has a quite extraordinary modernness, and whose searchings of conscience are none of them familiar.[Pg xi]
A key value of Woolman's works lies in his calm application of his spiritual insights to real-world issues. He who "dwelt deep in an inward stillness" analyzed his time with a keen insight that allowed for no excuses. The man who was so careful to avoid extravagance was a reformer who pushed his demands, as some might say, almost to the edge of reason. No temperament was ever more opposed to fanaticism: yet many readers may wonder if he managed to avoid the fate of the fanatic. The most relevant reason for reissuing his works now is that so many hearts today are troubled like his were. A generation looking for guidance on social responsibility will find here a precursor to Ruskin and Tolstoi, a man whose ideas, despite the oddity of his language, are remarkably modern, and whose moral struggles are anything but familiar.[Pg xi]
The main contemporary issue that agitated Woolman was of course the slave-trade, and he was long regarded all but exclusively as a herald of the anti-slavery movement. But the Fabian Society did well to suggest, in reprinting one of his tracts, the broader scope of his thinking. It will be evident from this edition that his horror of chattel slavery was one incident only in that general attitude toward civilisation which drew from him the bitter cry: "Under a sense of deep revolt and an overflowing stream of unrighteousness, my life has often been a life of mourning." The central evil which he opposed was, in brief, the exploitation of labour: the ideal which he sought was a society in which no man should need to profit by the degradation of his fellow-men. For economic analysis of the modern type one naturally looks in vain; moral analysis of social relations has, however, rarely been carried farther. These little essays "On Labour," "On the Right Use of the Lord's Outward Gifts," "On Loving our Neighbour," these "Considerations on the True Harmony of Mankind," this "Word of Remembrance and Caution to the Rich," reveal through their quaint formalities of phrase a searching spirit not to be outdone to-day.
The main current issue that troubled Woolman was the slave trade, and he was long seen almost exclusively as a champion of the anti-slavery movement. However, the Fabian Society was right to point out, when reprinting one of his tracts, the broader scope of his thoughts. It will be clear from this edition that his abhorrence of chattel slavery was just one aspect of his overall perspective on civilization, which inspired him to express his deep anguish: "With a profound sense of revolt and a flood of injustice, my life has often been a life of mourning." The central wrongdoing he fought against was essentially the exploitation of labor: the ideal he envisioned was a society where no one would need to benefit from the degradation of others. While one would naturally look in vain for modern economic analysis, moral examination of social relations has rarely been taken further. These short essays "On Labour," "On the Right Use of the Lord's Outward Gifts," "On Loving our Neighbour," these "Considerations on the True Harmony of Mankind," and this "Word of Remembrance and Caution to the Rich," reveal through their charmingly formal language a probing spirit that is still unmatched today.
Woolman felt "a concern in the spring of pure love, that all who have plenty of outward substance may example others in the right use of things, may carefully look into the condition of poor people, and beware of exacting of them in regard to their wages." He was solicitous, as many have been since his day, over the perplexities of those who seek to combine a due care for their own families with consideration for the wage-earner, "in a fruitful land where the wages bear so small a proportion to the necessaries of life." "There are few if any," he says truly, "could behold their fellow-creatures lie long in distress and forbear to help them when they could do it without any inconvenience; but customs, requiring much labour to support them, do often lie heavy upon the poor, while they who live in these customs are so entangled in a multitude of unnecessary concerns that they think but little of the hardships the poor people go through." To lessen these "concerns," thus to emancipate the labourer from a part[Pg xii] of the crushing burden of production, became his central thought. "In beholding that unnecessary toil which many go through in supporting outward greatness, and procuring delicacies; in beholding how the true calmness of life is changed into hurry, and that many, by eagerly pursuing outward treasure, are in danger of withering as to the inward state of the mind; in meditating on the works of this spirit, and the desolations it makes among the professors of Christianity, I may thankfully acknowledge that I often feel pure love beget longings in my mind for the exaltation of the peaceable Kingdom of Christ, and an engagement to labour according to the Gift bestowed upon me for promoting an humble, plain, temperate way of living."
Woolman felt "a deep concern from a place of pure love, that everyone who has a lot of material wealth can set an example for others in using things properly, can carefully examine the situation of poor people, and should be cautious about underpaying them." He was worried, as many have been since then, about the struggles of those trying to balance caring for their own families while being considerate of workers, "in a fertile land where wages are so low compared to the cost of living." "Few, if any," he rightly states, "can watch their fellow human beings suffer for long and resist helping them when they can do so without any trouble; however, societal customs, which require much effort to maintain, often weigh heavily on the poor, while those who benefit from these customs get so caught up in a multitude of unnecessary concerns that they hardly think about the hardships faced by poor people." To reduce these "concerns," and to free the laborer from part[Pg xii] of the heavy burden of production, became his main focus. "In observing the unnecessary struggles many endure to support outward success and acquire luxuries; in seeing how the true peace of life gets turned into chaos, and how many, in their pursuit of material wealth, risk losing their inner peace; in reflecting on the effects of this mindset and the destruction it brings among those who practice Christianity, I can gratefully recognize that I often feel pure love inspiring a longing in my mind for the advancement of Christ's peaceful Kingdom, and a call to work according to the Gift given to me to promote a simple, humble, and moderate lifestyle."
The Simple Life is then Woolman's plea, and the necessity for social sacrifice the burden of his teaching. This plea he presents with no vagueness or Wagnerian sentimentality, but with an alarming precision of outline.
The Simple Life is Woolman's appeal, and the need for social sacrifice is the core of his teaching. He presents this appeal with clear, unambiguous precision, avoiding any vague or overly sentimental expressions.
No man ever described better the insensible growth of worldly convention into that custom which "lies upon us with a weight heavy as frost and deep almost as life." Noting the gradual lapse of the Friends from their earlier standards of unworldliness, he says: "These things, though done in calmness without any show of disorder, do yet deprave the mind in like manner and with as great certainty as prevailing cold congeals water." And again, "Though the change from day to night is by a motion so gradual as scarcely to be perceived, yet when night is come we behold it very different from the day; and thus as people become wise in their own eyes and prudent in their own sight, customs rise up from the spirit of this world and spread, by little and little, till a departure from the simplicity that is in Christ becomes as distinguishable as light from darkness to such who are crucified to the world." So the generations as they pass slip further and further from "pure wisdom," for "the customs of their parents, and their neighbours, working upon their minds, and they from thence conceiving ideas of things and modes of conduct, the entrance into their hearts becomes in a great measure shut up against the gentle movings of Uncreated[Pg xiii] Purity." Woolman is too wise to feel resentment against those so hardened; rather he says, "Compassion hath filled my heart toward my fellow-creatures involved in customs, grown up in the wisdom of this world, which is foolishness with God."
No one has ever described better how slowly worldly convention turns into that custom which "feels as heavy as frost and almost as deep as life." Observing how the Friends gradually moved away from their earlier ideals of simplicity, he says: "These actions, though carried out calmly and without any signs of disorder, still corrupt the mind just as surely as cold freezes water." And again, "Though the transition from day to night happens so gradually that it's hardly noticeable, once night falls, we see it as very different from day; similarly, as people grow wise in their own eyes and prudent in their own judgment, customs emerge from the spirit of this world and spread little by little, until moving away from the simplicity found in Christ becomes as clear as light and darkness to those who are detached from the world." So, as generations continue, they drift further away from "pure wisdom," for "the customs of their parents and neighbors influence their minds, leading them to form ideas about things and ways of acting, closing off their hearts to the gentle urges of Uncreated[Pg xiii] Purity." Woolman is too wise to feel bitter towards those who are so hardened; instead, he says, "Compassion has filled my heart for my fellow beings caught up in customs, raised in the wisdom of this world, which is foolishness to God."
To his own spirit, we may well apply the description in the little essay on "Merchandising," of the growing sensitiveness among the faithful friends of Christ, who "inwardly breathe that His Kingdom may come on earth" and "learn to be very attentive to the means He may appoint for promoting pure righteousness." His ideal is "that state in which Christ is the Light of our life," so that "our labours stand in the true harmony of society." "In this state," he writes, "a care is felt for a reformation in general, that our own posterity, with the rest of mankind in succeeding ages, may not be entangled by oppressive customs, transmitted to them through our hands." When we consider the deepening desire in our own day to lessen for the next generation that intolerable burden of social compunction which rests upon ourselves, may we perhaps dare to hope that this blessed "state," in which John Woolman himself constantly abode, is becoming common?
To his own spirit, we can certainly apply the description in the short essay on "Merchandising," about the growing sensitivity among the devoted friends of Christ, who "deeply long for His Kingdom to come on earth" and "learn to be very mindful of the means He may establish for promoting genuine righteousness." His ideal is "that state in which Christ is the Light of our life," so that "our efforts align with the true harmony of society." "In this state," he writes, "there is a concern for a general reformation, so that our own descendants, along with the rest of humanity in future generations, may not be trapped by oppressive customs passed down to them through our actions." When we reflect on the increasing desire in our own time to ease the unbearable burden of social pressure that weighs on us, can we perhaps dare to hope that this blessed "state," in which John Woolman himself constantly resided, is becoming more common?
The definite issues suggested in these pages are often surprisingly modern. Now the fine old Quaker is perturbed over the question of tainted money: "Have the gifts and possessions received by me from others been conveyed in a way free from all unrighteousness so far as I have seen?" Now he notes the evils of over-work: "I have observed that too much labour not only makes the understanding dull, but so intrudes upon the harmony of the body that, after ceasing from our toil, we have another to pass through before we can enjoy the sweetness of rest," and proceeds to plead with energy for mercy and moderation in the standard of toil exacted from the poor. "The condition of many who dwell in cities," had "affected him with brotherly sympathy." Again we find him touching on the problem of dangerous trades, or analysing with the puzzle of the pioneer the ancient fallacy that the production of luxuries relieves economic distress—a fallacy to which he gives in quaint phrase a sound refutal. In the[Pg xiv] fifth chapter of the "Word of Remembrance," the interested reader will find a remarkable and very beautiful prophecy of the central principle of the settlement movement. And so we might go on.
The specific issues raised in these pages are often surprisingly relevant today. Now the old Quaker is worried about the matter of tainted money: "Have the gifts and possessions I received from others come to me in a way that is free from all wrongdoing as far as I can tell?" Now he realizes the problems of overwork: "I've noticed that too much labor not only dulls the mind but also disrupts the balance of the body so that, after we stop working, we have to go through another struggle before we can truly enjoy the peace of rest," and he passionately advocates for kindness and moderation in the expectations placed on the poor. "The situation of many living in cities," has "moved him with a sense of brotherhood." Again, we find him addressing the issue of hazardous jobs or dissecting with the curiosity of a pioneer the old myth that producing luxuries eases economic hardships—a myth he disproves in a charming way. In the[Pg xiv] fifth chapter of the "Word of Remembrance," interested readers will discover a remarkable and beautifully articulated prophecy of the core idea of the settlement movement. And so we could continue.
In the twelfth century Woolman's solution would probably have been found in withdrawal from the evil world to the purity of desert or convent. Not so in the eighteenth. He remained among his brethren, bearing on his heart the burden of the common guilt: he was one of the first people to perceive that the moral sense must control not only our obvious but also our hidden relations with our fellows. And his experience may be said to mark the exact point where the individualism of the Puritan age broke down, unable to stand the strain of the growing sense of social solidarity. The intense but often naïvely self-centred conception of the religious life common to a Bunyan and an Edwardes had proved inadequate, and a new demand for an extension of Christianity to the remotest reaches of practical life, till human society be transformed in its depth and its breadth by a supernatural power, was consciously born.
In the twelfth century, Woolman might have chosen to withdraw from the corrupt world to seek purity in the desert or a convent. But that wasn’t the case in the eighteenth century. He stayed among his peers, carrying the weight of shared guilt: he was one of the first to understand that our moral compass must guide not just our obvious interactions but also our hidden connections with others. His experience can be seen as the turning point where the individualism of the Puritan era crumbled, unable to cope with the increasing awareness of social unity. The intense but often naive focus on personal religious life typical of figures like Bunyan and Edwardes had proven insufficient, and there arose a new need for Christianity to extend into every aspect of practical life, so that human society might be transformed at its core and across its entirety by a higher power.
Yet if Woolman's problem be social, his solution is individualistic. It is found in a resolute endeavour to clear his own life of any dependence on evil. Among the many experiments on the same lines, none more thorough-going is recorded; he pushed consistency to a farther point than Tolstoi or Thoreau. It is the story of this experiment that he tells us in the Journal, with a rare sincerity. See him as a lad, starting out peaceably at his trade of tailor, easily reaching commercial success—for Woolman possessed practical ability,—but "perceiving merchandise to be attended with much cumber," and deciding accordingly not to develop his business. Watch from this time the interaction of two co-operating forces, a craving for personal purity, and a horror of profiting by human pain,—and note that while the first impulse never waned, the second became more and more constraining. The record of his various "concerns" is delightfully human and appealing. He hated to be morally fussy, and the necessity of violating good breeding at the call of conscience caused him acute[Pg xv] distress, for he had an ingrained instinct of good manners. Yet though "the exercise was heavy," he bravely took his elders to task on occasion: refused to accept free hospitality from slave-holders, forcing money on them for his entertainment; and, what is still harder, laboured with his friends. "Thou who travels in the work of the ministry, and art made very welcome by thy friends, it is good for thee to dwell deep that thou mayest feel and understand the spirits of people.... I have seen that in the midst of kindness and smooth conduct, to speak close and home to them who entertain us on points that relate to their outward interest, is hard labour, and sometimes when I have felt Truth lead toward it I have found myself disqualified by a superficial friendship.... To see the failings of our friends and think hard of them without opening that which we ought to open, and still carry a face of friendship, this tends to undermine the foundation of true unity." A man, sensitive, humble, and well-bred as Woolman evidently was, who can write thus, is pretty sure to know "deep exercises that are mortifying to the creaturely will." Some of his concerns, as those relating to the payment of taxes and the entertainment of soldiers, were common to the Friends; others are apparently inventions of his own. As time went on they increased and multiplied, all practically springing from the common root, the desire to avoid the oppression of the poor. Greed and the wish for ease came to seem a root of all evil. Travelling among the Indians, he felt the intimate relation of their misfortunes to the hunger of the English race for luxury and land. The use of dyes harmful to the worker forced him to wear undyed garments, even though to his meek distress a passing fashion of white hats made him run the danger of being confounded with the children of this world. A concern came upon him to go on foot in his preaching journeys: at first apparently that he might, like his Master, appear in the form of a servant; later, that he might have no complicity in the miseries suffered by the little post-boys employed in the chaises. Nothing is clearer to the reader of the Journal than the rapid increase of this holy or foolish sensitiveness. Seeking not to trade with oppressors, he[Pg xvi] refuses to gratify his palate with sugars prepared by the slave labour: under inward pressure to visit the West Indies, he has anxious scruples about taking passage on a ship owned by the West India Company, but decides that he may do so if he pays a sum sufficiently larger than that demanded to compensate the labour involved on another basis than that of slavery. At last—and here the crisis of his experience draws near—he feels himself inwardly bound to go to England; and decides that it is his duty to travel in the steerage, because forsooth the adornments of the cabin have cost vain and degrading labour. The horrors of a steerage passage in those days are well known to us from other sources; and among our visions of the martyrs of Truth we may well preserve the picture of John Woolman, his patient Quaker face upturned at midnight through the hatch, panting for a breath of air. Through the studied quiet of the narrative, the shrinking of the flesh can plainly be felt. The whole story at this point palpitates with a solemn pain and an exceeding peace. As usual, the sufferings of others form the larger part of his pain: he is wracked with sympathy for the sailors, and moved to a grieved indignant study of their temptations and afflictions which is good reading still to-day. Arrived in England, his experience deepens. As usual, he writes without emphasis: but his distress and tenderness are in every line. In a passage that reads as if penned by Engels or Rowntree, he makes careful pitying note of the scale of wages and cost of living, and cries out sharply, "Oh, may the wealthy consider the poor! May those who have plenty lay these things to heart!" We perceive that he is realising with increasing perplexity the extraordinary intricacy with which "the spirit of oppression" is entwined with the most innocent and necessary pursuits. "Silence as to every motion proceeding from the love of money and an humble waiting upon God to know his will concerning us appear necessary: 'He alone is able' so to direct us in our outward employments that pure universal love may shine forth in our proceedings." In "bowedness of spirit" he proceeds northward, and it is evident that the body is growing weaker as he makes his silent laborious way on[Pg xvii] foot, bearing from town to town the message of his Lord. He is offered to drink when thirsty, in silver vessels, and declines, "telling his case with weeping." Disgusted, "being but weakly," with "the scent arising from that filth which more or less infects the air of all closely settled towns," he feels distress both in body and mind with that which is impure, and a longing "that people might come in to cleanness of spirit, cleanness of person, and cleanness about their houses and garments:" noting at the same time, with his accustomed sagacity, that "some who are great carry delicacy to a great height themselves, and yet real cleanliness is not generally promoted." So continues his travail of soul, recorded in these pathetic and illumined pages, and before long the fatal disorder, small-pox, seizes upon him. He dies among strangers after lying patiently through his illness in the spirit of prayer, still saying characteristically to the young apothecary Friend with whom he had "found a freedom to confer," "that if anything should be proposed as to medicine that did not come through defiled channels or oppressive hands, he should be willing to consider and take it so far as he found freedom." Almost his last words, when already he could hardly be understood, are charged with his steady social compunction.
Yet if Woolman's problem is social, his solution is personal. He focuses on making his own life free from any dependence on wrongdoing. Among the many similar efforts, none are as thorough as his; he took consistency further than Tolstoy or Thoreau. This journey is what he shares in the Journal, with a rare honesty. Imagine him as a young man, starting out peacefully as a tailor, easily achieving commercial success—Woolman had practical skills—but noticing that business brought with it too many complications, he chose not to expand. From this point on, watch the interplay of two forces: a desire for personal purity and a horror of benefiting from human suffering. While the first desire never diminished, the second grew increasingly pressing. His various "concerns" are charmingly human and relatable. He hated being overly moralistic, and the need to break social niceties for the sake of his conscience caused him great distress, as he had a deep-rooted sense of good manners. Yet, even though "the burden was heavy," he bravely challenged his elders at times: he rejected free hospitality from slaveholders, insisting on paying for his stay; and, even more challenging, he worked with his friends. "You who travel in the ministry and are welcomed by your friends, it's good for you to reflect deeply so you may understand people's spirits... I've seen that amidst kindness and smooth behavior, addressing those who host us about matters related to their outward interests is hard work, and sometimes, when I’ve felt Truth leading me in that direction, I found myself unable to speak due to shallow friendships... To notice our friends' shortcomings and think harshly about them without addressing what we ought to discuss while still maintaining a friendly demeanor undermines the foundation of true unity." A man as sensitive, humble, and well-mannered as Woolman clearly was, who can write like this, is likely to experience "deep struggles that challenge the will." Some of his concerns, like paying taxes and housing soldiers, were common among the Friends; others seem to be his own inventions. Over time, they multiplied, all stemming from a shared root—the desire to avoid oppressing the poor. Greed and the desire for comfort began to seem like the source of all evil. While traveling among the Indians, he recognized the deep connection between their misfortunes and the English desire for luxury and land. The use of dyes harmful to workers compelled him to wear uncolored clothing, even though he felt uncomfortable about a trend for white hats that risked confusing him with the worldly. He felt compelled to travel on foot during his preaching journeys: at first, seemingly to emulate his Master by appearing as a servant; later, to avoid complicity in the suffering of the young post-boys working in carriages. No reader of the Journal can miss how rapidly this holy or foolish sensitivity grew. Trying not to trade with oppressors, he refused to indulge in sugar that was produced by slave labor; when he felt inwardly pushed to visit the West Indies, he hesitated about taking a ship owned by the West India Company but decided it was acceptable if he paid a significantly higher amount to offset the labor involved on a non-slavery basis. Ultimately—and this is where the crisis of his experience approaches—he felt inwardly compelled to go to England; he determined it was his duty to travel in the steerage, as the luxuries of the cabin were products of vain and demeaning labor. The difficulties of steerage travel during that time are well-known, and among the images of the martyrs of Truth, we can easily envision John Woolman, his patient Quaker face looking up through the hatch at midnight, gasping for air. Despite the carefully composed narrative, you can feel the body's struggle. The entire story at this point throbs with profound pain and deep peace. As usual, the suffering of others constitutes much of his pain: he is tormented by sympathy for the sailors and driven to a heartfelt study of their temptations and hardships, which remains compelling even today. Arriving in England, his experiences deepen. As always, he writes straightforwardly, but his anguish and compassion shine through every line. In a passage that could have been written by Engels or Rowntree, he makes a careful, compassionate note of wage scales and living costs, pleading, "Oh, may the wealthy consider the poor! May those who have abundance take these matters to heart!" We see him realizing with growing confusion how intricately "the spirit of oppression" is woven into the most innocent and essential activities. "Silence regarding every action stemming from the love of money and a humble waiting on God to understand His will regarding us seems necessary: 'He alone is able' to guide us in our outward activities so that pure universal love shines through in our actions." With "a bowed spirit," he travels northward, and it is evident that his body weakens as he silently journeys on foot, carrying the message of his Lord from town to town. When offered a drink while thirsty in silver goblets, he declines, "sharing his case with tears." Disgusted, "being in poor health," by "the stench arising from the filth that taints the air of all closely settled towns," he feels mental and physical distress toward what is impure, and a yearning "for people to embrace spiritual cleanliness, personal cleanliness, and cleanliness in their homes and garments," noting, with his usual insight, that "some who are esteemed elevate delicacy to a high degree, yet true cleanliness is not widely encouraged." His inner turmoil continues, documented in these poignant and illuminating pages, and before long, the deadly smallpox overtakes him. He dies among strangers after patiently enduring his illness in a spirit of prayer, still saying, characteristically, to the young apothecary Friend with whom he had "found the freedom to converse," that if anything were proposed regarding medicine that did not come from tainted sources or oppressive hands, he would be open to considering it as far as he felt free. Almost his last words, when he could barely be understood, echo his consistent social conscience.
Dear John Woolman! Pure and high spirit, incapable of evasion, noteworthy no less for restraint and gentleness than for the resolute determination to translate the undimmed vision of the Perfect Right into terms of our daily existence! Whither would his "concerns" have carried him, had not the Angel of Small-Pox ended his wistful and unrelenting quest? He died in 1772, having lived his life before the industrial revolution, in days which we are wont to envy as simpler and less beset by social problems than our own. Certainly they were days in which the network of human relations was far less intricate than now. Yet the process in which he was engaged reached out to limits beyond our power to scan, and his experience is in one point of view an heroic reductio ad absurdum. No more instructive attempt was ever made to attain personal purity while neither withdrawing from the world nor transforming it. To-day the number is on the increase of persons who[Pg xviii] suffer under the sense of social guilt. All who know such suffering and are inclined to think the conversion of individuals adequate as an ultimate remedy, will do well to ponder these pages. For the conclusion is forced on us that Woolman was in an impasse: and while we love and reverence the heavenly sturdiness of soul possessed by this eighteenth-century saint, we must recognise with amusement touched by tenderness the hopelessness of his efforts to attain personal purity, the ridiculous extremes of isolation into which such a conscientious effort, if logically carried out, would lead us. The definite inference from Woolman's life and thought will be for most modern people the conviction of the hopelessness of the attempt to achieve, by individual means and private effort, a satisfying social righteousness in an unchanged world.
Dear John Woolman! Pure and noble spirit, unable to dodge the truth, notable not only for his restraint and kindness but also for his strong resolve to translate the clear vision of Perfect Right into our everyday lives! Where would his “concerns” have taken him, had the Angel of Small-Pox not cut short his yearning and persistent quest? He died in 1772, having lived his life before the industrial revolution, in times that we often wish were simpler and less burdened by social issues than our own. Certainly, those were days when human relationships were far less complicated than they are now. Yet the work he was involved in reached beyond our understanding, and his experience can be seen as a heroic reductio ad absurdum. No more insightful attempt was ever made to achieve personal purity while neither withdrawing from the world nor changing it. Today, more and more people[Pg xviii] feel the weight of social guilt. All who experience such suffering and think that changing individuals is enough as a final solution should reflect on these pages. For the conclusion is clear: Woolman found himself in an impasse: and while we admire and cherish the steadfastness of this eighteenth-century saint, we must recognize with a mix of amusement and tenderness the futility of his pursuit of personal purity, the absurd extremes of isolation that such a conscientious effort, if followed to its logical end, would lead us to. The clear lesson from Woolman's life and ideas for most modern people will be the realization that attempting to achieve satisfying social justice through individual actions and personal effort in an unchanged world is ultimately hopeless.
After all, Woolman's trouble and sorrow and tumult of spirit, so suggestive, so helpful to modern souls, were transitory. At the heart of his "endless agitation" subsisted a "central peace." His was the grace to know that "deep humility is a strong bulwark," and to "look less at the effects of the labour than at the pure motion and reality of the concern." The gentleness with which he delivered his fiery message was more than a manner due to Quaker training, or even than a result of resolute self-discipline: it was the index of an inward stillness in which his soul dwelt undisturbed. Let us hope that the days may come when the "concern" about profiting by the painful or degrading labour of others will have an interest as exclusively historic as the "concern" about holding slaves has already attained. Tremulously it may be, yet soberly and joyously, many clear-minded and practical people are beginning to hope for such a day. When it comes, the immediate message of Woolman will be less cogent, but he will still continue to be read by those who care for the revelations of a beautiful soul. These pages offer more than light on the path of social duty; they offer fellowship with a spirit that "dwelt deep," and attained an abiding loveliness because responsive through all turmoil of spirit and all outward suffering, to the "gentle movings of Uncreated Purity." "That purity of life,"[Pg xix] wrote he, "which proceeds from faithfulness in following the Spirit of Truth, this habitation has often been opened before me as a place of retirement for the children of the light, where we may stand separated from that which disordereth and confuseth the affairs of society." Such a "place of retirement for the Children of the Light," this book affords.
After all, Woolman's struggles, sadness, and inner turmoil, which resonate so deeply and are beneficial to modern people, were temporary. At the core of his "endless agitation" was a "central peace." He had the wisdom to understand that "deep humility is a strong foundation," and to "focus less on the results of the effort than on the pure intention and reality of the concern." The gentleness with which he delivered his passionate message was more than just a result of Quaker training or disciplined self-control: it reflected an inner calm where his soul rested untroubled. Let’s hope for a future when the concern about benefiting from the painful or degrading work of others will be regarded as purely historical, just like the concern about slavery has become. Cautiously yet with hope, many clear-thinking and practical people are starting to look forward to that day. When it arrives, Woolman’s immediate message may be less urgent, but he will still be read by those who appreciate the insights of a beautiful soul. These pages provide more than guidance on social responsibility; they offer a connection with a spirit that "dwelt deep," and achieved a lasting beauty by being responsive through all inner turmoil and outward suffering, to the "gentle movements of Uncreated Purity." "That purity of life,"[Pg xix] he wrote, "which comes from being faithful to the Spirit of Truth, this place has often been revealed to me as a refuge for the children of the light, where we can stand apart from what disrupts and confuses the affairs of society." This book serves as such a "refuge for the Children of the Light."
VIDA D. SCUDDER.
VIDA D. SCUDDER.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Some Considerations on the Keeping of Negroes, recommended to the Professors of Christianity of every Denomination, Part I., 1754; Part II., 1762; many later issues of both parts; Considerations on Pure Wisdom and Human Policy, on Labour, Schools, and the Right Use of the Lord's Outward Gifts, 1768, and numerous later reprints; Considerations on the True Harmony of Mankind, and how it is to be Maintained, 1770, and later reprints; an Epistle to the Quarterly and Monthly Meetings of Friends, 1772; Remarks on Sundry Subjects, 1773, and later reprints; Serious Considerations on Various Subjects of Importance (containing the four above works, and some expressions of John Woolman in his last illness), 1773; A First Book for Children, 1774 (?); A Journal of the Life, Gospel, Labours, and Christian Experiences of John Woolman, 1774, and many later editions; with Introduction by John Greenleaf Whittier, 1871; with Introduction by A. Smellie, and Appreciation by J. G. Whittier (Books of the Heart), 1898; new century edition, with bibliography, etc., 1900; with foreword by Rev. R. J. Campbell, 1903; A Word of Remembrance and Caution to the Rich, 1793; later editions, published by Fabian Society, 1898, 1908.
Some Considerations on the Keeping of Black People, recommended to the Professors of Christianity of every Denomination, Part I., 1754; Part II., 1762; many later editions of both parts; Considerations on Pure Wisdom and Human Policy, on Labor, Schools, and the Right Use of the Lord's Outward Gifts, 1768, and numerous later reprints; Considerations on the True Harmony of Mankind, and how it is to be Maintained, 1770, and later reprints; an Epistle to the Quarterly and Monthly Meetings of Friends, 1772; Remarks on Various Subjects, 1773, and later reprints; Serious Considerations on Various Subjects of Importance (containing the four above works, and some expressions of John Woolman in his last illness), 1773; A First Book for Children, 1774 (?); A Journal of the Life, Gospel, Labors, and Christian Experiences of John Woolman, 1774, and many later editions; with Introduction by John Greenleaf Whittier, 1871; with Introduction by A. Smellie, and Appreciation by J. G. Whittier (Books of the Heart), 1898; new century edition, with bibliography, etc., 1900; with foreword by Rev. R. J. Campbell, 1903; A Word of Remembrance and Caution to the Rich, 1793; later editions, published by Fabian Society, 1898, 1908.
Letters: Edited by J. Kendall (Letters on Religious Subjects, vol. ii.), 1820; by J. and I. Comly (Friends' Miscellany, vol. i.), 1834; in Journal, and in Friends' Review, vols. v.-xxviii.
Messages: Edited by J. Kendall (Letters on Religious Subjects, vol. ii.), 1820; by J. and I. Comly (Friends' Miscellany, vol. i.), 1834; in Journal, and in Friends' Review, vols. v.-xxviii.
Works: 1774; 5th edition, 1818.
Works: 1774; 5th edition, 1818.
Life: Saint John Woolman (Eclectic Review), 1861; David Duncan, paper read at Manchester Friends' Institute, 1871; Dora Greenwell, 1871; W. Garrett Horder, A Quaker Saint (The Young Man), 1874; reprinted in Quaker Worthies, 1896; T. Green, 1885, with Introduction by H. C. G. Moule, 1897; Sketch of the Life of John Woolman (Booklet Series, No. 6), 1896; in Present Day Papers, vol. iii., 1900; a poem by Bernard Barton, "A Tribute to the Memory of John Woolman," appeared in vol. iii. of The Friend, and references to Woolman are found in Lamb, and in H. Crabb Robinson's Diary.
Life: Saint John Woolman (Eclectic Review), 1861; David Duncan, paper read at Manchester Friends' Institute, 1871; Dora Greenwell, 1871; W. Garrett Horder, A Quaker Saint (The Young Man), 1874; reprinted in Quaker Worthies, 1896; T. Green, 1885, with Introduction by H. C. G. Moule, 1897; Sketch of the Life of John Woolman (Booklet Series, No. 6), 1896; in Present Day Papers, vol. iii., 1900; a poem by Bernard Barton, "A Tribute to the Memory of John Woolman," appeared in vol. iii. of The Friend, and references to Woolman are found in Lamb, and in H. Crabb Robinson's Diary.
CONTENTS
THE JOURNAL
ADVERTISEMENT TO THE READER
The manuscript JOURNAL of our late Friend John Woolman, was ended in England; where he also finished all his Labours. It appears, by a Letter which he sent, in his last Illness, to a Friend in London, that he did not intend the whole should be printed, and that he desired the said Friend to revise what he had written in this Nation, and leave out such Parts as he should think proper. It was, notwithstanding, sent entire, without any Alteration, to America; where it was soon after printed, together with several Tracts which had been published in his Life-time. But, as some Passages in the Journal contain Observations which appear to have been intended as private Memorandums only, and others relate to Circumstances which happened in his native Country, not expedient to be preserved on Record in this Nation, it is apprehended that the following Abridgement of it will be acceptable to Friends, and may be of general Service; and, as many weighty Arguments and pertinent Advices, relative to Slavery and the Oppression of the Negroes in the Plantations, are contained in the Journal, it was therefore apprehended that two small Tracts on that Subject might be omitted in this Abridgement.[Pg 4]
The manuscript JOURNAL of our late friend John Woolman was completed in England, where he also wrapped up all his work. A letter he sent during his last illness to a friend in London shows that he didn’t intend for the whole thing to be printed. He asked that friend to review what he had written in this country and remove any parts he thought were unnecessary. However, it was sent in full, without any changes, to America, where it was soon printed, along with several tracts published during his lifetime. Since some sections in the Journal include observations meant to be private notes and others refer to events in his home country that shouldn't be officially noted here, it’s believed that the following Summary will be appreciated by friends and could be generally useful. Additionally, as many important arguments and relevant advice regarding slavery and the oppression of Black individuals in the plantations are found in the Journal, it was decided that two small tracts on that topic could be left out of this Abridgement.[Pg 4]
THE TESTIMONY OF FRIENDS IN YORKSHIRE
At their Quarterly-meeting held at York, the 24th and 25th
of the third Month 1773, concerningAt their quarterly meeting held in York on March 24th and 25th, 1773, regarding
JOHN WOOLMAN
JOHN WOOLMAN
Of Mount-Holly, in the Province of New-Jersey, in America; who departed this Life at the House of our Friend, Thomas Priestman, in the Suburbs of this City, the 7th of the tenth month 1772, and was interred in the Burying-ground of Friends, the 9th of the same, aged about fifty-two Years
Of Mount Holly, in the Province of New Jersey, in America; who passed away at the home of our friend, Thomas Priestman, in the suburbs of this city, on October 7th, 1772, and was buried in the Friends' graveyard on October 9th of the same month, at the age of about fifty-two years
This our valuable Friend, having been under a religious Engagement for some Time to visit Friends in this Nation, and more especially us in the northern Parts, undertook the same in full Concurrence and near Sympathy with his Friends and Brethren at home, as appeared by Certificates from the monthly and quarterly Meetings to which he belonged, and from the Spring-meeting of Ministers and Elders, held at Philadelphia for Pennsylvania and New-Jersey.
This valuable friend of ours, having felt a strong commitment for some time to visit friends in this country, and especially us in the northern regions, decided to undertake this journey with the full support and close connection of his friends and brothers back home, as shown by certificates from the monthly and quarterly meetings he was part of, and from the spring meeting of ministers and elders held in Philadelphia for Pennsylvania and New-Jersey.
He arrived in the City of London the beginning of the last Yearly-meeting, and, after attending that Meeting, travelled northward, visiting the Quarterly-meetings of Hertfordshire, Buckinghamshire, Northamptonshire, Oxfordshire, and Worcestershire, and divers particular Meetings in his Way.
He arrived in the city of London at the start of the last yearly meeting, and after attending that meeting, he traveled north, visiting the quarterly meetings in Hertfordshire, Buckinghamshire, Northamptonshire, Oxfordshire, and Worcestershire, along with several specific meetings along the way.
He visited many Meetings on the West Side of this County; also some in Lancashire and Westmorland; from whence he came to our Quarterly-meeting in the last[Pg 6] ninth Month; and though much out of Health, yet was enabled to attend all the Sittings of that Meeting except the last.
He went to several meetings on the West Side of this County, as well as some in Lancashire and Westmorland. From there, he came to our Quarterly meeting in the last [Pg 6] September; and although he was not in great health, he was able to attend all the sessions of that meeting except for the last one.
His Disorder, then, which proved the Small-pox, increased speedily upon him, and was very afflicting; under which he was supported in much Meekness, Patience, and Christian Fortitude. To those who attended him in his Illness his Mind appeared to be centered in divine Love; under the precious Influence whereof, we believe, he finished his Course, and entered into the Mansions of everlasting Rest.
His illness, which turned out to be smallpox, quickly worsened and was very distressing; during this time, he remained remarkably calm, patient, and spiritually strong. To those caring for him during his sickness, he seemed to be focused on divine love; under this cherished influence, we believe he completed his journey and entered into eternal peace.
In the early Part of his Illness he requested a Friend to write, and he broke forth thus:
In the early stages of his illness, he asked a friend to write, and he spoke up like this:
"O Lord, my God! the amazing Horrors of Darkness were gathered around me and covered me all over, and I saw no Way to go forth: I felt the Misery of my Fellow-creatures separated from the divine Harmony, and it was heavier than I could bear, and I was crushed down under it: I lifted up my Hand, and stretched out my Arm, but there was none to help me: I looked round about, and was amazed: In the Depths of Misery, O Lord! I remembered that thou art omnipotent; that I had called thee Father; and I felt that I loved thee, and I was made quiet in thy Will, and I waited for Deliverance from thee; thou hadst Pity upon me when no Man could help me: I saw that Meekness under suffering was shewed to us in the most affecting Example of thy Son, and thou wast teaching me to follow him, and I said, Thy Will, O Father, be done."
"O Lord, my God! The terrifying horrors of darkness surrounded me completely, and I saw no way to escape. I felt the suffering of my fellow beings who were separated from divine harmony, and it was heavier than I could bear, crushing me under its weight. I raised my hand and stretched out my arm, but no one was there to help me. I looked around in despair. In the depths of misery, O Lord! I remembered that you are all-powerful; that I had called you Father; and I felt that I loved you. I found peace in your will and waited for your deliverance. You showed mercy on me when no one else could help. I realized that meekness in suffering was demonstrated to us through the moving example of your Son, and you were teaching me to follow him. I said, Your will, O Father, be done."
Many more of his weighty Expressions might have been inserted here, but it was deemed unnecessary, they being already published in Print.
Many more of his significant statements could have been included here, but it was considered unnecessary since they have already been published in print.
He was a Man endued with a large natural Capacity; and, being obedient to the Manifestations of divine Grace, having in Patience and Humility endured many deep Baptisms, he became thereby sanctified and fitted for the Lord's Work, and was truly serviceable in his Church: Dwelling in awful Fear and Watchfulness, he was careful, in his public Appearances, to feel the putting forth of the divine Hand, so that the Spring of the Gospel-ministry[Pg 7] often flowed through him with great Sweetness and Purity, as a refreshing Stream to the weary Travellers toward the City of God: Skilful in dividing the Word, he was furnished by Him, in whom are hid all the Treasures of Wisdom and Knowledge, to communicate freely to the several States of the People where his Lot was cast. His Conduct at other Times was seasoned with the like watchful Circumspection and Attention to the Guidance of divine Wisdom, which rendered his whole Conversation uniformly edifying.
He was a man with a tremendous natural ability, and by being receptive to the signs of divine grace and enduring many deep challenges with patience and humility, he became sanctified and prepared for the Lord's work, truly contributing to his church. Living in deep reverence and vigilance, he was careful during his public appearances to sense the guidance of the divine hand, allowing the flow of Gospel ministry[Pg 7] to often emerge from him with great sweetness and purity, like a refreshing stream for weary travelers on their way to the City of God. Skilled in interpreting the Word, he was equipped by Him, in whom all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge are hidden, to communicate effectively to the various states of the people where he found himself. His conduct at all times was marked by the same careful awareness and attentiveness to the guidance of divine wisdom, making his entire manner consistently uplifting.
He was fully perswaded that as the Life of Christ comes to reign in the Earth, all Abuse and unnecessary Oppression, both of the human and brute Creation, will come to an End; but, under the Sense of a deep Revolt and overflowing Stream of Unrighteousness, his Life has been often a Life of mourning.
He was completely convinced that as the life of Christ starts to take hold on Earth, all abuse and needless oppression, both of people and animals, will come to an end; however, feeling a deep sense of rebellion and a flood of injustice, his life has often been one of mourning.
He was deeply concerned on account of that inhuman and iniquitous Practice of making Slaves of the People of Africa, or holding them in that State; and, on that Account, we understand he hath not only written some Books, but travelled much on the Continent of America, in order to make the Negro-masters (especially those in Profession with us) sensible of the evil of such a Practice; and though, in his Journey to England, he was far removed from the outward Sight of their Sufferings, yet his deep Exercise of Mind remained, as appears by a short Treatise he wrote in this Journey, and his frequent Concern to open the miserable State of this deeply-injured People. His Testimony in the last Meeting he attended was on this Subject; wherein he remarked, that as we, as a Society, when under outward Sufferings, had often found it our Concern to lay them before those in Authority, and thereby, in the Lord's Time, had obtained Relief, so he recommended this oppressed Part of the Creation to our Notice, that we may, as way may open, represent their Sufferings, in an Individual, if not a Society Capacity, to those in Authority.
He was deeply troubled by the cruel and unjust practice of enslaving people from Africa or keeping them in that state; for this reason, we understand he not only wrote several books but also traveled extensively across the continent of America to make slave owners (especially those in our profession) aware of how wrong this practice is. And even though his journey to England took him far away from witnessing their suffering, he remained deeply affected, as shown by a short treatise he wrote during this trip and his ongoing concern to highlight the terrible situation of this deeply wronged community. His testimony at the last meeting he attended was on this subject, where he pointed out that, as a society, we have often shared our own sufferings with those in power and, in the Lord's time, found relief; therefore, he urged us to pay attention to this oppressed part of creation so that we might, as opportunities arise, bring their suffering to the attention of those in authority, either as individuals or as a society.
Deeply sensible that the Desire to gratify People's Inclinations in Luxury and Superfluities is the principal Ground of Oppression, and the Occasion of many[Pg 8] unnecessary Wants, he believed it to be his Duty to be a Pattern of great Self-denial with Respect to the Things of this Life, and earnestly to labour with Friends in the Meekness of Wisdom, to impress on their Minds the great Importance of our Testimony in these Things, recommending to the Guidance of the blessed Truth in this and all other Concerns, and cautioning such as are experienced therein against contenting themselves with acting up to the Standard of others, but to be careful to make the Standard of Truth, manifested to them, the Measure of their Obedience; for, said he, "that Purity of Life which proceeds from Faithfulness in following the Spirit of Truth, that State where our Minds are devoted to serve God, and all our Wants are bounded by his Wisdom,—this Habitation has often been opened before me, as a Place of retirement for the Children of the Light, where they may stand separated from that which disordereth and confuseth the Affairs of Society, and where we may have a Testimony of our Innocence in the Hearts of those who behold us."
Deeply aware that the desire to satisfy people's cravings for luxury and excess is the main reason for oppression and the cause of many[Pg 8] unnecessary wants, he thought it was his duty to exemplify great self-denial concerning the things of this life. He earnestly worked with friends in the spirit of wisdom to impress upon their minds the significant importance of our testimony in these matters, encouraging them to follow the guidance of the blessed truth in this and all other areas, and warning those who are experienced not to settle for just measuring up to the standards of others but to ensure that the standard of truth revealed to them is the measure of their obedience. For, he said, "that purity of life which comes from faithfulness in following the Spirit of Truth, that state where our minds are dedicated to serving God, and all our needs are limited by His wisdom—this place has often been shown to me as a retreat for the children of the light, where they can remain separate from what disrupts and confuses the affairs of society, and where we can maintain a testimony of our innocence in the hearts of those who observe us."
We conclude with fervent Desires that we, as a People, may thus, by our Example, promote the Lord's Work in the Earth; and, our Hearts being prepared, may unite in Prayer to the great Lord of the Harvest, that as, in his infinite Wisdom, he hath greatly stripped the Church, by removing of late divers faithful Ministers and Elders, he may be pleased to send forth many more faithful Labourers into his Harvest.
We finish with sincere hopes that we, as a community, can promote the Lord's work on Earth through our example. With our hearts open, we can come together in prayer to the great Lord of the Harvest, asking that, in his infinite wisdom, he has recently removed various faithful ministers and elders from the Church, and that he will send many more dedicated workers into his harvest.
Signed in, by Order, and on Behalf of, said Meeting:
Signed in, by Order, and on Behalf of, said Meeting:
Joseph Eglin Thomas Perkinson,
Joseph Wright Samuel Briscoe,
John Turner, Joshua Robinson, Thomas Priestman, and other friends.
A TESTIMONY OF THE MONTHLY-MEETING OF FRIENDS
Held in Burlington, the first Day of the eighth Month, in the
Year of
our Lord 1774, concerning our esteemed Friend,
Held in Burlington, on the first day of August, in the
year of our Lord 1774, regarding our valued Friend,
JOHN WOOLMAN, DECEASED
JOHN WOOLMAN, PASSED AWAY
He was born in Northampton, in the County of Burlington, and Province of West-New-Jersey, in the eighth Month, 1720, of religious Parents, who instructed him very early in the Principles of the Christian Religion, as professed by the People called Quakers, which he esteemed a Blessing to him, even in his young Years, tending to preserve him from the Infection of wicked Children; but, through the Workings of the Enemy, and Levity incident to Youth, he frequently deviated from those parental Precepts, by which he laid a renewed Foundation for Repentance, that was finally succeeded by a godly Sorrow not to be repented of, and so became acquainted with that sanctifying Power which qualifies for true Gospel Ministry, into which he was called about the twenty-second year of his Age; and, by a faithful Use of the Talents committed to him, he experienced an Increase, until he arrived at the State of a Father, capable of dividing the Word aright to the different States he ministered unto; dispensing Milk to Babes, and Meat to those of riper Years. Thus he found the Efficacy of that Power to arise, which, in his own Expressions, "prepares the Creature to stand like a Trumpet through which the Lord speaks to his People."—He[Pg 10] was a loving Husband, a tender Father, and very humane to every Part of the Creation under his Care.
He was born in Northampton, in the County of Burlington, and Province of West-New-Jersey, in August 1720, to religious parents who taught him early on the principles of the Christian faith, as practiced by the People called Quakers. He saw this as a blessing, even in his youth, helping him stay away from the bad influence of wicked children. However, due to youthful distractions and the influence of the enemy, he often strayed from those teachings, which led him to a renewed sense of repentance, followed by a genuine sorrow that he wouldn’t regret. This experience allowed him to connect with the sanctifying power that equips one for true Gospel ministry, into which he was called around the age of twenty-two. By faithfully using the talents entrusted to him, he grew until he became a father, capable of rightly dividing the Word for the different states of those he ministered to; providing milk to beginners and solid food to the more mature. In this way, he realized the effectiveness of that power, which, in his own words, "prepares the creature to stand like a trumpet through which the Lord speaks to his people."—He[Pg 10] was a loving husband, a caring father, and very compassionate toward every part of creation under his care.
His Concern for the Poor and those in Affliction was evident by his Visits to them; whom he frequently relieved by his Assistance and Charity. He was for many Years deeply exercised on Account of the poor enslaved Africans, whose Cause, as he sometimes mentioned, lay almost continually upon him, and to obtain Liberty to those Captives, he laboured both in public and private; and was favoured to see his Endeavours crowned with considerable Success. He was particularly desirous that Friends should not be instrumental to lay Burthens on this oppressed People, but remember the Days of suffering from which they had been providentially delivered; that, if Times of Trouble should return, no Injustice dealt to those in Slavery might rise in Judgment against us, but, being clear, we might on such Occasions address the Almighty with a degree of Confidence, for his Interposition and Relief; being particularly careful, as to himself, not to countenance Slavery even by the Use of those Conveniences of Life which were furnished by their Labour.
His concern for the poor and those in need was clear through his visits to them; he often helped them with his support and generosity. For many years, he was deeply troubled by the plight of the enslaved Africans, whose cause, as he would sometimes say, weighed on him almost constantly. He worked hard both publicly and privately to gain freedom for those captives, and he was fortunate to see his efforts achieve significant success. He especially wanted his friends to avoid contributing to the burdens of this oppressed group and to remember the days of suffering from which they had been providentially saved. He believed that if times of trouble returned, any injustices faced by those in slavery could rise up against us; therefore, by being clear of wrongdoing, we could approach the Almighty with confidence for his intervention and relief. He was particularly cautious not to support slavery, even indirectly, by using the comforts of life that came from their labor.
He was desirous to have his own, and the Minds of others, redeemed from the Pleasures and immoderate Profits of this World, and to fix them on those Joys which fade not away; his principal Care being after a Life of Purity, endeavouring to avoid not only the grosser Pollutions, but those also which, appearing in a more refined Dress, are not sufficiently guarded against by some well-disposed People. In the latter Part of his Life he was remarkable for the Plainness and Simplicity of his Dress, and, as much as possible, avoided the Use of Plate, costly Furniture, and feasting; thereby endeavouring to become an Example of Temperance and Self-denial, which he believed himself called unto, and was favoured with Peace therein, although it carried the Appearance of great Austerity in the View of some. He was very moderate in his Charges in the Way of Business, and in his Desires after Gain; and, though a Man of Industry, avoided, and strove much to lead others out of extreme[Pg 11] Labour and Anxiousness after perishable Things; being desirous that the Strength of our Bodies might not be spent in procuring Things unprofitable, and that we might use Moderation and Kindness to the brute Animals under our Care, to prize the Use of them as a great Favour, and by no Means abuse them; that the Gifts of Providence should be thankfully received and applied to the Uses they were designed for.
He wanted to have his own life, as well as help others, to move away from the pleasures and excessive profits of this world and focus on joys that don’t fade. His main concern was to live a pure life, trying to avoid not only the more obvious impurities but also the subtler ones that can easily tempt well-meaning people. In the later part of his life, he was known for the simplicity and plainness of his clothing, and he did his best to avoid silverware, expensive furniture, and lavish meals. He aimed to be an example of moderation and self-control, believing this was his calling, and found peace in it, even though it seemed very strict to some. He was quite reasonable with his business expenses and kept his ambitions for profit in check; and even though he was a hardworking man, he sought to lead himself and others away from excessive labor and worry over things that don’t last. He wanted the strength of our bodies to be used wisely and not wasted on unimportant things, and he believed in treating the animals in our care with kindness, valuing their use as a generous gift and never misusing them. He felt that the blessings from Providence should be gratefully received and used for their intended purposes.
He several Times opened a School at Mount-Holly, for the Instruction of poor Friends Children and others, being concerned for their Help and Improvement therein: His Love and Care for the rising Youth among us were truly great, recommending to Parents and those who have the Charge of them, to chuse conscientious and pious Tutors, saying, "It is a lovely Sight to behold innocent Children," and that "to labour for their Help against that which would mar the Beauty of their Minds, is a Debt we owe them."
He opened a school at Mount-Holly multiple times to teach poor Friends' children and others, as he genuinely cared about their support and development. His love and concern for the youth in our community were truly significant, and he encouraged parents and guardians to choose dedicated and caring teachers, saying, "It’s a beautiful sight to see innocent children," and that "working to protect their minds from anything that would harm their beauty is a responsibility we owe them."
His Ministry was sound, very deep and penetrating, sometimes pointing out the dangerous Situation which Indulgence and Custom lead into; frequently exhorting others, especially the Youth, not to be discouraged at the Difficulties which occur, but press after Purity. He often expressed an earnest Engagement that pure Wisdom should be attended to, which would lead into Lowliness of Mind and Resignation to the divine Will, in which State small Possessions here would be sufficient.
His ministry was strong, very deep, and insightful, often highlighting the dangerous situations that indulgence and habit can lead to. He frequently encouraged others, especially the youth, not to be discouraged by the challenges they faced but to strive for purity. He often expressed a sincere commitment that pure wisdom should be embraced, which would bring about humility and acceptance of divine will, where even modest possessions would be enough.
In transacting the Affairs of Discipline, his Judgment was sound and clear, and he was very useful in treating with those who had done amiss; he visited such in a private Way in that Plainness which Truth dictates, shewing great Tenderness and Christian Forbearance. He was a constant Attender of our Yearly-meeting, in which he was a good Example, and particularly useful; assisting in the Business thereof with great Weight and Attention. He several Times visited most of the Meetings of Friends in this and the neighbouring Provinces, with the Concurrence of the Monthly-meeting to which he belonged, and, we have Reason to believe, had good Service therein, generally or always expressing, at his[Pg 12] Return, how it had fared with him, and the Evidence of Peace in his Mind for thus performing his Duty. He was often concerned with other Friends in the important Service of visiting Families, which he was enabled to go through to Satisfaction.
In handling disciplinary matters, he was fair and clear-headed, and he was very helpful in dealing with those who misstepped; he met with them privately, showing the straightforwardness that truth demands, demonstrating great kindness and Christian patience. He regularly attended our yearly meeting, where he set a good example and was particularly helpful, contributing to the business with significant weight and focus. He visited most of the Friends' meetings in this and nearby provinces several times, with the support of his monthly meeting, and we have good reason to believe he served well, generally sharing upon his return how things had gone for him and the peace he felt in fulfilling his duty. He was often engaged with other Friends in the vital task of visiting families, which he completed satisfactorily.
In the Minutes of the Meeting of Ministers and Elders for this Quarter, at the Foot of a List of the Members of that Meeting, made about five Years before his Death, we find in his Hand-writing the following Observations and Reflections. "As looking over the Minutes, made by Persons who have put off this Body, hath sometimes revived in me a Thought how Ages pass away; so this List may probably revive a like Thought in some, when I and the rest of the Persons above-named are centered in another State of Being.—The Lord, who was the Guide of my Youth, hath in tender Mercies helped me hitherto; he hath healed me of Wounds, he hath helped me out of grievous Entanglements; he remains to be the Strength of my Life; to whom I desire to devote myself in Time and in Eternity."—Signed, John Woolman.
In the Minutes of the Meeting of Ministers and Elders for this Quarter, at the bottom of a list of the members of that meeting, written about five years before his death, we find the following observations and reflections in his handwriting. "As I look over the minutes made by people who have shed this mortal body, I sometimes reflect on how quickly ages pass; this list may spark similar thoughts in others when I and the other individuals mentioned are in a different state of existence. The Lord, who guided me in my youth, has compassionately helped me until now; He has healed my wounds and assisted me out of difficult situations; He is still the strength of my life, to whom I wish to dedicate myself in this life and the next."—Signed, John Woolman.
In the twelfth Month, 1771, he acquainted this Meeting that he found his Mind drawn towards a religious Visit to Friends in some Parts of England, particularly in Yorkshire. In the first Month, 1772, he obtained our Certificate, which was approved and endorsed by our Quarterly-meeting, and by the Half-year's-meeting of Ministers and Elders at Philadelphia. He embarked on his Voyage in the fifth, and arrived in London in the sixth, Month following, at the Time of their annual Meeting in that City. During his short Visit to Friends in that Kingdom, we are informed that his Services were acceptable and edifying. In his last Illness he uttered many lively and comfortable Expressions, being "perfectly resigned, having no Will either to live or die," as appears by the Testimony of Friends at York in Great-Britain, in the Suburbs whereof, at the House of our Friend, Thomas Priestman, he died of the Small-pox, on the seventh Day of the tenth Month, 1772, and was buried in Friends Burying-ground in that City, on the ninth of the same, after a large and solid Meeting held on the Occasion at their great[Pg 13] Meeting-house, aged near fifty-two Years; a Minister upwards of thirty Years, during which Time he belonged to Mount-Holly Particular-meeting, which he diligently attended when at Home and in Health of Body, and his Labours of Love, and pious Care for the Prosperity of Friends in the blessed Truth, we hope may not be forgotten, but that his good Works may be remembered to Edification.
In December 1771, he informed this Meeting that he felt drawn to visit Friends in certain areas of England, especially in Yorkshire. In January 1772, he received our Certificate, which was approved and endorsed by our Quarterly meeting and by the Half-year's meeting of Ministers and Elders in Philadelphia. He set out on his journey in May and arrived in London in June, coinciding with their annual Meeting in the city. During his brief visit with Friends in that country, we learned that his contributions were well-received and uplifting. In his final illness, he expressed many lively and comforting thoughts, being "perfectly resigned, having no desire to live or die," as noted in the Testimony of Friends at York in Great-Britain, where he passed away from Small-pox on the seventh day of October 1772 at the home of our Friend, Thomas Priestman. He was buried in the Friends' burial ground in that city on the ninth, after a large and meaningful Meeting held at their great[Pg 13] Meeting-house, at nearly fifty-two years of age; a Minister for over thirty years, during which he actively participated in the Mount-Holly Particular meeting, attending diligently when home and in good health. We hope his acts of love and dedication to the welfare of Friends in the blessed Truth will not be forgotten, but that his good works will be remembered for edification.
Signed in, and by Order of, the said Meeting, by
Signed in and by order of the meeting, by
Samuel Allinson, Clerk.
Samuel Allinson, Clerk.
Read and approved at our Quarterly-meeting, held at Burlington the 29th of the eighth Month, 1774.
Read and approved at our quarterly meeting, held in Burlington on the 29th of the eighth month, 1774.
Signed, by Order of said Meeting,
Signed, by Order of that Meeting,
A JOURNAL OF THE LIFE, GOSPEL-LABOURS, AND CHRISTIAN EXPERIENCES, OF
THAT FAITHFUL MINISTER OF JESUS CHRIST,
JOHN WOOLMAN;
Late of Mount Holly, in the Province of New Jersey.
Isaiah xxxii. 17.
Isaiah xxxii. 17.
"The Work of Righteousness shall be Peace; and the Effect of Righteousness, Quietness and Assurance for ever."
"Doing good will bring peace, and the outcome of doing good will be lasting calm and confidence."
LONDON:
Printed and sold by James Phillips, in
George-Yard, Lombard-Street.
LONDON:
Printed and sold by James Phillips, in
George-Yard, Lombard-Street.
M.DCC.LXXV.
M.DCC.LXXV.
A JOURNAL OF THE LIFE AND TRAVELS OF JOHN WOOLMAN,
In Service of the Gospel
CHAPTER I
His Birth and Parentage, with some Account of the Operations of divine Grace on his Mind in his Youth—His first Appearance in the Ministry—And his Considerations, while young, on the keeping of Slaves
His Birth and Parents, along with a Brief Overview of the Influence of Divine Grace on His Mind During His Youth—His First Involvement in the Ministry—And His Views, as a Young Man, on the Practice of Slavery
I have often felt a Motion of Love to leave some Hints in Writing of my Experience of the Goodness of God; and now, in the thirty-sixth Year of my Age, I begin this Work.
I have often felt a desire to leave some notes about my experiences of God's goodness in writing; and now, at thirty-six years old, I’m starting this project.
I was born in Northampton, in Burlington County, West-Jersey, in the Year 1720; and before I was seven Years old I began to be acquainted with the Operations of divine Love. Through the Care of my Parents, I was taught to read nearly as soon as I was capable of it; and, as I went from School one seventh Day, I remember, while my Companions went to play by the Way, I went forward out of Sight, and, sitting down, I read the 22d Chapter of the Revelations: "He shewed me a pure River of Water of Life, clear as Chrystal, proceeding out of the Throne of God and of the Lamb, etc." and, in reading it, my Mind was drawn to seek after that pure Habitation, which, I then believed, God had prepared for his Servants.[Pg 18] The Place where I sat, and the Sweetness that attended my Mind, remain fresh in my Memory.
I was born in Northampton, in Burlington County, West-Jersey, in the year 1720. Before I turned seven, I started to understand the workings of divine love. Thanks to my parents, I learned to read as soon as I was able. One Saturday, as I left school, I remember while my friends went off to play, I walked away from the group and sat down out of sight. I read the 22nd chapter of the Revelations: "He showed me a pure river of water of life, clear as crystal, flowing from the throne of God and the Lamb, etc." While reading this, I felt a strong desire to seek that pure place, which I believed God had prepared for His servants. [Pg 18] The spot where I sat and the sweetness that filled my mind are still clear in my memory.
This, and the like gracious Visitations, had that Effect upon me, that when Boys used ill Language it troubled me; and, through the continued Mercies of God, I was preserved from it.
This, and similar kind visitations, had such an effect on me that when boys used bad language, it bothered me; and, through the ongoing mercies of God, I was kept safe from it.
The pious Instructions of my Parents were often fresh in my Mind when I happened to be among wicked Children, and were of Use to me. My Parents, having a large Family of Children, used frequently, on first Days after Meeting, to put us to read in the holy Scriptures, or some religious Books, one after another, the rest sitting by without much Conversation; which, I have since often thought, was a good Practice. From what I had read and heard, I believed there had been, in past Ages, People who walked in Uprightness before God, in a Degree exceeding any that I knew, or heard of, now living: And the Apprehension of there being less Steadiness and Firmness, amongst People in this Age than in past Ages, often troubled me while I was a Child.
The wise teachings of my parents were often on my mind when I found myself around immoral kids, and they really helped me. Since my parents had a big family, they frequently encouraged us to read the holy Scriptures or other religious books on Sundays after church, while the rest of us sat quietly without much talking; I’ve come to think that was a good practice. From what I read and heard, I believed there were people in past times who lived righteously before God in ways that surpassed anyone I knew or heard of today. The thought that there was less stability and commitment among people now than in previous times often troubled me when I was a child.
A Thing remarkable in my Childhood was, that once, going to a Neighbour's House, I saw, on the Way, a Robin sitting on her Nest, and as I came near she went off, but, having young ones, flew about, and with many Cries expressed her Concern for them; I stood and threw Stones at her, till, one striking her, she fell down dead: At first I was pleased with the Exploit, but after a few Minutes was seized with Horror, as having, in a sportive Way, killed an innocent Creature while she was careful for her Young: I beheld her lying dead, and thought these young ones, for which she was so careful, must now perish for want of their Dam to nourish them; and, after some painful Considerations on the Subject, I climbed up the Tree, took all the young Birds, and killed them; supposing that better than to leave them to pine away and die miserably: And believed, in this Case, that Scripture-proverb was fulfilled, "The tender Mercies of the Wicked are cruel." I then went on my Errand, but, for some Hours, could think of little else but the Cruelties I had committed, and was much[Pg 19] troubled. Thus he, whose tender Mercies are over all his Works, hath placed a Principle in the human Mind, which incites to exercise Goodness towards every living Creature; and this being singly attended to, People become tender hearted and sympathising; but being frequently and totally rejected, the Mind becomes shut up in a contrary Disposition.
One remarkable thing from my childhood was when I was walking to a neighbor's house and saw a robin sitting on her nest. As I got closer, she flew away but, since she had babies, she circled around, crying out in distress for them. I stood there and started throwing stones at her until one hit her and she fell down dead. At first, I felt pleased with what I had done, but after a few minutes, horror struck me for having playfully killed an innocent creature while she was caring for her young. I looked at her lying dead and thought her babies, whom she was so concerned about, would now suffer and die without her to feed them. After some painful reflection, I climbed up the tree, took all the baby birds, and killed them, thinking it would be better than leaving them to suffer and die. I believed that the saying, “The tender mercies of the wicked are cruel,” applied in this case. I then continued on my errand, but for hours afterward, all I could think about was the cruelty I had committed, and I felt very troubled. Thus, he whose tender mercies are over all his works has placed a principle in the human mind that encourages us to show kindness towards every living creature; when this principle is nurtured, people become compassionate and sympathetic, but when it’s regularly ignored, the mind becomes closed off to such feelings.
About the twelfth Year of my Age, my Father being abroad, my Mother reproved me for some Misconduct, to which I made an undutiful Reply; and, the next first Day, as I was with my Father returning from Meeting, he told me he understood I had behaved amiss to my Mother, and advised me to be more careful in future. I knew myself blameable, and in Shame and Confusion remained silent. Being thus awakened to a Sense of my Wickedness, I felt Remorse in my Mind, and, getting home, I retired and prayed to the Lord to forgive me; and do not remember that I ever, after that, spoke unhandsomely to either of my Parents, however foolish in some other Things.
About the age of twelve, while my dad was away, my mom scolded me for some bad behavior, and I responded disrespectfully. The following Sunday, as my dad and I were coming back from church, he mentioned that he knew I had treated my mom poorly and advised me to be more mindful in the future. I was aware of my wrongdoing and felt ashamed, so I stayed quiet. This realization made me aware of my faults, and when I got home, I went to my room and prayed to God to forgive me. After that, I don’t remember ever speaking disrespectfully to either of my parents again, even though I may have acted foolishly in other ways.
Having attained the Age of sixteen Years, I began to love wanton Company; and though I was preserved from prophane Language, or scandalous Conduct, still I perceived a Plant in me which produced much wild Grapes; yet my merciful Father forsook me not utterly, but, at Times, through his Grace, I was brought seriously to consider my Ways; and the Sight of my Backslidings affected me with Sorrow; but, for want of rightly attending to the Reproofs of Instruction, Vanity was added to Vanity, and Repentance to Repentance: Upon the whole, my Mind was more and more alienated from the Truth, and I hastened toward Destruction. While I meditate on the Gulph towards which I travelled, and reflect on my youthful Disobedience, for these Things I weep, mine Eyes run down with Water.
Turning sixteen, I started to enjoy reckless company. Even though I avoided foul language and scandalous behavior, I noticed a part of me that produced a lot of bad habits. Still, my merciful Father didn't completely abandon me. Sometimes, through His grace, I was made to seriously consider my actions. The awareness of my wrongdoings brought me sadness, but because I didn't pay attention to wise guidance, my vanity only grew, and my remorse deepened. Overall, my mind drifted further away from the truth, and I was rushing toward destruction. As I think about the abyss I was heading towards and reflect on my youthful disobedience, I weep, and my eyes are filled with tears.
Advancing in Age, the Number of my Acquaintances increased, and thereby my Way grew more difficult; though I had found Comfort in reading the holy Scriptures, and thinking on heavenly Things, I was now estranged therefrom: I knew I was going from the Flock[Pg 20] of Christ, and had no Resolution to return; hence serious Reflections were uneasy to me, and youthful Vanities and Diversions my greatest Pleasure. Running in this Road I found many like myself; and we associated in that which is the reverse of true Friendship.
As I got older, the number of people I knew grew, making my life more complicated. Even though I had found comfort in reading the holy Scriptures and thinking about spiritual matters, I started to feel distant from them. I realized I was drifting away from the flock of Christ, and I had no intention of coming back. This realization made deep thoughts uncomfortable for me, while the distractions and pleasures of youth became my greatest joys. On this path, I found many others like me, and we formed connections that were the opposite of true friendship.[Pg 20]
But in this swift Race it pleased God to visit me with Sickness, so that I doubted of recovering; and then did Darkness, Horror, and Amazement, with full Force, seize me, even when my Pain and Distress of Body was very great. I thought it would have been better for me never to have had a Being, than to see the Day which I now saw. I was filled with Confusion; and in great Affliction, both of Mind and Body, I lay and bewailed myself. I had not Confidence to lift up my Cries to God, whom I had thus offended; but, in a deep Sense of my great Folly, I was humbled before him; and, at length, that Word which is as a Fire and a Hammer, broke and dissolved my rebellious Heart, and then my Cries were put up in Contrition; and in the multitude of his Mercies I found inward Relief, and felt a close Engagement, that, if he was pleased to restore my Health, I might walk humbly before him.
But in this fast-paced life, it pleased God to visit me with illness, so I doubted I would recover; and then Darkness, Horror, and Amazement, with full force, took hold of me, even when my pain and distress were intense. I thought it would have been better for me never to have existed than to see the day I was now facing. I was overwhelmed with confusion; in great affliction, both mentally and physically, I lay there and mourned my situation. I didn't have the courage to cry out to God, whom I had offended; instead, with a deep awareness of my foolishness, I humbled myself before Him. Eventually, that Word which is like fire and a hammer broke and softened my rebellious heart, and then my cries were offered in remorse. In the abundance of His mercies, I found inner relief and felt a strong commitment that, if He chose to restore my health, I would walk humbly before Him.
After my Recovery, this Exercise remained with me a considerable Time; but, by Degrees, giving Way to youthful Vanities, they gained Strength, and, getting with wanton young People, I lost Ground. The Lord had been very gracious, and spoke Peace to me in the Time of my Distress; and I now most ungratefully turned again to Folly; on which Account, at Times, I felt sharp Reproof. I was not so hardy as to commit Things scandalous; but to exceed in Vanity, and promote Mirth, was my chief Study. Still I retained a Love for pious People, and their Company brought an Awe upon me. My dear Parents, several Times, admonished me in the Fear of the Lord, and their Admonition entered into my Heart, and had a good Effect for a Season; but, not getting deep enough to pray rightly, the Tempter, when he came, found Entrance. I remember once, having spent a Part of the Day in Wantonness, as I went to Bed at Night, there lay in a Window, near my Bed, a[Pg 21] Bible, which I opened, and first cast my Eye on this Text, "We lie down in our Shame, and our Confusion covers us:" This I knew to be my Case; and, meeting with so unexpected a Reproof, I was somewhat affected with it, and went to Bed under Remorse of Conscience; which I soon cast off again.
After my recovery, this practice stuck with me for a while; however, gradually, I gave in to youthful distractions, and they gained more control over me. Hanging out with reckless young people caused me to lose my way. The Lord had been very kind and brought me peace during my tough times, but I unfortunately returned to foolishness. Because of this, I occasionally faced harsh reprimands. I wasn’t bold enough to do anything truly scandalous, but indulging in vanity and seeking fun became my main focus. Still, I held on to a fondness for religious people, and their presence filled me with respect. My dear parents warned me several times in the fear of the Lord, and their words touched my heart and had a positive effect for a while; however, since my praying wasn’t deep enough, when temptation hit, I fell into it. I remember one night, after spending part of the day in indulgence, as I climbed into bed, there was a Bible on the windowsill next to me. I opened it and my eyes fell on this verse, "We lie down in our shame, and our confusion covers us." I recognized this was about me, and being caught off guard by such a reprimand, I felt a bit shaken and went to bed with a guilty conscience, though I soon pushed those feelings aside again.
Thus Time passed on: My Heart was replenished with Mirth and Wantonness, and pleasing Scenes of Vanity were presented to my Imagination, till I attained the Age of eighteen Years; near which Time I felt the Judgments of God, in my Soul, like a consuming Fire; and, looking over my past Life, the Prospect was moving.—I was often sad, and longed to be delivered from those Vanities; then again, my Heart was strongly inclined to them, and there was in me a sore Conflict: At Times I turned to Folly, and then again, Sorrow and Confusion took hold of me. In a while, I resolved totally to leave off some of my Vanities; but there was a secret Reserve, in my Heart, of the more refined Part of them, and I was not low enough to find true Peace. Thus, for some Months, I had great Troubles; there remaining in me an unsubjected Will, which rendered my Labours fruitless, till at length, through the merciful Continuance of heavenly Visitations, I was made to bow down in Spirit before the Lord. I remember one Evening I had spent some Time in reading a pious Author; and walking out alone, I humbly prayed to the Lord for his Help, that I might be delivered from all those Vanities which so ensnared me. Thus, being brought low, he helped me; and, as I learned to bear the Cross, I felt Refreshment to come from his Presence; but, not keeping in that Strength which gave Victory, I lost Ground again; the Sense of which greatly affected me; and I sought Desarts and lonely Places, and there, with Tears, did confess my Sins to God, and humbly craved Help of him. And I may say with Reverence, he was near to me in my Troubles, and in those Times of Humiliation opened my Ear to Discipline. I was now led to look seriously at the Means by which I was drawn from the pure Truth, and learned this, that, if I would live in the Life which the faithful Servants of[Pg 22] God lived in, I must not go into Company as heretofore in my own Will; but all the Cravings of Sense must be governed by a divine Principle. In Times of Sorrow and Abasement these Instructions were sealed upon me, and I felt the Power of Christ prevail over selfish Desires, so that I was preserved in a good degree of Steadiness; and, being young, and believing at that Time that a single Life was best for me, I was strengthened to keep from such Company as had often been a Snare to me.
Thus, time went by: My heart was filled with joy and indulgence, and appealing scenes of vanity filled my imagination until I turned eighteen. Around that time, I began to feel God’s judgments in my soul like a consuming fire, and looking back at my past life was unsettling. I often felt sad and longed to escape those vanities; yet, my heart was strongly drawn to them, resulting in a painful inner conflict. Sometimes I leaned into folly, then sorrow and confusion would take over me. Eventually, I decided to give up some of my vanities completely, but I secretly held onto the more refined aspects of them, preventing me from finding true peace. For several months, I faced significant struggles due to my stubborn will, which made my efforts pointless until, through the persistent mercy of heavenly visitations, I was brought to humble myself before the Lord. I recall one evening after spending time reading a spiritual author; I walked alone and prayed humbly for the Lord's help to be freed from the vanities that ensnared me. In my low state, He helped me; and as I learned to endure difficulties, I felt refreshing presence from Him. However, not maintaining the strength that brought me victory, I fell back again, which greatly affected me; I sought desolate places and there, with tears, confessed my sins to God and humbly sought His help. I can say with reverence that He was close to me in my troubles, and during those humbling times, He opened my ears to guidance. I was led to seriously examine the means through which I strayed from the pure truth and learned that if I wanted to live the life of the faithful servants of God, I had to avoid the company I previously kept on my own terms; instead, the cravings of my senses had to be controlled by a divine principle. During times of sorrow and humiliation, these lessons became ingrained in me, and I felt the power of Christ overcome selfish desires, allowing me to remain steady. Being young, and believing at that time that a single life was best for me, I was strengthened to avoid the kinds of company that had often trapped me.
I kept steadily to Meetings; spent First-day Afternoons chiefly in reading the Scriptures and other good Books; and was early convinced in Mind, that true Religion consisted in an inward Life, wherein the Heart doth love and reverence God the Creator, and learns to exercise true Justice and Goodness, not only toward all Men, but also toward the brute Creatures.—That as the Mind was moved, by an inward Principle, to love God as an invisible incomprehensible Being, by the same Principle it was moved to love him in all his Manifestations in the visible World.—That, as by his Breath the Flame of Life was kindled in all animal sensible Creatures, to say we love God, and, at the same Time exercise Cruelty toward the least Creature, is a Contradiction in itself.
I consistently attended meetings and spent Sunday afternoons mainly reading the Scriptures and other meaningful books. I was convinced early on that true religion is about an inner life where the heart loves and honors God the Creator and learns to practice genuine justice and kindness, not only toward all people but also toward animals. I realized that just as our minds are inspired by an inner principle to love God as an invisible, incomprehensible being, we are equally inspired to love Him in all His expressions in the visible world. Since it is by His breath that the flame of life is ignited in all living creatures, claiming to love God while being cruel to even the smallest creature is a contradiction.
I found no Narrowness respecting Sects and Opinions; but believed, that sincere upright-hearted People, in every Society, who truly love God, were accepted of him.
I didn’t find any limitations regarding beliefs and opinions; instead, I believed that sincere, honest people in every community who truly love God are accepted by Him.
As I lived under the Cross, and simply followed the Openings of Truth, my Mind, from Day to Day, was more enlightened; my former Acquaintance were left to judge of me as they would, for I found it safest for me to live in private, and keep these Things sealed up in my own Breast. While I silently ponder on that Change wrought in me, I find no Language equal to it, nor any Means to convey to another a clear Idea of it. I looked on the Works of God in this visible Creation, and an Awfulness covered me; my Heart was tender and often contrite, and universal Love to my Fellow-creatures increased in me: This will be understood by such as have trodden the same Path. Some Glances of real Beauty may be seen in their Faces, who dwell in true Meekness. There[Pg 23] is a Harmony in the Sound of that Voice to which divine Love gives Utterance, and some Appearance of right Order in their Temper and Conduct, whose Passions are regulated; yet all these do not fully shew forth that inward Life to such as have not felt it: But this white Stone and new Name is known rightly to such only as have it.
As I lived under the Cross and simply followed the Openings of Truth, my mind became more enlightened day by day; my old acquaintances judged me as they wished, for I found it safest to live privately and keep these things to myself. While I quietly reflect on the change within me, I find no words that truly capture it or any way to convey a clear idea of it to another. I looked at the works of God in this visible creation, and I was filled with awe; my heart was tender and often remorseful, and my love for my fellow beings grew stronger. Those who have walked the same path will understand this. There are glimpses of true beauty in the faces of those who embody genuine meekness. There is a harmony in the sound of the voice that divine love expresses, and some sense of order in the demeanor and actions of those whose passions are balanced; yet all of this does not fully reveal that inner life to those who have not experienced it. But this white stone and new name are understood only by those who possess it.
Though I had been thus strengthened to bear the Cross, I still found myself in great Danger, having many Weaknesses attending me, and strong Temptations to wrestle with; in the feeling whereof I frequently withdrew into private Places, and often with Tears besought the Lord to help me, whose gracious Ear was open to my Cry.
Though I had been given strength to carry the Cross, I still faced great danger, dealing with many weaknesses and strong temptations. Because of this, I often withdrew to quiet places and frequently cried out to the Lord for help, whose gracious ear was always open to my pleas.
All this Time I lived with my Parents, and wrought on the Plantation; and, having had Schooling pretty well for a Planter, I used to improve it in Winter Evenings, and other leisure Times; and, being now in the twenty-first Year of my Age, a Man, in much Business at shop-keeping and baking, asked me, if I would hire with him to tend Shop and keep Books. I acquainted my Father with the Proposal; and, after some Deliberation, it was agreed for me to go.
All this time I lived with my parents and worked on the plantation. Having received a decent education for a planter, I used to make the most of it during winter evenings and other free time. Now that I was twenty-one, a man involved in shopkeeping and baking asked me if I would work for him to manage the shop and keep the books. I told my father about the offer, and after some discussion, we agreed that I should go.
At Home I had lived retired; and now, having a Prospect of being much in the Way of Company, I felt frequent and fervent Cries in my Heart to God, the Father of Mercies, that he would preserve me from all Corruption; that in this more publick Employment, I might serve him, my gracious Redeemer, in that Humility and Self-denial, with which I had been, in a small Degree, exercised in a more private Life. The Man, who employed me, furnished a Shop in Mount-Holly, about five Miles from my Father's House, and six from his own; and there I lived alone, and tended his Shop. Shortly after my Settlement here I was visited by several young People, my former Acquaintance, who knew not but Vanities would be as agreeable to me now as ever; and, at these Times, I cried to the Lord in secret, for Wisdom and Strength; for I felt myself encompassed with Difficulties, and had fresh Occasion to bewail the Follies of Time past,[Pg 24] in contracting a Familiarity with libertine People; and, as I had now left my Father's House outwardly, I found my heavenly Father to be merciful to me beyond what I can express.
At home, I had lived a quiet life; and now, with the prospect of being around more people, I often found myself praying passionately to God, the Father of Mercies, asking Him to keep me away from all corruption. I wanted to serve Him, my gracious Redeemer, in the humility and self-denial that I had experienced, even if just a little, in my more private life. The man who hired me set up a shop in Mount-Holly, about five miles from my father's house and six from his own; there I lived alone and ran his shop. Shortly after I settled in, several young people, my old acquaintances, came to visit, assuming that I would still enjoy the same frivolities as before. During these times, I quietly prayed to the Lord for wisdom and strength, as I felt surrounded by difficulties and had plenty of reasons to regret the foolishness of my past, particularly in getting too close to carefree people. And even though I had left my father's house physically, I found that my heavenly Father was more merciful to me than I can express.
By Day I was much amongst People, and had many Trials to go through; but, in the Evenings, I was mostly alone, and may with Thankfulness acknowledge, that, in those Times, the Spirit of Supplication was often poured upon me; under which I was frequently exercised, and felt my Strength renewed.
By day, I was mostly around people and faced many challenges; but in the evenings, I was mostly alone and can gratefully say that during those times, I often felt a strong urge to pray. In that spirit of prayer, I was frequently engaged and felt my strength renewed.
In a few Months after I came here, my Master bought several Scotchmen, Servants, from on-board a Vessel, and brought them to Mount-Holly to sell; one of which was taken sick, and died.
In a few months after I arrived here, my master bought several Scotchmen, servants, from a ship and brought them to Mount-Holly to sell; one of them got sick and died.
In the latter Part of his Sickness, he, being delirious, used to curse and swear most sorrowfully; and, the next Night after his Burial, I was left to sleep alone in the same Chamber where he died; I perceived in me a Timorousness; I knew, however, I had not injured the Man, but assisted in taking Care of him according to my Capacity; and was not free to ask any one, on that Occasion, to sleep with me: Nature was feeble; but every Trial was a fresh Incitement to give myself up wholly to the Service of God, for I found no Helper like him in Times of Trouble.
In the later part of his illness, he became delirious and would curse and swear sorrowfully. The night after his burial, I was left to sleep alone in the same room where he died. I felt afraid; however, I knew I hadn't harmed him but had done my best to take care of him. I wasn’t able to ask anyone to stay with me that night. I felt weak, but each challenge motivated me to fully dedicate myself to serving God, as I found no one better to help me in tough times.
After a While, my former Acquaintance gave over expecting me as one of their Company; and I began to be known to some whose Conversation was helpful to me: And now, as I had experienced the Love of God, through Jesus Christ, to redeem me from many Pollutions, and to be a Succour to me through a Sea of Conflicts, with which no Person was fully acquainted; and as my Heart was often enlarged in this heavenly Principle, I felt a tender Compassion for the Youth, who remained entangled in Snares, like those which had entangled me from one Time to another: This Love and Tenderness increased; and my Mind was more strongly engaged for the Good of my Fellow-creatures. I went to Meetings in an awful Frame of Mind, and endeavoured to be inwardly acquainted with the Language of the true Shepherd; and,[Pg 25] one Day, being under a strong Exercise of Spirit, I stood up, and said some Words in a Meeting; but, not keeping close to the divine Opening, I said more than was required of me; and being soon sensible of my Error, I was afflicted in Mind some Weeks, without any Light or Comfort, even to that Degree that I could not take Satisfaction in any Thing: I remembered God, and was troubled, and, in the Depth of my Distress, he had Pity upon me, and sent the Comforter: I then felt Forgiveness for my Offence, and my Mind became calm and quiet, being truly thankful to my gracious Redeemer for his Mercies; and, after this, feeling the Spring of divine Love opened, and a Concern to speak, I said a few Words in a Meeting, in which I found Peace; this, I believe, was about six Weeks from the first Time: And, as I was thus humbled and disciplined under the Cross, my Understanding became more strengthened to distinguish the pure Spirit which inwardly moves upon the Heart, and taught me to wait in Silence sometimes many Weeks together, until I felt that rise which prepares the Creature.
After a while, my old friends stopped expecting me to join them, and I started to connect with people whose conversations were helpful to me. Having experienced God's love through Jesus Christ, which redeemed me from many struggles and supported me through difficult times that no one really knew about, I often felt a deep compassion for the young people who were trapped in snares like the ones that had caught me before. This love and tenderness grew stronger, and I became even more dedicated to the well-being of others. I attended meetings with a serious mindset, trying to connect inwardly with the true Shepherd’s voice. Then, one day, feeling a strong urge in my spirit, I stood up in a meeting and spoke, but I didn’t stick closely to the divine inspiration and ended up saying more than I needed to. Realizing my mistake, I felt troubled for several weeks without any clarity or comfort, to the point where I found no satisfaction in anything. I remembered God and felt distressed, but in my deep suffering, He took pity on me and sent the Comforter. I then felt forgiven for my mistake, and my mind calmed down, leaving me truly grateful to my gracious Redeemer for His mercies. After this, feeling the outpouring of divine love and a desire to speak, I said a few words in a meeting where I found peace; this was about six weeks after my first experience. As I humbled myself and learned from the challenges, my understanding grew stronger, allowing me to recognize the pure spirit that moves within the heart, teaching me to wait in silence for many weeks until I felt the inspiration rise within me.
From an inward purifying, and stedfast abiding under it, springs a lively operative Desire for the Good of others: All the Faithful are not called to the public Ministry; but whoever are, are called to minister of that which they have tasted and handled spiritually. The outward Modes of Worship are various; but, wherever any are true Ministers of Jesus Christ, it is from the Operation of his Spirit upon their Hearts, first purifying them, and thus giving them a just Sense of the Conditions of others.
From an inner cleansing and a steady commitment to it comes a vibrant desire to do good for others. Not everyone in the faith is called to serve publicly, but those who are, are called to share what they have experienced and understood spiritually. There are many ways to practice worship, but where true ministers of Jesus Christ exist, it is because of the work of His Spirit on their hearts, first purifying them and giving them a genuine understanding of the needs of others.
This Truth was clearly fixed in my Mind; and I was taught to watch the pure Opening, and to take Heed, lest, while I was standing to speak, my own Will should get uppermost, and cause me to utter Words from worldly Wisdom, and depart from the Channel of the true Gospel-Ministry.
This truth was clearly established in my mind; and I learned to observe the pure opening, and to be careful, so that while I was standing to speak, my own will wouldn’t take over and make me say things from worldly wisdom, leading me away from the true path of the Gospel ministry.
In the Management of my outward Affairs, I may say, with Thankfulness, I found Truth to be my Support; and I was respected in my Master's Family, who came to live in Mount-Holly within two Years after my going there.[Pg 26]
In managing my external affairs, I can say, with gratitude, that I found truth to be my support; and I was respected in my master's family, who moved to Mount-Holly two years after I got there.[Pg 26]
About the twenty-third Year of my Age, I had many fresh and heavenly Openings, in respect to the Care and Providence of the Almighty over his Creatures in general, and over Man as the most noble amongst those which are visible. And being clearly convinced in my Judgment, that to place my whole Trust in God was best for me, I felt renewed Engagements, that in all Things I might act on an inward Principle of Virtue, and pursue worldly Business no farther, than as Truth opened my Way therein.
About the age of twenty-three, I experienced many fresh and enlightening insights regarding the care and guidance of the Almighty over His creations in general, and specifically over humans as the most noble among the visible beings. Being fully convinced in my judgment that placing my entire trust in God was the best choice for me, I felt a renewed commitment to act in all things based on an inner principle of virtue and to engage in worldly matters only to the extent that truth guided my way.
About the Time called Christmas, I observed many People from the Country, and Dwellers in Town, who, resorting to Public-Houses, spent their Time in drinking and vain Sports, tending to corrupt one another; on which Account I was much troubled. At one House, in particular, there was much Disorder; and I believed it was a Duty incumbent on me to go and speak to the Master of that House. I considered I was young, and that several elderly Friends in town had Opportunity to see these Things; but though I would gladly have been excused, yet I could not feel my Mind clear.
About the time called Christmas, I noticed many people from the countryside and city residents who, going to pubs, spent their time drinking and engaging in pointless activities that led them to corrupt one another; this deeply troubled me. At one particular pub, there was a lot of chaos, and I felt it was my responsibility to go and talk to the owner. I thought I was young, and that several older friends in town had the chance to witness these things; but even though I would have preferred to be excused, I couldn't shake off the feeling that I needed to address it.
The Exercise was heavy; and as I was reading what the Almighty said to Ezekiel, respecting his Duty as a Watchman, the Matter was set home more clearly; and then, with Prayers and Tears, I besought the Lord for his Assistance, who, in Loving-kindness, gave me a resigned Heart: Then, at a suitable Opportunity, I went to the Public-house, and, seeing the Man amongst much Company, I went to him, and told him, I wanted to speak with him; so we went aside, and there, in the Fear of the Almighty, I expressed to him what rested on my Mind; which he took kindly, and afterward shewed more Regard to me than before. In a few Years afterwards he died, middle-aged; and I often thought that, had I neglected my Duty in that Case, it would have given me great Trouble; and I was humbly thankful to my gracious Father, who had supported me herein.
The exercise was tough; and as I was reading what God said to Ezekiel about his role as a Watchman, the message hit home even more clearly. With prayers and tears, I asked the Lord for help, and in His kindness, He gave me a calm heart. Then, when the time was right, I went to the pub, and seeing the man among a crowd, I approached him and said I wanted to talk. We stepped aside, and in reverence to God, I shared what was on my mind. He took it well and afterward showed me more respect than before. A few years later, he passed away in his middle age, and I often thought that if I had ignored my responsibility in that situation, it would have troubled me greatly. I was humbly grateful to my kind Father for supporting me in that moment.
My Employer having a Negro Woman, sold her, and desired me to write a Bill of Sale, the Man being waiting who bought her: The Thing was sudden; and, though[Pg 27] the Thoughts of writing an Instrument of Slavery for one of my Fellow-creatures felt uneasy, yet I remembered I was hired by the Year, that it was my Master who directed me to do it, and that it was an elderly Man, a Member of our Society, who bought her; so, through Weakness, I gave way, and wrote; but, at the executing it, I was so afflicted in my Mind, that I said, before my Master and the Friend, that I believed Slave-keeping to be a Practice inconsistent with the Christian Religion: This in some Degree abated my Uneasiness; yet, as often as I reflected seriously upon it, I thought I should have been clearer, if I had desired to have been excused from it, as a Thing against my Conscience; for such it was. And, some Time after this, a young Man, of our Society, spoke to me to write a Conveyance of a Slave to him, he having lately taken a Negro into his House: I told him I was not easy to write it; for, though many of our Meeting and in other Places kept Slaves, I still believed the Practice was not right, and desired to be excused from the writing. I spoke to him in Good-will; and he told me that keeping Slaves was not altogether agreeable to his Mind; but that the Slave being a Gift to his Wife, he had accepted of her.
My employer had a Black woman and sold her, asking me to write a bill of sale while the buyer was waiting. It all happened suddenly, and even though the idea of writing a document for someone's enslavement made me uncomfortable, I remembered that I was hired by the year, that my boss instructed me to do it, and that the buyer was an older man who was part of our community. So, out of weakness, I went along with it and wrote it. However, when it came time to finalize it, I was so disturbed that I expressed to my boss and the buyer that I believed slavery was inconsistent with the Christian faith. Saying that eased my discomfort a bit, but every time I thought about it seriously, I felt I should have been clearer and asked to be excused from it because it went against my conscience. Some time later, a young man from our community asked me to write up a transfer of a slave to him, as he had recently taken in a Black person. I told him I wasn’t comfortable writing it because, although many in our community and elsewhere owned slaves, I still felt the practice was wrong and wanted to be excused from it. I spoke to him with goodwill, and he replied that having slaves didn’t entirely sit well with him either, but since the slave was a gift to his wife, he had accepted her.
CHAPTER II
His first Journey, on a religious Visit, into East-Jersey, in Company with Abraham Farrington—His Thoughts on merchandizing, and his learning a Trade—His second Journey, with Isaac Andrews, into Pennsylvania, Maryland, Virginia, and North Carolina—His third Journey, with Peter Andrews, through Part of West and East-Jersey—Some Account of his Sister Elizabeth, and her Death—His fourth Journey, with Peter Andrews, through New-York and Long-Island, to New-England—And his fifth Journey, with John Sykes, to the eastern Shore of Maryland, and the lower Counties on Delaware
His first trip, for a religious visit, to East Jersey, with Abraham Farrington—reflecting on business and acquiring a trade—his second trip, with Isaac Andrews, to Pennsylvania, Maryland, Virginia, and North Carolina—his third trip, with Peter Andrews, through parts of West and East Jersey—a brief account of his sister Elizabeth, and her passing—his fourth trip, with Peter Andrews, through New York and Long Island, to New England—and his fifth trip, with John Sykes, to the eastern shore of Maryland, and the lower counties of Delaware.
My esteemed Friend, Abraham Farrington, being about to make a Visit to Friends on the eastern Side of this Province, and having no Companion, he proposed to me to go with him; and, after a Conference with some elderly Friends, I agreed to go: We set out the fifth Day of the ninth Month, in the Year 1743; had an Evening-meeting at a Tavern in Brunswick, a Town in which none of our Society dwelt; the Room was full, and the People quiet. Thence to Amboy, and had an Evening-meeting in the Court-house; to which many People came, amongst whom were several Members of the Assembly, they being in Town on public Affairs of the Province: In both these Meetings my ancient Companion was enlarged to preach, in the Love of the Gospel. Thence we went to Woodbridge, Raway, and Plainfield; and had six or seven Meetings in Places where Meetings of Friends are not usually held, being made up chiefly of Presbyterians; and my beloved Companion was frequently strengthened to publish the Word of Life amongst them: As for me, I was often silent; and, when I spake, it was with much Care, that I might speak only what Truth opened: And I learned some profitable Lessons.—We were out about two Weeks.
My dear friend, Abraham Farrington, was planning to visit friends on the eastern side of this province and asked me to join him since he had no companion. After discussing it with some older friends, I agreed to go. We left on the fifth day of the ninth month in the year 1743 and held an evening meeting at a tavern in Brunswick, a town where none of our community lived. The room was full, and the people were calm. Then we went to Amboy and had an evening meeting in the courthouse, which many people attended, including several members of the Assembly who were in town for provincial business. In both meetings, my longtime companion felt inspired to preach out of love for the Gospel. From there, we traveled to Woodbridge, Raway, and Plainfield, holding six or seven meetings in places where Friends usually don't meet, mostly consisting of Presbyterians. My dear companion was often uplifted to share the Word of Life among them. As for me, I was often quiet, and when I did speak, I did so with great care to express only what truth revealed to me. I learned some valuable lessons along the way. We were away for about two weeks.
Near this Time, being on some outward Business in[Pg 29] which several Families were concerned, and which was attended with Difficulties, some Things relating thereto not being clearly stated, nor rightly understood by all, there arose some Heat in the Minds of the Parties, and one valuable Friend got off his Watch; I had a great Regard for him, and felt a strong Inclination, after Matters were settled, to speak to him concerning his Conduct in that case: But I being a Youth, and he far advanced in Age and Experience, my Way appeared difficult; but, after some Days Deliberation, and inward seeking to the Lord for Assistance, I was made subject; so that I expressed what lay upon me in a Way which became my Youth and his Years: And, though it was a hard Task to me, it was well taken, and, I believe, useful to us both.
Near this time, while handling some external matters in[Pg 29] that involved several families and brought about challenges, some aspects were not clearly stated or understood by everyone involved. Tensions arose among the parties, and one dear friend lost his temper. I cared for him greatly and felt a strong urge, once things were resolved, to talk to him about his behavior in that situation. However, being young and him much older and more experienced, it felt daunting. After several days of thinking and seeking the Lord for guidance, I found the courage to express my thoughts in a way that suited my youth and respected his years. Although it was difficult for me, he received it well, and I believe it was beneficial for both of us.
Having now been several Years with my Employer, and he doing less at Merchandize than heretofore, I was thoughtful of some other Way of Business; perceiving Merchandize to be attended with much Cumber, in the Way of trading in these Parts.
Having spent a few years with my employer, and since he was doing less business than before, I started thinking about other ways to work. I noticed that trading here was quite cumbersome.
My mind, through the Power of Truth, was in a good degree weaned from the Desire of outward Greatness, and I was learning to be content with real Conveniences, that were not costly; so that a Way of Life, free from much Entanglement, appeared best for me, though the Income might be small. I had several Offers of Business that appeared profitable, but did not see my Way clear to accept of them; as believing the Business proposed would be attended with more outward Care than was required of me to engage in.
My mind, through the Power of Truth, was largely detached from the desire for external success, and I was learning to be content with practical comforts that didn't cost much; so a lifestyle free from too much complexity seemed best for me, even if the income was low. I received several business offers that seemed profitable, but I didn't feel it was clear to accept them, believing that the proposed business would involve more external responsibility than I wanted to take on.
I saw that a humble Man, with the blessing of the Lord, might live on a little; and that where the Heart was set on Greatness, Success in Business did not satisfy the craving; but that commonly, with an Increase of Wealth, the Desire of Wealth increased. There was a Care on my Mind so to pass my Time, that nothing might hinder me from the most steady Attention to the Voice of the true Shepherd.
I noticed that a humble person, blessed by the Lord, could get by on very little; and that when the heart was focused on greatness, success in business didn't satisfy that hunger; in fact, usually, with more wealth came an increased desire for more wealth. I was worried about making the most of my time so that nothing would distract me from paying close attention to the voice of the true Shepherd.
My Employer, though now a Retailer of Goods, was by Trade a Taylor, and kept a Servant-man at that[Pg 30] Business; and I began to think about learning the Trade, expecting that, if I should settle, I might, by this Trade and a little retailing of Goods, get a Living in a plain Way, without the Load of great Business: I mentioned it to my Employer, and we soon agreed on Terms; and then, when I had Leisure from the Affairs of Merchandize, I worked with his Man. I believed the Hand of Providence pointed out this Business for me; and was taught to be content with it, though I felt, at Times, a Disposition that would have sought for something greater: But, through the Revelation of Jesus Christ, I had seen the Happiness of Humility, and there was an earnest Desire in me to enter deep into it; and, at Times, this Desire arose to a Degree of fervent Supplication, wherein my Soul was so environed with heavenly Light and Consolation, that Things were made easy to me which had been otherwise.
My employer, although now a retailer of goods, was originally a tailor and had an employee working in that trade. I started to think about learning the trade myself, believing that if I settled down, I could make a living simply through tailoring and some retailing, without the burden of running a big business. I brought it up with my employer, and we quickly came to an agreement. When I had free time from my retail duties, I worked with his employee. I felt that Providence pointed me toward this trade, and I learned to be content with it, even though sometimes I felt a pull to pursue something bigger. However, through my faith in Jesus Christ, I discovered the joy of humility, and I genuinely wanted to embrace it fully. At times, this desire became a passionate prayer, during which my soul was surrounded by heavenly light and comfort, making things easier for me that would have otherwise been difficult.
After some Time, my Employer's Wife died; she was a virtuous Woman, and generally beloved of her Neighbours; and, soon after this, he left shop-keeping, and we parted. I then wrought at my Trade, as a Taylor; carefully attended Meetings for Worship and Discipline; and found an Enlargement of Gospel-love in my Mind, and therein a Concern to visit Friends in some of the Back-settlements of Pennsylvania and Virginia; and, being thoughtful about a Companion, I expressed it to my beloved Friend, Isaac Andrews, who then told me that he had Drawings to the same Places; also to go through Maryland, Virginia, and Carolina. After considerable Time past, and several Conferences with him, I felt easy to accompany him throughout, if Way opened for it. I opened the Case in our Monthly-meeting; and, Friends expressing their Unity therewith, we obtained Certificates to travel as Companions; his from Haddonfield, and mine from Burlington.
After some time, my employer's wife passed away; she was a good person and well-loved by her neighbors. Soon after that, he quit running the shop, and we went our separate ways. I then worked at my trade as a tailor, regularly attended meetings for worship and discipline, and felt an expanding sense of gospel love in my mind, along with a desire to visit friends in some of the back settlements of Pennsylvania and Virginia. Since I was considering finding a companion for this journey, I shared my thoughts with my dear friend, Isaac Andrews, who mentioned that he also felt drawn to the same places, including Maryland, Virginia, and Carolina. After some time and various discussions with him, I felt comfortable accompanying him if the way opened up. I brought up the situation in our monthly meeting, and after friends expressed their support, we got certificates to travel as companions—his from Haddonfield and mine from Burlington.
We left our Province on the twelfth Day of the third Month, in the Year 1746, and had several Meetings in the upper Part of Chester County, and near Lancaster; in some of which, the Love of Christ prevailed, uniting us together in his Service. Then we crossed the River[Pg 31] Susquehannah, and had several Meetings in a new Settlement, called the Red-Lands; the oldest of which, as I was informed, did not exceed ten Years. It is the poorer Sort of People that commonly begin to improve remote Desarts: With a small Stock they have Houses to build, Lands to clear and fence, Corn to raise, Clothes to provide, and Children to educate; that Friends, who visit such, may well sympathise with them in their Hardships in the Wilderness; and though the best Entertainment such can give may seem coarse to some who are used to Cities, or old settled Places, it becomes the Disciples of Christ to be content with it. Our Hearts were sometimes enlarged in the Love of our heavenly Father amongst these People; and the sweet Influence of his Spirit supported us through some Difficulties: To him be the Praise!
We left our Province on the twelfth day of the third month in the year 1746 and had several meetings in the upper part of Chester County and near Lancaster. In some of these meetings, the love of Christ brought us together in his service. Then we crossed the river[Pg 31] Susquehannah and had several meetings in a new settlement called the Red-Lands; the oldest of which, as I was told, was no more than ten years old. It’s usually the poorer folks who start to improve remote areas. With a small amount of resources, they have houses to build, land to clear and fence, corn to grow, clothes to provide, and children to educate. So, Friends who visit these people can truly empathize with them in their struggles in the wilderness. Although the best hospitality they can offer may seem basic to those accustomed to cities or established places, it’s important for the disciples of Christ to be content with it. Our hearts were often filled with the love of our heavenly Father among these people, and the comforting presence of his spirit helped us through some challenges. To him be the praise!
We passed on to Monoquacy, Fairfax, Hopewell, and Shanando, and had Meetings; some of which were comfortable and edifying. From Shanando we set off in the Afternoon for the old Settlements of Friends in Virginia; and, the first Night, we, with our Pilot, lodged in the Woods, our Horses feeding near us; but he being poorly provided with a Horse, and we young and having good Horses, were free the next Day to part with him; and did so. In two Days after, we reached to our Friend John Cheagle's, in Virginia; so we took the Meetings in our Way through Virginia; were, in some Degree, baptized into a feeling Sense of the Conditions of the People; and our Exercise in general was more painful in these old Settlements, than it had been amongst the back Inhabitants: But, through the Goodness of our heavenly Father, the Well of living Waters was, at Times, opened to our Encouragement and the Refreshment of the sincere-hearted. We went on to Perquimons, in North-Carolina, had several Meetings, which were large, and found some Openness in those Parts, and a hopeful Appearance amongst the young People. So we turned again to Virginia, and attended most of the Meetings which we had not been at before, labouring amongst Friends in the Love of Jesus Christ, as Ability was given; and thence went to the Mountains, up James-River, to a new Settlement,[Pg 32] and had several Meetings amongst the People, some of whom had lately joined in Membership with our Society.
We moved on to Monoquacy, Fairfax, Hopewell, and Shanando, where we held Meetings; some of which were fulfilling and uplifting. After Shanando, we departed in the afternoon for the old Friends' Settlements in Virginia. The first night, we, along with our guide, stayed in the woods, with our horses grazing nearby; but since he was not well-equipped with a horse, and we were young with good horses, we were free the next day to part ways with him, and we did. Two days later, we arrived at our friend John Cheagle's in Virginia; we attended Meetings along the way through Virginia, and developed a deeper understanding of the people's situation. Our experience there was generally more challenging in these old Settlements than it had been with the backcountry inhabitants. However, thanks to our heavenly Father, at times the Well of living Waters was opened to encourage us and refresh the sincere-hearted. We continued to Perquimons in North Carolina, held several large Meetings, and found some openness there, along with a promising outlook among the young people. We then returned to Virginia and attended most of the Meetings we hadn’t been to before, working among Friends in the love of Jesus Christ as we were able; from there, we went to the mountains, up James River, to a new Settlement,[Pg 32] and held several Meetings among the people, some of whom had recently joined our Society.
In our journeying to and fro, we found some honest-hearted Friends, who appeared to be concerned for the Cause of Truth among a backsliding People.
In our travels back and forth, we came across some genuine Friends who seemed to care about the Cause of Truth among a people who were losing their way.
From Virginia, we crossed over the River Patowmac, at Hoe's Ferry, and made a general Visit to the Meetings of Friends on the Western Shore of Maryland; and were at their Quarterly-meeting. We had some hard Labour amongst them, endeavouring to discharge our Duty honestly as Way opened, in the Love of Truth: And thence taking sundry Meetings in our Way, we passed homeward; where, through the Favour of divine Providence we reached the sixteenth Day of the sixth Month, in the Year 1746; and I may say that, through the Assistance of the Holy Spirit, my Companion and I travelled in Harmony, and parted in the Nearness of true brotherly Love.
From Virginia, we crossed the Potomac River at Hoe's Ferry and made a general visit to the Friends' Meetings on the Western Shore of Maryland; we attended their quarterly meeting. We put in a lot of effort among them, trying to fulfill our duty sincerely as opportunities arose, guided by the love of truth. After that, we attended several meetings on our way back home, and by the grace of divine Providence, we arrived on the sixteenth day of the sixth month in the year 1746. I can say that, with the help of the Holy Spirit, my companion and I traveled in harmony and parted with a deep sense of true brotherly love.
Two Things were remarkable to me in this Journey; first, in Regard to my Entertainment, when I ate, drank, and lodged at free-cost, with People who lived in Ease on the hard Labour of their Slaves, I felt uneasy; and, as my Mind was inward to the Lord, I found, from Place to Place, this Uneasiness return upon me, at Times, through the whole Visit. Where the Masters bore a good Share of the Burthen, and lived frugally, so that their Servants were well provided for, and their Labour moderate, I felt more easy; but where they lived in a costly Way, and laid heavy Burthens on their Slaves, my Exercise was often great, and I frequently had Conversation with them, in private, concerning it. Secondly; this Trade of importing Slaves from their native Country being much encouraged amongst them, and the white People and their Children so generally living without much Labour, was frequently the Subject of my serious Thoughts: And I saw in these southern Provinces so many Vices and Corruptions, increased by this Trade and this Way of Life, that it appeared to me as a Gloom over the Land; and though now many willingly run into it, yet, in future,[Pg 33] the Consequence will be grievous to Posterity: I express it as it hath appeared to me, not at once nor twice, but as a Matter fixed on my Mind.
Two things stood out to me on this journey. First, regarding my hospitality, when I ate, drank, and stayed for free with people who lived comfortably off the hard work of their slaves, I felt uneasy. As I focused inwardly on the Lord, this unease would return to me from place to place throughout the visit. When the masters shared the burden and lived modestly, ensuring their servants were well taken care of and their work was light, I felt more at ease. But when they lived extravagantly and imposed heavy burdens on their slaves, I often found myself concerned, and I frequently talked to them privately about it. Secondly, the trade of importing slaves from their homeland was heavily promoted among them, and the white people and their children generally lived without much labor, which was a frequent topic of my serious contemplation. I observed so many vices and corruptions in these southern provinces, amplified by this trade and lifestyle, that it felt like a darkness over the land. While many are drawn to it now, I believe the consequences will be severe for future generations. I express this as I have seen it, not just once or twice, but as a firmly held thought in my mind.
Soon after my Return Home, I felt an increasing Concern for Friends on our Sea-coast; and, on the eighth Day of the eighth Month, in the Year 1746, with the Unity of Friends, and in Company with my beloved Friend and Neighbour, Peter Andrews, Brother to my Companion before-mentioned, we set forward, and visited Meetings generally about Salem, Cape May, Great and Little Egg-Harbour; and had Meetings at Barnagat, Mannahocking, and Mane-Squan, and so to the Yearly-meeting at Shrewsbury. Through the Goodness of the Lord Way was opened, and the Strength of divine Love was sometimes felt in our Assemblies, to the Comfort and Help of those who were rightly concerned before him. We were out twenty-two Days, and rode, by Computation, three hundred and forty Miles. At Shrewsbury Yearly-meeting, we met with our dear Friends Michael Lightfoot and Abraham Farrington, who had good Service there.
Soon after I got back home, I started to worry more about friends along the coast. On the eighth day of the eighth month in 1746, with the support of my friends and alongside my dear friend and neighbor, Peter Andrews, who is the brother of my previously mentioned companion, we set out and visited meetings around Salem, Cape May, Great and Little Egg-Harbour; we also held meetings in Barnagat, Mannahocking, and Mane-Squan, and then went to the yearly meeting at Shrewsbury. Thanks to the Lord's goodness, we were able to make our way, and we sometimes felt the strength of divine love during our gatherings, which comforted and supported those genuinely concerned for Him. We were out for twenty-two days, covering roughly three hundred and forty miles. At the Shrewsbury yearly meeting, we reunited with our dear friends Michael Lightfoot and Abraham Farrington, who had done great work there.
The Winter following my eldest Sister, Elizabeth Woolman, jun. died of the Small-pox, aged thirty-one Years. She was, from her Youth, of a thoughtful Disposition; and very compassionate to her Acquaintance in their Sickness or Distress, being ready to help as far as she could. She was dutiful to her Parents; one Instance whereof follows:—It happened that she, and two of her Sisters, being then near the Estate of young Women, had an Inclination, one First-day after Meeting, to go on a Visit to some other young Women at some Distance off; whose Company, I believe, would have done them no Good. They expressed their Desire to our Parents; who were dissatisfied with the Proposal, and stopped them. The same Day, as my Sisters and I were together, and they talking about their Disappointment, Elizabeth expressed her Contentment under it; signifying, she believed it might be for their Good.
The winter after my oldest sister, Elizabeth Woolman, Jr., died from smallpox at the age of thirty-one, she was, since her youth, a thoughtful person who showed great compassion to her friends in times of sickness or distress, always ready to help as much as she could. She was respectful and obedient to our parents. One example of this occurred when she and two of my sisters, being in their late teens, wanted to visit some other young women who lived a good distance away one Sunday after meeting. I believe spending time with those girls wouldn’t have been beneficial for them. They shared their desire with our parents, who were unhappy with the idea and stopped them. Later that same day, while my sisters and I were together discussing their disappointment, Elizabeth shared that she was actually okay with it, stating that she thought it might be for their own good.
A few Years after she attained to mature-Age, through the gracious Visitations of God's Love, she was strengthened[Pg 34] to live a self-denying exemplary Life, giving herself much to Reading and Meditation.
A few years after she reached adulthood, through the wonderful blessings of God's Love, she was empowered[Pg 34] to live a selfless and exemplary life, dedicating herself to reading and meditation.
The following Letter may shew, in some Degree, her Disposition.
The following letter may show, to some extent, her attitude.
Haddonfield, 1st Day, 11th Month, 1743.
Haddonfield, November 1st, 1743.
Beloved Brother, John Woolman,—In that Love which desires the Welfare of all Men, I write unto thee: I received thine, dated second Day of the tenth Month last, with which I was comforted. My Spirit is bowed with Thankfulness that I should be remembered, who am unworthy; but the Lord is full of Mercy, and his Goodness is extended to the meanest of his Creation; therefore, in his infinite Love, he hath pitied, and spared, and shewed Mercy, that I have not been cut off nor quite lost; but, at Times, I am refreshed and comforted as with the Glimpse of his Presence, which is more to the immortal Part, than all which this World can afford: So, with Desires for thy Preservation with my own, I remain
Dear Brother, John Woolman,—I write to you out of a love that cares for the well-being of everyone. I received your letter dated October 2nd, which brought me comfort. I’m so grateful to be remembered, even though I feel unworthy; however, the Lord is full of mercy, and His goodness reaches even the smallest of His creation. In His infinite love, He has shown compassion, spared me, and offered mercy, so I have not been cut off or completely lost. Still, at times, I find refreshment and comfort in a glimpse of His presence, which means more to my eternal self than anything this world can provide. So, wishing for your safety as well as my own, I remain
Your loving Sister,
Eliz. Woolman, jun.
In the fore Part of her Illness she was in great Sadness and Dejection of Mind, of which she told one of her intimate Friends, and said, When I was a young Girl I was wanton and airy, but I thought I had thoroughly repented of it; and added, I have of late had great Satisfaction in Meetings. Though she was thus disconsolate, still she retained a Hope, which was as an Anchor to her: And sometime after, the same Friend came again to see her, to whom she mentioned her former Expressions, and said, It is otherwise now, for the Lord hath rewarded me seven fold; and I am unable to express the Greatness of his Love manifested to me. Her Disorder appearing dangerous, and our Mother being sorrowful, she took Notice of it, and said, Dear Mother, weep not for me; I go to my God: And, many Times, with an audible Voice, uttered Praise to her Redeemer.
In the early part of her illness, she felt a deep sadness and depression, which she shared with one of her close friends. She said, "When I was a young girl, I was carefree and reckless, but I thought I had truly repented for it." She added, "Recently, I've found great joy in gatherings." Despite her sadness, she held onto hope like an anchor. Later, when the same friend visited her again, she referenced her earlier feelings and said, "Things are different now; the Lord has blessed me abundantly, and I can't express the depth of His love shown to me." As her condition worsened and our mother became upset, she noticed and said, "Dear mother, don't cry for me; I'm going to my God." Many times, she praised her Redeemer aloud.
A Friend, coming some Miles to see her the Morning before she died, asked her, how she did? She answered, I have had a hard Night, but shall not have another such,[Pg 35] for I shall die, and it will be well with my Soul; and accordingly died the next Evening.
A friend came a few miles to see her the morning before she died and asked her how she was doing. She replied, "I've had a rough night, but I won’t have to endure another one like it, because I’m going to die, and it will be good for my soul." She passed away that next evening.[Pg 35]
The following Ejaculations were found amongst her Writings; written, I believe, at four Times:
The following thoughts were found among her writings; I believe they were written at four different times:
I. Oh! that my Head were as Waters, and mine Eyes as a Fountain of Tears, that I might weep Day and Night, until acquainted with my God.
I. Oh! I wish my head were like waters, and my eyes like a fountain of tears, so that I could cry day and night until I truly know my God.
II. O Lord, that I may enjoy thy Presence! or else my Time is lost, and my Life a Snare to my Soul.
II. Oh Lord, let me feel your presence! Otherwise, my time feels wasted, and my life is a trap for my soul.
III. O Lord, that I may receive Bread from thy Table, and that thy Grace may abound in me!
III. Oh Lord, may I receive Bread from your Table, and may your Grace overflow in me!
IV. O Lord, that I may be acquainted with thy Presence, that I may be seasoned with thy Salt, that thy Grace may abound in me!
IV. O Lord, may I come to know your Presence, may I be infused with your Salt, may your Grace overflow in me!
Of late I found Drawings in my Mind to visit Friends in New-England, and, having an Opportunity of joining in Company with my beloved Friend, Peter Andrews, we, having obtained Certificates from our Monthly-meeting, set forward on the sixteenth Day of the third Month, in the Year 1747, and reached the Yearly-meeting at Long-Island; at which were our Friends Samuel Nottingham, from England, John Griffith, Jane Hoskins, and Elizbeth Hudson, from Pennsylvania, and Jacob Andrews, from Chesterfield. Several of whom were favoured in their publick Exercise; and, through the Goodness of the Lord, we had some edifying Meetings. After this, my Companion and I visited Friends on Long-Island; and, through the Mercies of God we were helped in the Work.
Recently, I had the idea to visit friends in New England, and when I had the chance to travel with my dear friend, Peter Andrews, we got Certificates from our Monthly meeting and set out on the sixteenth day of the third month in the year 1747. We reached the Yearly meeting at Long Island, where we met our friends Samuel Nottingham from England, John Griffith, Jane Hoskins, and Elizabeth Hudson from Pennsylvania, and Jacob Andrews from Chesterfield. Several of them were blessed in their public speaking, and by the goodness of the Lord, we had some enriching meetings. After that, my companion and I visited friends on Long Island, and, by the mercies of God, we were supported in our work.
Besides going to the settled Meetings of Friends, we were at a general Meeting at Setawket, chiefly made up of other Societies; and had a Meeting at Oyster-Bay in a Dwelling-house, at which were many People: At the first of which there was not much said by way of Testimony; but it was I believe, a good Meeting: At the latter, through the springing up of living Waters, it was a Day to be thankfully remembered. Having visited the Island, we went over to the Main, taking Meetings in our Way, to Oblong, Nine Partners, and New-Milford.—In these back Settlements we met with several People,[Pg 36] who, through the immediate Workings of the Spirit of Christ in their Minds, were drawn from the Vanities of the World, to an inward Acquaintance with him: They were educated in the Way of the Presbyterians. A considerable Number of the Youth, Members of that Society, used to spend their Time often together in merriment; but some of the principal young Men of that Company being visited by the powerful Workings of the Spirit of Christ, and thereby led humbly to take up his Cross, could no longer join in those Vanities; and, as these stood stedfast to that inward Convincement, they were made a Blessing to some of their former Companions; so that, through the Power of Truth, several were brought into a close Exercise concerning the eternal Well-being of their Souls. These young People continued for a Time to frequent their publick Worship; and, besides that, had Meetings of their own; which Meetings were a while allowed by their Preacher, who, sometimes, met with them: But, in Time, their Judgment, in Matters of Religion, disagreeing with some of the Articles of the Presbyterians, their Meetings were disapproved by that Society; and such of them as stood firm to their Duty, as it was inwardly manifested, had many Difficulties to go through. And their Meetings were in a while dropped; some of them returning to the Presbyterians; and others of them, after a Time, joined our religious Society. I had Conversation with some of the latter, to my Help and Edification; and believe several of them are acquainted with the Nature of that Worship, which is performed in Spirit and in Truth.
Besides attending the regular Meetings of Friends, we were at a general Meeting at Setawket, mainly consisting of other Societies; and had a Meeting at Oyster-Bay in a home, where many people gathered. At the first one, not much was said in the way of Testimony, but I believe it was a good Meeting. At the latter, with the outpouring of living Waters, it was a day to be remembered with gratitude. After visiting the Island, we crossed over to the Main, stopping for Meetings along the way to Oblong, Nine Partners, and New-Milford. In these outlying areas, we connected with several people,[Pg 36] who, through the direct influence of the Spirit of Christ in their minds, turned away from the world's distractions to develop an inward relationship with Him. They were raised in the tradition of the Presbyterians. A significant number of the youth, members of that community, often spent their time together in joy and fun. However, some of the key young men in that group experienced the powerful influence of the Spirit of Christ, which led them humbly to carry their Cross, and they could no longer participate in those distractions. As they remained steadfast in their inner convictions, they became a blessing to some of their former companions, drawing several into a serious consideration regarding the eternal well-being of their souls through the Power of Truth. These young people initially continued attending their public Worship but also held Meetings of their own; these Meetings were permitted for a time by their Preacher, who sometimes joined them. However, over time, as their beliefs about religion started to differ from some of the Presbyterians’ doctrines, their Meetings were disapproved by that community. Those who remained committed to their spiritual duty, as it was revealed to them, faced many challenges. Eventually, their Meetings were abandoned; some returned to the Presbyterians, while others eventually joined our religious Society. I conversed with some of the latter, which was helpful and uplifting for me; I believe many of them understand the nature of Worship that is done in Spirit and in Truth.
From hence, accompanied by Amos Powel, a Friend from Long-Island, we rode through Connecticut, chiefly inhabited by Presbyterians, who were generally civil to us; and, after three Days riding, we came amongst Friends in the Colony of Rhode-Island. We visited Friends in and about Newport, and Dartmouth, and generally in those Parts; and then to Boston; and proceeded eastward as far as Dover; and then returned to Newport; and, not far from thence, we met our Friend, Thomas Gawthrop, from England, who was then on a[Pg 37] Visit to these Provinces. From Newport we sailed to Nantucket; were there near a Week; and from thence came over to Dartmouth: And having finished our Visit in these Parts, we crossed the Sound from New-London to Long-Island; and, taking some Meetings on the Island, proceeded homeward; where we reached the thirteenth Day of the seventh Month, in the Year 1747, having rode about fifteen hundred Miles, and sailed about one hundred and fifty.
From there, joined by Amos Powell, a Friend from Long Island, we traveled through Connecticut, which was mostly populated by Presbyterians who were generally polite to us. After three days of riding, we arrived among Friends in the Colony of Rhode Island. We visited Friends in and around Newport and Dartmouth and generally in those areas; then we went to Boston and traveled eastward as far as Dover; afterward, we returned to Newport. Not far from there, we met our Friend, Thomas Gawthrop, from England, who was on a [Pg 37] visit to these provinces. From Newport, we sailed to Nantucket and stayed there for nearly a week; then we went back over to Dartmouth. After finishing our visit in these areas, we crossed the Sound from New London to Long Island and, after attending some meetings on the island, headed home, arriving on the thirteenth day of the seventh month in the year 1747, having traveled about fifteen hundred miles and sailed around one hundred and fifty.
In this Journey, I may say, in general, we were sometimes in much Weakness, and laboured under Discouragements; and at other Times, through the renewed Manifestations of divine Love, we had seasons of Refreshment, wherein the Power of Truth prevailed.
In this journey, I can say that at times we felt quite weak and struggled with discouragement. However, during other moments, through renewed signs of divine love, we experienced times of refreshment when the power of truth triumphed.
We were taught, by renewed Experience, to labour for an inward Stillness; at no Time to seek for Words, but to live in the Spirit of Truth, and utter that to the People which Truth opened in us. My beloved Companion and I belonged to one Meeting, came forth in the Ministry near the same Time, and were inwardly united in the Work; he was about thirteen Years older than I, bore the heaviest Burthen, and was an Instrument of the greatest Use.
We learned, through new experiences, to work towards inner peace; never searching for words but living in the spirit of truth, expressing what truth revealed to us. My dear companion and I were part of the same group, started our ministry around the same time, and were deeply connected in our work; he was about thirteen years older than me, carried the heaviest burdens, and was incredibly helpful.
Finding a Concern to visit Friends in the lower Counties on Delaware, and on the eastern Shore of Maryland, and having an Opportunity to join with my well-beloved ancient Friend, John Sykes, we obtained Certificates, and set off the seventh Day of the eighth Month, in the Year 1748; were at the Meetings of Friends in the lower Counties, attended the Yearly-meeting at Little-Creek, and made a Visit to the chief of the Meetings on the eastern Shore; and so Home by Way of Nottingham: Were abroad about six Weeks, and rode, by Computation, about five hundred and fifty Miles.
Finding a reason to visit friends in the lower counties of Delaware and on the eastern shore of Maryland, and having the chance to join my dear old friend, John Sykes, we got our certificates and set off on the seventh day of the eighth month in 1748. We attended the Friends' meetings in the lower counties, participated in the yearly meeting at Little-Creek, and visited the main meetings on the eastern shore. We traveled home via Nottingham. We were away for about six weeks and rode approximately five hundred and fifty miles.
Our Exercise, at Times, was heavy; but, through the Goodness of the Lord, we were often refreshed; and I may say, by Experience, He is a strong Hold in the Day of Trouble. Though our Society, in these Parts, appeared to me to be in a declining Condition; yet, I believe, the Lord hath a People amongst them, who labour to serve him uprightly, but have many Difficulties to encounter.
Our tasks were sometimes tough, but thanks to the goodness of the Lord, we were often uplifted. From my experience, He is a stronghold in times of trouble. Although it seems to me that our group in this area is declining, I believe there are still people among them who strive to serve Him sincerely, even though they face many challenges.
CHAPTER III
His Marriage—The Death of his Father—His Journies into the upper Part of New-Jersey, and afterwards into Pennsylvania—Considerations on keeping Slaves, and his Visits to the Families of Friends at several Times and Places—An Epistle from the General Meeting—His Journey to Long-Island—Considerations on Trading, and on the Use of spirituous Liquors and costly Apparel—And his Letter to a Friend
His Marriage—The Death of His Father—His Travels to the northern part of New Jersey, and later to Pennsylvania—Thoughts on Slavery and His Visits to Friends' Families at Various Times and Places—A Message from the General Meeting—His Trip to Long Island—Thoughts on Trade, the Use of Alcohol, and Expensive Clothing—And His Letter to a Friend
About this Time, believing it good for me to settle, and thinking seriously about a Companion, my Heart was turned to the Lord with Desires that he would give me Wisdom to proceed therein agreeable to his Will; and he was pleased to give me a well-inclined Damsel, Sarah Ellis; to whom I was married the eighteenth Day of the eighth Month, in the Year 1749.
About this time, thinking it was best for me to settle down and seriously considering a partner, my heart turned to the Lord with a desire for Wisdom to guide me in this according to His will; and He blessed me with a kind young woman, Sarah Ellis; whom I married on the 18th day of the 8th month in the year 1749.
In the fall of the Year 1750 died my Father, Samuel Woolman, with a Fever, aged about sixty Years.
In the fall of 1750, my father, Samuel Woolman, passed away from a fever at around sixty years old.
In his Life-time he manifested much Care for us his Children, that in our Youth we might learn to fear the Lord; often endeavouring to imprint in our Minds the true Principles of Virtue, and particularly to cherish in us a Spirit of Tenderness, not only towards poor People, but also towards all Creatures of which we had the Command.
In his lifetime, he showed a lot of care for us, his children, so that in our youth we could learn to respect the Lord. He often tried to instill in us the true principles of virtue, especially encouraging us to have a spirit of kindness, not just towards poor people, but towards all living beings over which we had control.
After my Return from Carolina, in the Year 1746, I made some Observations on keeping Slaves, which some Time before his Decease I shewed him; and he perused the Manuscript, proposed a few Alterations, and appeared well satisfied that I found a Concern on that Account: And in his last Sickness, as I was watching with him one Night, he being so far spent that there was no Expectation of his Recovery, but having the perfect Use of his Understanding, he asked me concerning the Manuscript, whether I expected soon to proceed to take the Advice[Pg 39] of Friends in publishing it? And, after some Conversation thereon, said, I have all along been deeply affected with the Oppression of the poor Negroes; and now, at last, my Concern for them is as great as ever.
After I got back from Carolina in 1746, I made some observations on keeping slaves, which I showed him some time before he passed away. He read the manuscript, suggested a few changes, and seemed pleased that I cared about the issue. During his last illness, while I was keeping watch with him one night, he was so weak that there was no hope for his recovery, but he was still fully conscious. He asked me about the manuscript, specifically whether I planned to seek friends’ advice soon on publishing it. After some discussion, he said, "I've always been deeply troubled by the oppression of the poor Negroes, and now, at last, my concern for them is as strong as ever."
By his Direction I had wrote his Will in a Time of Health, and that Night he desired me to read it to him, which I did; and he said it was agreeable to his Mind. He then made mention of his End, which he believed was near; and signified, that, though he was sensible of many Imperfections in the Course of his Life, yet his Experience of the Power of Truth, and of the Love and Goodness of God from Time to Time, even till now, was such, that he had no Doubt but that, in leaving this Life, he should enter into one more happy.
By his request, I wrote his will while he was well, and that night he asked me to read it to him, which I did; he said it was in line with his wishes. He then mentioned that he believed his end was near and expressed that, while he was aware of many imperfections throughout his life, his experiences of the power of truth and the love and goodness of God, even to this day, gave him no doubt that leaving this life would lead him to a happier one.
The next Day his Sister Elizabeth came to see him, and told him of the Decease of their Sister Ann, who died a few Days before: He then said, I reckon Sister Ann was free to leave this World: Elizabeth said, she was. He then said, I also am free to leave it; and, being in great Weakness of Body, said, I hope I shall shortly go to Rest. He continued in a weighty Frame of Mind, and was sensible till near the last.
The next day, his sister Elizabeth came to visit him and told him about the passing of their sister Ann, who had died a few days earlier. He then said, "I guess sister Ann was ready to leave this world." Elizabeth replied that she was. He then said, "I’m also ready to leave it," and, feeling very weak, added, "I hope to find rest soon." He remained in a serious state of mind and was aware of everything until almost the end.
On the second Day of the ninth Month, in the Year 1751, feeling Drawings in my Mind to visit Friends at the Great-Meadows, in the upper Part of West-Jersey, with the Unity of our Monthly-meeting, I went there; and had some searching laborious Exercise amongst Friends in those Parts, and found inward Peace therein.
On the second day of the ninth month in 1751, feeling a strong urge to visit friends at the Great-Meadows in the northern part of West-Jersey, and with the support of our monthly meeting, I went there. I engaged in some deep and trying work with friends in that area and found inner peace in the process.
In the ninth Month of the Year 1753, in Company with my well-esteemed Friend John Sykes, and with the Unity of Friends, we travelled about two Weeks, visiting Friends in Bucks-County. We laboured in the Love of the Gospel, according to the Measure received; and, through the Mercies of him, who is Strength to the Poor who trust in him, we found Satisfaction in our Visit: And, in the next Winter, Way opening to visit Friends Families within the Compass of our Monthly-meeting, partly by the Labours of two Friends from Pennsylvania, I joined in some Part of the Work; having had a Desire some Time that it might go forward amongst us.[Pg 40]
In September of 1753, alongside my good friend John Sykes, and with the support of our community, we traveled for about two weeks, visiting friends in Bucks County. We worked in the spirit of the Gospel, according to the gifts we had received; and, thanks to the mercy of the one who is strength to the needy who trust in him, we found fulfillment in our visit. The following winter, as the opportunity arose to visit friends' families within the scope of our monthly meeting, partly due to the efforts of two friends from Pennsylvania, I participated in some of the work, having desired for some time that it would progress among us.[Pg 40]
About this Time, a Person at some Distance lying sick, his Brother came to me to write his Will: I knew he had Slaves; and, asking his Brother, was told he intended to leave them as Slaves to his Children. As Writing is a profitable Employ, and as offending sober People was disagreeable to my Inclination, I was straitened in my Mind; but, as I looked to the Lord, he inclined my Heart to his Testimony: And I told the Man, that I believed the Practice of continuing Slavery to this People was not right; and had a Scruple in my Mind against doing Writings of that Kind; that, though many in our Society kept them as Slaves, still I was not easy to be concerned in it; and desired to be excused from going to write the Will. I spake to him in the Fear of the Lord; and he made no Reply to what I said, but went away: He, also, had some Concerns in the Practice; and I thought he was displeased with me. In this Case I had a fresh Confirmation, that acting contrary to present outward Interest, from a Motive of divine Love, and in Regard to Truth and Righteousness, opens the Way to a Treasure better than Silver, and to a Friendship exceeding the Friendship of Men.
Around this time, a person who was quite far away and sick had his brother come to me to write his will. I knew he owned slaves, and when I asked his brother, he told me that the sick man intended to leave them as slaves to his children. Writing wills is a profitable job, and I didn't like the idea of upsetting decent people, so I was conflicted. However, as I turned to the Lord, He led my heart to His truth. I told the brother that I believed continuing the practice of slavery for these people was wrong and that I had a strong hesitation about writing such a will. Even though many in our community owned slaves, I didn’t feel right being part of it, and I asked to be excused from writing the will. I spoke to him with a sense of reverence for the Lord, and he didn’t respond but left instead. He also had some involvement in the practice, and I sensed he was unhappy with me. In this situation, I received a renewed confirmation that choosing to act against immediate personal interests out of divine love, and in pursuit of truth and righteousness, opens the path to a treasure greater than silver and a friendship deeper than any human connection.
The Manuscript before-mentioned having lain by me several Years, the Publication of it rested weightily upon me; and this Year I offered it to the Revisal of Friends, who, having examined and made some small Alterations in it, directed a Number of Copies thereof to be published, and dispersed amongst Friends.
The previously mentioned manuscript sat with me for several years, and the decision to publish it weighed heavily on me. This year, I submitted it to my peers for review, and after they examined it and made a few small changes, they ordered several copies to be published and distributed among our community.
In the Year 1754, I found my Mind drawn to join in a Visit to Friends Families belonging to Chesterfield Monthly-meeting; and having the Approbation of our own, I went to their Monthly-meeting in order to confer with Friends, and see if Way opened for it: I had Conference with some of their Members, the Proposal having been opened before in their Meeting, and one Friend agreed to join with me as a Companion for a Beginning; but, when Meeting was ended, I felt great Distress of Mind, and doubted what Way to take, or whether to go Home and wait for greater Clearness: I kept my Distress secret; and, going with a Friend to his House, my[Pg 41] Desires were to the great Shepherd for his heavenly Instruction; and in the Morning I felt easy to proceed on the Visit, being very low in my Mind: And as mine Eye was turned to the Lord, waiting in Families in deep Reverence before him, he was pleased graciously to afford Help; so that we had many comfortable Opportunities, and it appeared as a fresh Visitation to some young People. I spent several Weeks this Winter in the Service, Part of which Time was employed near Home. And again, in the following Winter, I was several Weeks in the same Service; some Part of the Time at Shrewsbury, in Company with my beloved Friend, John Sykes; and have Cause humbly to acknowledge, that, through the Goodness of the Lord, our Hearts were, at Times, enlarged in his Love; and Strength was given to go through the Trials which, in the Course of our Visit, attended us.
In the year 1754, I felt compelled to visit the families of Friends belonging to Chesterfield Monthly Meeting. With the approval of my own meeting, I went to their Monthly Meeting to discuss with Friends and see if the way was clear for this visit. I spoke with some of their members, as the proposal had already been mentioned in their meeting, and one Friend agreed to join me as a companion to get started. However, after the meeting ended, I felt a lot of inner turmoil and wasn't sure what to do or if I should go home and wait for clearer guidance. I kept my distress to myself, and, going to a Friend's house, my[Pg 41] thoughts were directed to the great Shepherd for His heavenly guidance. In the morning, I felt reassured enough to proceed with the visit, despite feeling quite low. As I turned my focus to the Lord, waiting in families with deep reverence, He graciously provided the help I needed, allowing us many comforting opportunities, which seemed like a fresh visitation for some young people. I spent several weeks that winter in this service, part of which took place close to home. The following winter, I again engaged in this service for several weeks, including some time at Shrewsbury, accompanied by my dear friend, John Sykes. I humbly acknowledge that, by the Lord's goodness, our hearts were, at times, filled with His love, and we received strength to endure the challenges that arose during our visit.
From a Disagreement between the Powers of England and France, it was now a Time of Trouble on this Continent; and an Epistle to Friends went forth from our General Spring-meeting, which I thought good to give a Place in this Journal.
From a disagreement between the powers of England and France, it was now a time of trouble on this continent; and a letter to friends went out from our general spring meeting, which I thought would be good to include in this journal.
An EPISTLE from our General Spring-meeting of Ministers and Elders for Pennsylvania and New-Jersey, held at Philadelphia, from the 29th of the third Month, to the first of the fourth Month, inclusive, 1755.
An EPISTLE from our General Spring meeting of Ministers and Elders for Pennsylvania and New Jersey, held in Philadelphia, from the 29th of March to the 1st of April, inclusive, 1755.
To Friends on the Continent of America.
To Friends on the Continent of America.
Dear Friends,—In an humble Sense of divine Goodness, and the gracious Continuation of God's Love to his People, we tenderly salute you; and are at this Time therein engaged in Mind, that all of us who profess the Truth, as held forth and published by our worthy Predecessors in this latter Age of the World, may keep near to that Life which is the Light of Men, and be strengthened to hold fast the Profession of our Faith without wavering, that[Pg 42] our Trust may not be in Man but in the Lord alone, who ruleth in the Army of Heaven, and in the Kingdoms of Men, before whom the Earth is as the Dust of the Balance, and her Inhabitants as Grasshoppers. Isa. xl. 22.
Dear Friends, —With a humble appreciation for divine goodness and the continuous love of God towards His people, we greet you warmly. Right now, we recognize that all of us who accept the Truth, as shared and taught by our respected predecessors in this modern era, should stay close to the Life that is the Light of Men. May we find the strength to hold on to our faith unwaveringly, so that our trust rests not in humans, but solely in the Lord, who rules in the heavenly army and in the kingdoms of men, before whom the Earth is like dust on the scales, and its inhabitants like grasshoppers. Isa. xl. 22.
We (being convinced that the gracious Design of the Almighty in sending his Son into the World, was to repair the Breach made by Disobedience, to finish Sin and Transgression, that his Kingdom might come, and his Will be done on Earth as it is in Heaven) have found it to be our Duty to cease from those national Contests productive of Misery and Bloodshed, and submit our Cause to him, the Most High, whose tender Love to his Children exceeds the most warm Affections of natural Parents, and who hath promised to his Seed throughout the Earth, as to one Individual, "I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee." Heb. xiii. 5. And as we, through the gracious Dealings of the Lord our God, have had Experience of that Work which is carried on, "not by earthly Might, nor by Power, but by my Spirit, saith the Lord of Hosts:" Zech. iv. 6. By which Operation, that spiritual Kingdom is set up, which is to subdue and break in pieces all Kingdoms that oppose it, and shall stand for ever; in a deep Sense thereof, and of the Safety, Stability, and Peace, there is in it, we are desirous that all who profess the Truth, may be inwardly acquainted with it, and thereby be qualified to conduct ourselves in all Parts of our Life as becomes our peaceable Profession: And we trust, as there is a faithful Continuance to depend wholly upon the Almighty Arm, from one Generation to another, the peaceable Kingdom will gradually be extended "from Sea to Sea, and from the River to the Ends of the Earth." Zech. ix. 10. to the Completion of those Prophecies already begun, that "Nation shall not lift up a Sword against Nation, nor learn War any more." Isa. ii. 4. Micah iv. 3.
We believe that God's loving plan in sending His Son into the world was to heal the rift created by disobedience, to end sin and wrongdoing, so that His Kingdom might come and His will be done on Earth as it is in Heaven. Therefore, we feel it is our duty to refrain from participating in national conflicts that result in suffering and bloodshed, and to submit our cause to Him, the Most High, whose profound love for His children exceeds even that of natural parents, and who has promised His descendants throughout the Earth, "I will never leave you nor forsake you." Heb. xiii. 5. Through the gracious actions of the Lord our God, we have found that His work is carried out "not by earthly might, nor by power, but by my Spirit, says the Lord of Hosts:" Zech. iv. 6. In this way, the spiritual Kingdom is established, which will conquer and dismantle all opposing kingdoms and will stand forever; recognizing the safety, stability, and peace that comes from it, we hope that everyone who professes the truth will truly understand it, so they can act in every part of life in a way that reflects our peaceful beliefs. We trust that as there is a faithful commitment to rely entirely on the Almighty's strength, from one generation to the next, the peaceful Kingdom will gradually expand "from sea to sea, and from the river to the ends of the earth." Zech. ix. 10. This will fulfill the prophecies that have already begun, that "Nation shall not lift up a sword against nation, nor learn war anymore." Isa. ii. 4. Micah iv. 3.
And, dearly beloved Friends, seeing we have these Promises, and believe that God is beginning to fulfil them, let us constantly endeavour to have our Minds sufficiently disintangled from the surfeiting Cares of this Life, and redeemed from the Love of the World, that no[Pg 43] earthly Possessions nor Enjoyments may bias our Judgments, or turn us from that Resignation, and entire Trust in God, to which his Blessing is most surely annexed; then may we say, "Our Redeemer is mighty, he will plead our Cause for us." Jer. 1. 34. And if, for the farther promoting his most gracious Purposes in the Earth, he should give us to taste of that bitter Cup which his faithful Ones have often partaken of; O! that we may be rightly prepared to receive it.
And, dear friends, since we have these promises and believe that God is beginning to fulfill them, let’s strive to keep our minds free from the overwhelming worries of this life and detached from the love of the world, so that no[Pg 43] earthly possessions or pleasures can sway our judgment or distract us from the surrender and complete trust in God that His blessing is surely connected to; then we can say, "Our Redeemer is powerful; he will advocate for us." Jer. 1. 34. And if, to further His gracious purposes on Earth, He lets us experience that bitter cup which His faithful ones have often faced; oh! may we be truly prepared to accept it.
And now, dear Friends, with Respect to the Commotions and Stirrings of the Powers of the Earth at this Time near us, we are desirous that none of us may be moved thereat; "but repose ourselves in the Munition of that Rock that all these Shakings shall not move, even in the Knowledge and Feeling of the eternal Power of God, keeping us subjectly given up to his heavenly Will, and feel it daily to mortify that which remains in any of us which is of this World; for the worldly Part, in any, is the changeable Part, and that is up and down, full and empty, joyful and sorrowful, as Things go well or ill in this World; for as the Truth is but one, and many are made Partakers of its Spirit, so the World is but one, and many are made Partakers of the Spirit of it; and so many as do partake of it, so many will be straitened and perplexed with it: But they who are single to the Truth, waiting daily to feel the Life and Virtue of it in their Hearts, these shall rejoice in the midst of Adversity," and have to experience, with the Prophet, that "Although the Fig-tree shall not blossom, neither shall Fruit be in the Vines; the Labour of the Olive shall fail, and the Fields shall yield no Meat; the Flock shall be cut off from the Fold, and there shall be no Herd in the Stalls; yet will they rejoice in the Lord, and joy in the God of their Salvation." Hab. iii. 17, 18.
And now, dear Friends, regarding the turmoil and unrest of the world's powers around us at this time, we hope that none of us will be swayed by it; "but let us find peace in the strength of that Rock that cannot be shaken, which is the knowledge and awareness of the eternal power of God, keeping us fully surrendered to His heavenly will, and allowing it to guide us daily to put aside whatever remains in us that is of this world; for the worldly part, in anyone, is the unstable part, filled with ups and downs, joy and sorrow, depending on how things go in this world; just as truth is one, and many share in its spirit, the world is one, and many share in its spirit too; and as many as partake in it will experience limitations and confusion from it: But those who are devoted to truth, waiting daily to feel its life and strength in their hearts, will rejoice even amid adversity," and will know, with the Prophet, that "Even if the fig tree does not blossom, and there are no grapes on the vines; even if the olive tree fails, and the fields produce no food; even if the sheep are cut off from the fold, and there are no cattle in the stalls; yet will they rejoice in the Lord, and find joy in the God of their salvation." Hab. iii. 17, 18.
If, contrary to this, we profess the Truth, and, not living under the Power and Influence of it, are producing Fruits disagreeable to the Purity thereof, and trust to the Strength of Man to support ourselves, therein our Confidence will be vain. For he, who removed the Hedge from his Vineyard, and gave it to be trodden under Foot,[Pg 44] by reason of the wild Grapes it produced, (Isa. v. 5.) remains unchangeable; And if, for the Chastisement of Wickedness, and the farther promoting his own Glory, he doth arise, even to shake terribly the Earth, who then may oppose him, and prosper!
If, on the other hand, we claim to know the Truth but fail to live by it, producing results that don't reflect its purity, and rely on our own strength to support ourselves, then our confidence will be worthless. For the one who took down the fence around his vineyard and allowed it to be trampled, due to the wild grapes it produced, (Isa. v. 5.) remains unchanging; and if, to punish wrongdoing and further His own glory, He rises to shake the Earth with great force, who can stand against Him and succeed![Pg 44]
We remain, in the Love of the Gospel, your Friends and Brethren.
We remain, in the love of the Gospel, your friends and brothers.
Signed by fourteen Friends.
Signed by fourteen Friends.
Scrupling to do Writings, relative to keeping Slaves, having been a Means of sundry small Trials to me, in which I have so evidently felt my own Will set aside, I think it good to mention a few of them.—Tradesmen and Retailers of Goods, who depend on their Business for a Living, are naturally inclined to keep the Good-will of their Customers; nor is it a pleasant Thing for young Men to be under any Necessity to question the Judgment or Honesty of elderly Men, and more especially of such as have a fair Reputation. Deep-rooted Customs, though wrong, are not easily altered; but it is the Duty of every one to be firm in that which they certainly know is right for them. A charitable benevolent Man, well acquainted with a Negro, may, I believe, under some Circumstances, keep him in his Family as a Servant, from no other Motives than the Negro's Good; but Man, as Man, knows not what shall be after him, nor hath Assurance that his Children will attain to that Perfection in Wisdom and Goodness necessary rightly to exercise such Power: It is clear to me, that I ought not to be the Scribe where Wills are drawn, in which some Children are made absolute Masters over others during Life.
Scrupling to write about keeping slaves has led to several small challenges for me, in which I've clearly felt my own will set aside, so I think it's worth mentioning a few of them. Businesspeople and retailers, who rely on their business for a living, naturally want to maintain the goodwill of their customers; it's uncomfortable for young men to feel they need to question the judgment or honesty of older men, especially those with a good reputation. Deeply entrenched customs, even if they're wrong, are not easily changed; but everyone has a duty to stand firm on what they know is right for them. A kind and compassionate person, well acquainted with a Black man, might, under certain circumstances, keep him as a servant in their home purely for his benefit. However, people don’t know what the future holds, nor can they be sure that their children will reach the level of wisdom and goodness required to wield such power correctly. It’s clear to me that I should not be the one to write wills that give some children absolute control over others during their lifetimes.
About this Time, an ancient Man, of good Esteem in the Neighbourhood, came to my House to get his Will written; he had young Negroes; and I asked him privately, how he purposed to dispose of them? He told me: I then said, I cannot write thy Will without breaking my own Peace; and respectfully gave him my Reasons for it: He signified that he had a Choice that I should have written it; but as I could not, consistent with my Conscience, he did not desire it: And so he got it written[Pg 45] by some other Person. And, a few Years after, there being great Alterations in his Family, he came again to get me to write his Will: His Negroes were yet young; and his Son, to whom he intended to give them, was, since he first spoke to me, from a Libertine, become a sober young Man; and he supposed, that I would have been free, on that Account, to write it. We had much friendly Talk on the Subject, and then deferred it: A few Days after, he came again, and directed their Freedom; and then I wrote his Will.
About this time, an elderly man, well-respected in the neighborhood, came to my house to have his will drafted. He had young slaves, and I asked him privately how he planned to divide them. He told me, and then I said, I can't write your will without compromising my own peace of mind, and I respectfully explained my reasons. He indicated that he preferred I write it, but since I couldn’t do so in good conscience, he didn’t insist. So, he had someone else draft it[Pg 45]. A few years later, after some significant changes in his family, he returned to ask me to write his will again. His slaves were still young, and his son, to whom he intended to leave them, had transformed from a reckless young man into a responsible adult since our last conversation, and he believed I would now be willing to write it. We had a lot of friendly discussions about it, but decided to put it off. A few days later, he returned and directed that they be freed, and then I wrote his will.
Near the Time the last-mentioned Friend first spoke to me, a Neighbour received a bad Bruise in his Body, and sent for me to bleed him; which being done, he desired me to write his Will: I took Notes; and, amongst other Things, he told me to which of his Children he gave his young Negro: I considered the Pain and Distress he was in, and knew not how it would end; so I wrote his Will, save only that Part concerning his Slave, and carrying it to his Bed side, read it to him; and then told him, in a friendly Way, that I could not write any Instruments by which my Fellow-creatures were made Slaves, without bringing Trouble on my own Mind: I let him know that I charged nothing for what I had done; and desired to be excused from doing the other Part in the Way he proposed: We then had a serious Conference on the Subject; at length he agreeing to set her free, I finished his Will.
Near the time that my mentioned friend first spoke to me, a neighbor got a bad bruise and called me to help him. After I treated him, he asked me to write his will. I took notes, and among other things, he mentioned to whom he wanted to give his young slave. I could see the pain and distress he was in and didn’t know how things would turn out, so I drafted his will, except for the part about his slave. I brought it to his bedside, read it to him, and then told him, in a friendly manner, that I couldn’t create any documents that made my fellow humans into slaves without causing trouble for myself. I made it clear that I wouldn’t charge him for what I had done and asked to be excused from writing that part the way he wanted. We then had a serious discussion on the topic; eventually, he agreed to set her free, and I completed his will.
Having found Drawings in my Mind to visit Friends on Long-Island, after obtaining a Certificate from our Monthly-meeting, I set off on the twelfth Day of the fifth Month, in the Year 1756. When I reached the Island, I lodged the first Night at the House of my dear Friend, Richard Hallet; the next Day, being the first of the Week, I was at the Meeting in New-town; in which we experienced the renewed Manifestations of the Love of Jesus Christ, to the Comfort of the honest-hearted. I went that Night to Flushing; and the next Day, in Company with my beloved Friend, Matthew Franklin, we crossed the Ferry at White-stone; were at three Meetings on the Main, and then returned to the Island; where[Pg 46] I spent the Remainder of the Week in visiting Meetings. The Lord, I believe, hath a People in those Parts, who are honestly inclined to serve him; but many, I fear, are too much clogged with the Things of this Life, and do not come forward bearing the Cross in such Faithfulness as he calls for.
Having found the desire to visit friends on Long Island, and after getting a certificate from our monthly meeting, I set off on the twelfth day of the fifth month in the year 1756. When I arrived on the island, I spent my first night at the home of my dear friend, Richard Hallet; the next day, which was Sunday, I attended the meeting in Newtown; there, we felt the renewed presence of the love of Jesus Christ, which brought comfort to those with honest hearts. That night, I went to Flushing; the following day, along with my beloved friend, Matt Franklin, we crossed the ferry at Whitestone; we attended three meetings on the mainland and then returned to the island; where[Pg 46] I spent the rest of the week visiting meetings. I believe the Lord has a community in that area who genuinely want to serve Him; however, many, I fear, are too weighed down by the matters of this life and do not come forward to bear the cross with the faithfulness He calls for.
My Mind was deeply engaged in this Visit, both in publick and private; and, at several Places, observing that they had Slaves, I found myself under a Necessity in a friendly Way, to labour with them on that Subject; expressing, as Way opened, the Inconsistency of that Practice with the Purity of the Christian Religion, and the ill Effects of it manifested amongst us.
My mind was fully engaged during this visit, both in public and private. At various places, noticing that they had slaves, I felt compelled, in a friendly manner, to discuss that issue with them; explaining, as the opportunity arose, how inconsistent that practice was with the purity of the Christian religion, and the negative consequences it had on us.
The Latter-end of the Week, their Yearly-meeting began; at which were our Friends John Scarborough, Jane Hoskins, and Susanna Brown, from Pennsylvania: The publick Meetings were large, and measurably favoured with divine Goodness.
The end of the week marked the start of their annual meeting, attended by our friends John Scarborough, Jane Hoskins, and Susanna Brown from Pennsylvania: The public meetings were well attended and somewhat blessed with divine goodness.
The Exercise of my Mind, at this Meeting, was chiefly on Account of those who were considered as the foremost Rank in the Society; and, in a Meeting of Ministers and Elders, Way opened, that I expressed in some Measure what lay upon me; and, at a Time when Friends were met for transacting the Affairs of the Church, having set a while silent, I felt a Weight on my Mind, and stood up; and, through the gracious Regard of our heavenly Father, Strength was given fully to clear myself of a Burthen, which, for some Days, had been increasing upon me.
The focus of my thoughts at this gathering was mainly about those who were seen as the top members of the Society. During a meeting of Ministers and Elders, I found an opportunity to share a bit of what was on my mind. While Friends were gathered to handle the Church's matters, I sat quietly for a while, but then I felt a heaviness in my mind and stood up. Thanks to the kindness of our heavenly Father, I found the strength to completely express what had been weighing on me for several days.
Through the humbling Dispensations of divine Providence, Men are sometimes fitted for his Service. The Messages of the Prophet Jeremiah, were so disagreeable to the People, and so reverse to the Spirit they lived in, that he became the Object of their Reproach; and, in the Weakness of Nature, thought of desisting from his prophetic Office; but, saith he, "His Word was in my Heart as a burning Fire shut up in my Bones; and I was weary with forbearing, and could not stay." I saw at this Time, that if I was honest in declaring that which Truth opened in me, I could not please all Men; and[Pg 47] laboured to be content in the Way of my Duty, however disagreeable to my own Inclination. After this I went homeward, taking Woodbridge, and Plainfield in my Way; in both which Meetings, the pure Influence of divine Love was manifested; in an humbling Sense whereof I went Home, having been out about twenty-four Days, and rode about three hundred and sixteen Miles.
Through the humbling acts of divine Providence, people are sometimes prepared for His service. The messages from the Prophet Jeremiah were so unwelcome to the people and so opposite to the spirit in which they lived that he became a target of their scorn. In his human weakness, he considered stepping away from his prophetic role; however, he said, "His Word was in my Heart like a burning Fire shut up in my Bones; and I was weary with holding back, and could not stop." At that moment, I realized that if I was honest in expressing what the Truth revealed to me, I couldn’t please everyone; and[Pg 47] I worked on being at peace with my duty, no matter how much it conflicted with my own desires. After this, I headed home, taking Woodbridge and Plainfield along the way; in both meetings, the pure influence of divine Love was felt. With a humbling awareness of this, I returned home after being out for about twenty-four days and traveling roughly three hundred and sixteen miles.
While I was out on this Journey, my Heart was much affected with a Sense of the State of the Churches in our southern Provinces; and, believing the Lord was calling me to some farther Labour amongst them, I was bowed in Reverence before him, with fervent Desires that I might find Strength to resign myself up to his heavenly Will.
While I was on this journey, I was deeply moved by the condition of the churches in our southern provinces. Believing that the Lord was calling me to do more work among them, I knelt in reverence before Him, earnestly hoping to find the strength to surrender myself to His divine will.
Until this Year, 1756, I continued to retail Goods, besides following my Trade as a Taylor; about which Time, I grew uneasy on Account of my Business growing too cumbersome: I had begun with selling Trimmings for Garments, and from thence proceeded to sell Cloths and Linens; and, at length, having got a considerable Shop of Goods, my Trade increased every Year, and the Road to large Business appeared open; but I felt a Stop in my Mind.
Until this year, 1756, I kept selling goods while also working as a tailor. Around that time, I started feeling uneasy because my business was becoming too overwhelming. I had started by selling trimmings for garments, and then I began selling cloth and linens. Eventually, I had a significant stock of goods, my trade grew every year, and the path to a bigger business seemed clear; however, I felt a mental block.
Through the Mercies of the Almighty, I had, in a good degree, learned to be content with a plain Way of Living: I had but a small Family; and, on serious Consideration, I believed Truth did not require me to engage in much cumbering Affairs: It had been my general Practice to buy and sell Things really useful: Things that served chiefly to please the vain Mind in People, I was not easy to trade in; seldom did it; and, whenever I did, I found it weaken me as a Christian.
Through the mercy of the Almighty, I had mostly learned to be satisfied with a simple way of living. I had a small family, and upon reflection, I believed that Truth didn't expect me to get involved in complicated matters. My usual practice was to buy and sell things that were genuinely useful. I wasn't comfortable trading in items that mainly catered to people's vanity; I hardly ever did, and whenever I did, I found it weakened me as a Christian.
The Increase of Business became my Burthen; for, though my natural Inclination was toward Merchandize, yet I believed Truth required me to live more free from outward Cumbers: and there was now a Strife in my Mind between the two; and in this Exercise my Prayers were put up to the Lord, who graciously heard me, and gave me a Heart resigned to his holy Will: Then I lessened my outward Business; and, as I had[Pg 48] Opportunity, told my Customers of my Intention, that they might consider what Shop to turn to: And, in a while, wholly laid down Merchandize, following my Trade, as a Taylor, myself only, having no Apprentice. I also had a Nursery of Appletrees; in which I employed some of my Time in hoeing, grafting, trimming, and inoculating. In Merchandize it is the Custom, where I lived, to sell chiefly on Credit, and poor People often get in Debt; and when Payment is expected, not having wherewith to pay, their Creditors often sue for it at Law. Having often observed Occurrences of this Kind, I found it good for me to advise poor People to take such Goods as were most useful and not costly.
The growth of my business became a burden for me; although I was naturally inclined toward merchandise, I felt that the truth required me to live with fewer external distractions. I was caught in a struggle between the two, and during this time, I prayed to the Lord, who graciously heard me and gave me a heart that was willing to accept His holy will. I then reduced my business activities, and as I had the chance, I informed my customers of my decision so they could decide where to shop next. Eventually, I completely stopped selling merchandise and pursued my trade as a tailor, working solo without an apprentice. I also tended to a nursery of apple trees, where I spent some time hoeing, grafting, trimming, and inoculating. In the area where I lived, it was common in business to primarily sell on credit, and poor people often fell into debt. When payment was due, many couldn't afford to pay, leading their creditors to take legal action. Having frequently witnessed these situations, I realized it was wise to advise poor people to buy only what was most useful and affordable.
In the Time of Trading, I had an Opportunity of seeing, that the too liberal Use of spirituous Liquors, and the Custom of wearing too costly Apparel, led some People into great Inconveniences; and these two Things appear to be often connected; for, by not attending to that Use of Things which is consistent with universal Righteousness, there is an Increase of Labour which extends beyond what our heavenly Father intends for us: And by great Labour, and often by much Sweating, there is, even among such as are not Drunkards, a craving of some Liquors to revive the Spirits; that, partly by the luxurious Drinking of some, and partly by the Drinking of others (led to it through immoderate Labour), very great Quantities of Rum are every Year expended in our Colonies; the greater Part of which we should have no Need of, did we steadily attend to pure Wisdom.
In the Time of Trading, I had the chance to see that excessive use of alcohol and the habit of wearing overly expensive clothing led some people into serious trouble. These two issues often seem connected; by ignoring what is aligned with universal goodness, there is an increase in work that goes beyond what our heavenly Father wants for us. This heavy labor, often accompanied by a lot of sweating, creates a desire for some drinks to lift the spirits, resulting in large quantities of rum being consumed every year in our colonies – not just by heavy drinkers, but also by those who are pushed to it by hard work. Most of this rum wouldn't be necessary if we consistently focused on pure wisdom.
Where Men take Pleasure in feeling their Minds elevated with Strong-drink, and so indulge their Appetite as to disorder their Understandings, neglect their Duty as Members in a Family or Civil Society, and cast off all Regard to Religion, their Case is much to be pitied; and where such, whose Lives are for the most Part regular, and whose Examples have a strong Influence on the Minds of others, adhere to some Customs which powerfully draw to the Use of more Strong-liquor than pure Wisdom allows; this also, as it hinders the spreading of[Pg 49] the Spirit of Meekness, and strengthens the Hands of the more excessive Drinkers, is a Case to be lamented.
Where people take pleasure in feeling their minds lifted by strong drinks and indulge their cravings to the point of clouding their judgment, neglecting their responsibilities as members of a family or society, and disregarding all respect for religion, their situation is truly pitiful. Moreover, when those who usually lead regular lives and whose behaviors significantly influence others stick to customs that encourage consuming more strong liquor than common sense would allow, this is also unfortunate. It hinders the spread of the spirit of meekness and empowers those who drink excessively, which is a situation to be regretted.
As every Degree of Luxury hath some Connection with Evil, those who profess to be Disciples of Christ, and are looked upon as Leaders of the People, should have that Mind in them which was also in Christ, and so stand separate from every wrong Way, as a Means of Help to the Weaker. As I have sometimes been much spent in the Heat, and taken Spirits to revive me, I have found, by Experience, that in such Circumstances the Mind is not so calm, nor so fitly disposed for divine Meditation, as when all such Extremes are avoided; and I have felt an increasing Care to attend to that holy Spirit which sets Bounds to our Desires, and leads those, who faithfully follow it, to apply all the Gifts of divine Providence to the Purposes for which they were intended. Did such, as have the Care of great Estates, attend with Singleness of Heart to this heavenly Instructor, which so opens and enlarges the Mind, that Men love their Neighbours as themselves, they would have Wisdom given them to manage, without finding Occasion to employ some People in the Luxuries of Life, or to make it necessary for others to labour too hard; but, for want of steadily regarding this Principle of divine Love, a selfish Spirit takes Place in the Minds of People, which is attended with Darkness and manifold Confusion in the World.
As every level of luxury has some connection to evil, those who claim to be followers of Christ and are seen as leaders should adopt the mindset that Christ had, standing apart from any wrong path as a way to help the weaker. I’ve often felt drained in the heat and used spirits to revive me, but I’ve learned through experience that in such situations, the mind is not as calm or suited for divine meditation as it is when avoiding extremes. I’ve developed a growing concern to pay attention to that holy spirit which sets limits on our desires and guides those who faithfully follow it to use all the blessings of divine providence for their intended purposes. If those in charge of large estates were to focus wholeheartedly on this heavenly guide, which opens and expands the mind to love their neighbors as themselves, they would be granted the wisdom to manage without needing to involve some people in life's luxuries or forcing others to work too hard. However, due to neglecting this principle of divine love, a selfish spirit takes root in people's minds, leading to darkness and confusion in the world.
Though trading in Things useful is an honest Employ; yet, through the great Number of Superfluities which are bought and sold, and through the Corruption of the Times, they, who apply to merchandize for a Living, have great Need to be well experienced in that Precept which the Prophet Jeremiah laid down for his Scribe: "Seekest thou great Things for thyself? seek them not."
Though trading in useful goods is an honest job, because of the many unnecessary items that are bought and sold, and because of the corruption in society, those who rely on commerce for a living really need to be well-versed in the advice that the prophet Jeremiah gave to his scribe: "Are you seeking great things for yourself? Don't seek them."
In the Winter, this Year, I was engaged with Friends in visiting Families; and, through the Goodness of the Lord, we had oftentimes Experience of his Heart-tendering Presence amongst us.[Pg 50]
In the winter of this year, I was spending time with friends visiting families, and thanks to the Lord's goodness, we often felt His comforting presence among us.[Pg 50]
A Copy of a Letter written to a Friend.
A copy of a letter written to a friend.
In this thy late Affliction I have found a deep Fellow-feeling with thee; and had a secret Hope throughout, that it might please the Father of Mercies to raise thee up, and sanctify thy Troubles to thee; that thou, being more fully acquainted with that Way which the World esteems foolish, mayst feel the Clothing of divine Fortitude, and be strengthened to resist that Spirit which leads from the Simplicity of the everlasting Truth.
In your recent struggles, I've felt a strong connection with you; and I have secretly hoped all along that the Father of Mercy would bring you back and turn your troubles into something meaningful for you. That you, by becoming more familiar with the path that the world sees as foolish, may experience the support of divine strength and be empowered to stand against the spirit that strays from the simplicity of everlasting truth.
We may see ourselves crippled and halting, and, from a strong Bias to Things pleasant and easy, find an Impossibility to advance forward; but Things impossible with Men are possible with God; and, our Wills being made subject to his, all Temptations are surmountable.
We might see ourselves as disabled and struggling, and, due to a strong preference for what is pleasant and easy, feel unable to move forward; but what's impossible for people is possible for God; and when our wills are aligned with His, all temptations can be overcome.
This Work of subjecting the Will is compared to the Mineral in the Furnace; "He refines them as Silver is refined.—He shall sit as a Refiner and Purifier of Silver." By these Comparisons we are instructed in the Necessity of the Operation of the Hand of God upon us, to prepare our Hearts truly to adore him, and manifest that Adoration, by inwardly turning away from that Spirit, in all its Workings, which is not of him. To forward this Work, the all-wise God is sometimes pleased, through outward Distress, to bring us near the Gates of Death; that, Life being painful and afflicting, and the Prospect of Eternity open before us, all earthly Bonds may be loosened, and the Mind prepared for that deep and sacred Instruction, which otherwise would not be received. If Parents love their Children and delight in their Happiness, then he, who is perfect Goodness, in sending abroad mortal Contagions, doth assuredly direct their Use: Are the Righteous removed by it? Their Change is happy: Are the Wicked taken away in their Wickedness? The Almighty is clear: Do we pass through with Anguish and great Bitterness, and yet recover, he intends that we should be purged from Dross, and our Ears opened to Discipline.
This work of shaping the Will is compared to a mineral in a furnace; "He refines them as silver is refined. He will sit as a Refiner and Purifier of Silver." Through these comparisons, we learn about the necessity of God's hand working on us to prepare our hearts to truly worship Him and show that worship by turning away from any spirit, in all its manifestations, that does not come from Him. To facilitate this process, the all-wise God sometimes chooses to bring us close to the brink of death through outward hardship, so that, with life being painful and full of struggles, and the prospect of eternity laid out before us, all earthly ties may be loosened, and our minds prepared for that profound and sacred instruction, which we might not otherwise accept. If parents love their children and take joy in their happiness, then He, who is perfect goodness, in allowing mortal afflictions, certainly directs their purpose: Are the righteous taken by it? Their change is joyful. Are the wicked removed in their wickedness? The Almighty stands just. If we go through anguish and great bitterness, only to recover, He intends for us to be purified from impurities and have our ears opened to guidance.
And now that, on thy Part, after thy sore Affliction[Pg 51] and Doubts of Recovery, thou art again restored, forget not him who hath helped thee; but in humble Gratitude hold fast his Instructions, thereby to shun those By-paths which lead from the firm Foundation. I am sensible of that Variety of Company, to which one in thy Business must be exposed: I have painfully felt the Force of Conversation proceeding from Men deeply rooted in an earthly Mind, and can sympathize with others in such Conflicts, in that much Weakness still attends me.
And now that, after your tough struggles and doubts about getting better, you are back on your feet again, don’t forget the one who helped you; instead, in genuine gratitude, hold on to his advice so you can avoid those wrong paths that stray from the solid foundation. I understand the range of people you have to deal with in your work: I have painfully felt the impact of conversations with people who are very grounded in a worldly mindset, and I can empathize with others in such struggles, knowing that I still face many weaknesses myself.
I find that to be a Fool as to worldly Wisdom, and commit my Cause to God, not fearing to offend Men, who take Offence at the Simplicity of Truth, is the only Way to remain unmoved at the Sentiments of others.
I believe that being a fool in terms of worldly wisdom and putting my cause in God's hands, without worrying about offending people who are bothered by the simplicity of truth, is the only way to stay unaffected by other people's opinions.
The Fear of Man brings a Snare; by halting in our Duty, and giving back in the Time of Trial, our Hands grow weaker, our Spirits get mingled with the People, our Ears grow dull as to hearing the Language of the true Shepherd; that when we look at the Way of the Righteous, it seems as though it was not for us to follow them.
The fear of others traps us; by hesitating in our responsibilities and backing down during tough times, our hands become weaker, our spirits blend in with the crowd, and we become less receptive to the voice of the true guide. When we consider the path of the righteous, it feels like it's not meant for us to pursue.
There is a Love clothes my Mind, while I write, which is superior to all Expressions; and I find my Heart open to encourage a holy Emulation, to advance forward in Christian Firmness. Deep Humility is a strong Bulwark; and, as we enter into it, we find Safety: The Foolishness of God is wiser than Man, and the Weakness of God is stronger than Man. Being unclothed of our own Wisdom, and knowing the Abasement of the Creature, therein we find that Power to arise, which gives Health and Vigour to us.
There’s a love that fills my mind while I write, and it’s greater than any words can express; I find my heart open to inspire a sacred ambition to move forward in Christian strength. Deep humility is a strong defense, and as we embrace it, we find safety: the foolishness of God is wiser than humans, and the weakness of God is stronger than humans. By letting go of our own wisdom and recognizing the humility of our existence, we discover the power within us that brings health and energy.
CHAPTER IV
His Journey to Pennsylvania, Maryland, Virginia, and North-Carolina: Considerations on the State of Friends there; and the Exercise he was under in travelling among those so generally concerned in keeping Slaves: With some Observations in Conversation, at several Times, on this Subject—His Epistle to Friends at New-Garden and Cane-Creek—His Thoughts on the Neglect of a religious Care in the Education of the Negroes
His Journey to Pennsylvania, Maryland, Virginia, and North Carolina: Thoughts on the State of Friends there; and the Experiences he had while traveling among those largely engaged in slaveholding: Including some Observations made during Conversations, at various Times, on this Topic—His Letter to Friends at New Garden and Cane Creek—His Thoughts on the Absence of Religious Concern in the Education of the Black Community
Feeling an Exercise in Relation to a Visit to the southern Provinces, I acquainted our Monthly-meeting therewith, and obtained their Certificate: Expecting to go alone, one of my Brothers, who lived in Philadelphia, having some Business in North-Carolina, proposed going with me Part of the Way; but, as he had a View of some outward Affairs, to accept of him as a Companion seemed some Difficulty with me, whereupon I had Conversation with him at sundry Times; and, at length, feeling easy in my Mind, I had Conversation with several elderly Friends of Philadelphia on the Subject; and he obtaining a Certificate suitable to the Occasion, we set off in the fifth Month of the Year 1757; and, coming to Nottingham Week-day Meeting, lodged at John Churchman's; and here I met with our Friend Benjamin Buffington, from New-England, who was returning from a Visit to the southern Provinces. Thence we crossed the River Susquehannah, and lodged at William Cox's in Maryland; and, soon after I entered this Province, a deep and painful Exercise came upon me, which I often had some Feeling of since my Mind was drawn towards these Parts, and with which I had acquainted my Brother before we agreed to join as Companions.
Feeling the need for some personal reflection related to a visit to the southern provinces, I informed our monthly meeting and received their certificate. I expected to go alone, but one of my brothers, who lived in Philadelphia, suggested joining me partway since he had some business in North Carolina. However, his involvement in other matters made it a bit complicated for me to accept him as a travel companion. As a result, I spoke with him multiple times, and eventually felt comfortable with the idea. I also discussed it with several older friends from Philadelphia. He obtained a suitable certificate for the occasion, and we set off in the fifth month of the year 1757. After reaching the Nottingham weekday meeting, we stayed at John Churchman's house, where I met our friend Benjamin Buffington from New England, who was returning from a visit to the southern provinces. Then we crossed the Susquehannah River and stayed at William Cox's in Maryland. Soon after arriving in this province, I experienced a deep and painful feeling that had been weighing on me since my mindset turned towards this area, and I had shared this concern with my brother before we decided to travel together.
As the People in this and the southern Provinces live much on the Labour of Slaves, many of whom are used hardly, my Concern was, that I might attend with Singleness[Pg 53] of Heart to the Voice of the true Shepherd, and be so supported as to remain unmoved at the Faces of Men.
As the people in this and the southern provinces rely heavily on the labor of slaves, many of whom are treated poorly, I was worried that I might focus wholeheartedly on the guidance of the true Shepherd and be strong enough to stay unmoved by others' opinions.
The Prospect of so weighty a Work brought me very low; and such were the Conflicts of my Soul, that I had a near Sympathy with the Prophet, in the Time of his Weakness, when he said, "If thou deal thus with me, kill me, I pray thee, if I have found Favour in thy Sight," Numb. xi. 15. But I soon saw that this proceeded from the Want of a full Resignation to the divine Will. Many were the Afflictions which attended me; and in great Abasement, with many Tears, my Cries were to the Almighty, for his gracious and Fatherly Assistance; and then, after a Time of deep Trial, I was favoured to understand the State mentioned by the Psalmist, more clearly than ever I had before; to wit: "My Soul is even as a weaned Child." Psalm cxxxi. 2. Being thus helped to sink down into Resignation, I felt a Deliverance from that Tempest in which I had been sorely exercised, and in Calmness of Mind went forward, trusting that the Lord Jesus Christ, as I faithfully attended to him, would be a Counsellor to me in all Difficulties.
The prospect of such a heavy task brought me down; and I felt such turmoil within my soul that I shared a deep connection with the Prophet during his moment of weakness when he said, "If you treat me like this, please kill me if I have found favor in your sight," Numbers 11:15. But I quickly realized that this stemmed from not fully surrendering to the divine will. I faced many struggles; in deep humility, with many tears, I cried out to the Almighty for His gracious and fatherly help. After a period of intense testing, I understood the state described by the Psalmist better than I ever had before; namely, "My soul is like a weaned child." Psalm 131:2. As I was helped to truly surrender, I felt a release from the storm that had severely troubled me, and with peace of mind, I moved forward, trusting that the Lord Jesus Christ, as I stayed faithful to Him, would guide me through all challenges.
The seventh Day of the fifth Month, in the Year 1757, I lodged at a Friend's House; and the next Day, being the first of the Week, was at Potapsco Meeting; then crossed Patuxent River, and lodged at a Public-house. On the ninth breakfasted at a Friend's House; who, afterward, putting us a little on our Way, I had Conversation with him, in the Fear of the Lord, concerning his Slaves; in which my Heart was tender, and I used much Plainness of Speech with him, which he appeared to take kindly. We pursued our Journey without appointing Meetings, being pressed in Mind to be at the Yearly-meeting in Virginia; and, in my travelling on the Road, I often felt a Cry rise from the Center of my Mind, thus: O Lord, I am a Stranger on the Earth, hide not thy Face from me.
On the seventh day of the fifth month in 1757, I stayed at a friend's house. The next day, which was Sunday, I attended the Potapsco meeting, then crossed the Patuxent River and stayed at an inn. On the ninth, I had breakfast at a friend's house. Afterward, as he helped us a bit on our way, I talked with him earnestly about his slaves, and I spoke very plainly, which he seemed to appreciate. We continued our journey without scheduling any meetings, as we felt compelled to attend the yearly meeting in Virginia. While traveling, I often felt a deep longing in my heart rise up: O Lord, I am a stranger on this earth, don’t hide your face from me.
On the eleventh Day of the fifth Month, we crossed the Rivers Patowmack and Rapahannock, and lodged at Port-Royal; and on the Way we happening in Company with a Colonel of the Militia, who appeared to[Pg 54] be a thoughtful Man, I took Occasion to remark on the Difference in general betwixt a People used to labour moderately for their Living, training up their Children in Frugality and Business, and those who live on the Labour of Slaves; the former, in my View, being the most happy Life: With which he concurred, and mentioned the Trouble arising from the untoward, slothful, Disposition of the Negroes; adding, that one of our Labourers would do as much in a Day as two of their Slaves. I replied, that free Men, whose Minds were properly on their Business, found a Satisfaction in improving, cultivating, and providing for their Families; but Negroes, labouring to support others who claim them as their Property, and expecting nothing but Slavery during Life, had not the like Inducement to be industrious.
On the 11th day of the 5th month, we crossed the Patowmack and Rapahannock Rivers and stayed at Port-Royal. Along the way, we met a Colonel from the Militia who seemed to be a thoughtful man. I took the opportunity to point out the difference between people who labor moderately for their living, raising their children with values of hard work and savings, and those who rely on the labor of slaves. In my view, the former leads a happier life. He agreed and talked about the issues arising from the lazy and unproductive nature of the slaves, adding that one of our workers could accomplish as much in a day as two of their slaves. I responded that free men, who are focused on their work, find satisfaction in improving their situation, cultivating land, and providing for their families. In contrast, slaves, who work to support those who claim ownership over them and expect nothing but a life of bondage, lack the motivation to be industrious.
After some farther Conversation, I said, that Men having Power too often misapplied it; that though we made Slaves of the Negroes, and the Turks made Slaves of the Christians, I believed that Liberty was the natural Right of all Men equally: Which he did not deny; but said, the Lives of the Negroes were so wretched in their own Country, that many of them lived better here than there: I only said, there are great odds, in regard to us, on what Principle we act; and so the Conversation on that Subject ended: And I may here add, that another Person, some Time afterward, mentioned the Wretchedness of the Negroes, occasioned by their intestine Wars, as an Argument in Favour of our fetching them away for Slaves: To which I then replied, if Compassion on the Africans, in Regard to their domestic Troubles, were the real Motive of our purchasing them, that Spirit of Tenderness, being attended to, would incite us to use them kindly; that, as Strangers brought out of Affliction, their Lives might be happy among us; and as they are human Creatures, whose Souls are as precious as ours, and who may receive the same Help and Comfort from the holy Scriptures as we do, we could not omit suitable Endeavours to instruct them therein: But while we manifest, by our Conduct, that our Views in purchasing them are to advance ourselves; and while our buying Captives[Pg 55] taken in War animates those Parties to push on that War, and increase Desolation amongst them, to say they live unhappy in Africa, is far from being an Argument in our Favour: And I farther said, the present Circumstances of these Provinces to me appear difficult; that the Slaves look like a burthensome Stone to such who burthen themselves with them; and that if the white People retain a Resolution to prefer their outward Prospects of Gain to all other Considerations, and do not act conscientiously toward them as fellow Creatures, I believe that Burthen will grow heavier and heavier, till Times change in a Way disagreeable to us: At which the Person appeared very serious, and owned, that, in considering their Condition, and the Manner of their Treatment in these Provinces, he had sometimes thought it might be just in the Almighty so to order it.
After some more conversation, I said that people with power often misuse it; that even though we enslaved the Black people and the Turks enslaved Christians, I believed that freedom is a natural right for all human beings. He didn’t disagree but mentioned that the lives of the Black people were so miserable in their own countries that many of them lived better here than there. I just said there are significant differences, regarding us, in what principle we act on; and that ended our discussion on that topic. I can also mention that another person, some time later, talked about the suffering of the Black people caused by their internal wars as an argument for bringing them here as slaves. To which I replied, if our compassion for the Africans regarding their domestic troubles were the real reason for buying them, that spirit of kindness would lead us to treat them well; that as strangers brought out of hardship, their lives could be happy among us; and since they are human beings, whose souls are as valuable as ours, and who can find the same help and comfort in the holy scriptures as we do, we should definitely make the effort to teach them. But as long as we show through our actions that our aim in purchasing them is self-interest, and as long as buying captives taken in war encourages those groups to continue fighting and increases their suffering, saying they are unhappy in Africa is far from an argument in our favor. I also mentioned that the current situation in these provinces seems challenging to me; that the slaves seem like a heavy burden to those who take them on; and that if white people continue to prioritize their financial gains over all other factors and do not treat them as fellow human beings, I believe that burden will become heavier and heavier until times change in a way that is unfavorable for us. Hearing this, the person seemed quite serious and admitted that, while considering their condition and the way they are treated in these provinces, he had sometimes thought it might be just for the Almighty to arrange things that way.
Having thus travelled through Maryland, we came amongst Friends at Cedar-Creek in Virginia, on the 12th Day of the fifth Month; and the next Day rode, in Company with several Friends, a Day's Journey to Camp-Creek. As I was riding along in the Morning, my Mind was deeply affected in a Sense I had of the Want of divine Aid to support me in the various Difficulties which attended me; and, in an uncommon Distress of Mind, I cried in secret to the Most High, O Lord, be merciful, I beseech thee, to thy poor afflicted Creature. After some Time, I felt inward Relief; and, soon after, a Friend in Company began to talk in Support of the Slave-Trade, and said, the Negroes were understood to be the Offspring of Cain, their Blackness being the Mark God set upon him after he murdered Abel his Brother; that it was the Design of Providence they should be Slaves, as a Condition proper to the Race of so wicked a Man as Cain was: Then another spake in Support of what had been said. To all which, I replied in Substance as follows: That Noah and his Family were all who survived the Flood, according to Scripture; and, as Noah was of Seth's Race, the Family of Cain was wholly destroyed. One of them said, that after the Flood Ham went to the Land of Nod, and took a Wife; that Nod was a Land far distant,[Pg 56] inhabited by Cain's Race, and that the Flood did not reach it; and as Ham was sentenced to be a Servant of Servants to his Brethren, these two Families, being thus joined, were undoubtedly fit only for Slaves. I replied, the Flood was a Judgment upon the World for its Abominations; and it was granted, that Cain's Stock was the most wicked, and therefore unreasonable to suppose they were spared: As to Ham's going to the Land of Nod for a Wife, no Time being fixed, Nod might be inhabited by some of Noah's Family, before Ham married a second Time; moreover the Text saith, "That all Flesh died that moved upon the Earth." Gen. vii. 21. I farther reminded them, how the Prophets repeatedly declare, "That the Son shall not suffer for the Iniquity of the Father; but every one be answerable for his own Sins." I was troubled to perceive the Darkness of their Imaginations; and in some Pressure of Spirit said, the Love of Ease and Gain is the Motive in general for keeping Slaves, and Men are wont to take hold of weak Arguments to support a Cause which is unreasonable; and added, I have no Interest on either Side, save only the Interest which I desire to have in the Truth: And as I believe Liberty is their Right, and see they are not only deprived of it, but treated in other Respects with Inhumanity in many Places, I believe he, who is a Refuge for the Oppressed, will, in his own Time, plead their Cause; and happy will it be for such as walk in Uprightness before him: And thus our Conversation ended.
Having traveled through Maryland, we met with Friends at Cedar-Creek in Virginia on the 12th of the fifth month. The next day, we rode with several Friends a day's journey to Camp-Creek. As I was riding in the morning, I was deeply moved by a sense of the need for divine help to support me through the challenges I faced. In a moment of uncommon distress, I quietly cried out to the Most High, "O Lord, please be merciful to your poor afflicted servant." After a while, I felt an inner relief. Soon after, a Friend in our group began to argue in favor of the slave trade, claiming that Black people were the descendants of Cain, and their blackness was the mark God placed on him after he killed his brother Abel; that it was God's design for them to be slaves, as a fitting condition for the offspring of such a wicked man as Cain. Then another person supported this view. In response, I said that according to Scripture, Noah and his family were the only ones who survived the Flood, and since Noah was from Seth's lineage, the family of Cain was entirely destroyed. One of them then stated that after the Flood, Ham went to the Land of Nod and took a wife; that Nod was a distant land inhabited by Cain's descendants and that the Flood did not reach there. He argued that since Ham was cursed to be a servant to his brothers, these two families, being thus combined, were clearly only fit to be slaves. I answered that the Flood was a judgment on the world for its sins, and it was acknowledged that Cain's descendants were the most wicked, making it illogical to suppose they were spared. Regarding Ham's marrying in the Land of Nod, no specific time was mentioned, so Nod could have been inhabited by some of Noah's family before Ham remarried; furthermore, the text states, "All flesh died that moved upon the earth." Gen. vii. 21. I also reminded them that the Prophets repeatedly declare, "The son shall not suffer for the iniquity of the father; each one is responsible for their own sins." I was troubled by the darkness of their thinking, and in some distress, I said that the desire for comfort and profit is generally the motivation for keeping slaves, and people often cling to weak arguments to support an unreasonable cause. I added that I have no interest on either side, except for the interest I wish to have in the truth. And since I believe that liberty is their right and see that they are not only denied this but are also treated inhumanely in many places, I believe that the one who is a refuge for the oppressed will, in His own time, advocate for their cause; and it will be a blessing for those who live righteously before Him. And with that, our conversation came to an end.
On the fourteenth Day of the fifth Month I was at Camp-Creek Monthly-meeting, and then rode to the Mountains up James-River, and had a Meeting at a Friend's House; in both which I felt Sorrow of Heart, and my Tears were poured out before the Lord, who was pleased to afford a Degree of Strength, by which Way was opened to clear my Mind amongst Friends in those Places. From thence I went to Fort-Creek, and so to Cedar-Creek again; at which Place I had a Meeting; here I found a tender Seed: And as I was preserved in the Ministry to keep low with the Truth, the same Truth in their Hearts answered it, that it was a Time of mutual Refreshment[Pg 57] from the Presence of the Lord. I lodged at James Standley's, Father of William Standley, one of the young Men who suffered Imprisonment at Winchester, last Summer, on Account of their Testimony against Fighting; and I had some satisfactory Conversation with him concerning it. Hence I went to the Swamp Meeting, and to Wayanoke Meeting; and then crossed James-River, and lodged near Burleigh. From the Time of my entering Maryland I had been much under Sorrow, which so increased upon me, that my Mind was almost overwhelmed; and I may say with the Psalmist, "In my Distress I called upon the Lord, and cried to my God;" who, in infinite Goodness, looked upon my Affliction, and in my private Retirement sent the Comforter for my Relief: For which I humbly bless his holy Name.
On the fourteenth day of the fifth month, I was at Camp-Creek Monthly Meeting, and then I rode to the mountains along James River, where I held a meeting at a friend's house. In both places, I felt deep sorrow, and my tears were poured out before the Lord, who graciously gave me some strength, allowing me to share my thoughts with friends there. From there, I went to Fort-Creek, and then back to Cedar-Creek, where I held a meeting. Here, I found a tender spirit among the people: as I remained humble in sharing the truth, the same truth in their hearts responded, making it a time of mutual refreshment[Pg 57] from the presence of the Lord. I stayed at James Standley's house, the father of William Standley, who was one of the young men imprisoned in Winchester last summer for their testimony against fighting, and I had a meaningful conversation with him about it. Afterward, I went to the Swamp Meeting and then the Wayanoke Meeting, before crossing James River and lodging near Burleigh. Since I entered Maryland, I have been filled with sorrow, which increased to the point where I felt almost overwhelmed. I can relate to the psalmist when he said, "In my distress, I called upon the Lord and cried to my God;" who, in His infinite goodness, looked upon my suffering and sent the Comforter for my relief during my private prayers. For this, I humbly bless His holy name.
The Sense I had of the State of the Churches brought a Weight of Distress upon me: The Gold to me appeared dim, and the fine Gold changed; and though this is the Case too generally, yet the Sense of it in these Parts hath, in a particular Manner, borne heavy upon me. It appeared to me, that, through the prevailing of the Spirit of this World, the Minds of many were brought to an inward Desolation; and, instead of the Spirit of Meekness, Gentleness, and heavenly Wisdom, which are the necessary Companions of the true Sheep of Christ, a Spirit of Fierceness, and the Love of Dominion, too generally prevailed. From small Beginnings in Errors, great Buildings, by degrees, are raised; and from one Age to another are more and more strengthened by the general Concurrence of the People; and, as Men obtain Reputation by their Profession of the Truth, their Virtues are mentioned as Arguments in Favour of general Error, and those of less Note, to justify themselves, say, such and such good Men did the like. By what other Steps could the People of Judah arise to that Height in Wickedness, as to give just Ground for the Prophet Isaiah to declare, in the Name of the Lord, "that none calleth for Justice, nor any pleadeth for Truth." Isaiah lix. 4. Or for the Almighty to call upon the great City of Jerusalem, just before the Babylonish Captivity: "If ye can find a[Pg 58] Man, if there be any who executeth Judgment, that seeketh the Truth, and I will pardon it." Jer. v. 1. The Prospect of a Road lying open to the same Degeneracy, in some Parts of this newly-settled Land of America, in Respect to our Conduct toward the Negroes, deeply bowed my Mind in this Journey; and, though, to briefly relate how these People are treated is no agreeable Work; yet, after often reading over the Notes I made as I travelled, I find my Mind engaged to preserve them. Many of the white People in those Provinces take little or no Care of Negro Marriages; and, when Negroes marry after their own Way, some make so little Account of those Marriages, that, with Views of outward Interest, they often part Men from their Wives by selling them far asunder; which is common when Estates are sold by Executors at Vendue. Many, whose Labour is heavy, being followed, at their Business in the Field, by a Man with a Whip, hired for that Purpose, have, in common, little else allowed but one Peck of Indian Corn and some Salt for one Week, with a few Potatoes; the Potatoes they commonly raise by their Labour on the first Day of the Week.
The way I viewed the state of the churches made me feel a heavy weight of distress: the gold seemed dull, and the fine gold had changed. Although this is generally the case, my sense of it in this area has particularly weighed heavily on me. It seemed to me that, due to the influence of the spirit of this world, many people's minds have fallen into a state of inner desolation. Instead of embodying the spirit of meekness, gentleness, and heavenly wisdom—qualities that are essential for the true followers of Christ—a spirit of fierceness and a love for power have become too common. From small beginnings in errors, large structures are gradually built; and from one generation to the next, they are increasingly reinforced by the widespread support of the people. As individuals gain respect for professing the truth, their virtues are cited as arguments in favor of widespread error, and those with less distinction justify themselves by saying, "such and such good men acted similarly." How else could the people of Judah have risen to such heights of wickedness that it gave the prophet Isaiah just cause to declare, in the name of the Lord, "that no one calls for justice, nor pleads for truth." Isaiah 59:4. Or for the Almighty to call upon the great city of Jerusalem, right before the Babylonian captivity: "If you can find a[Pg 58] man, if there is anyone who executes judgment, who seeks the truth, I will pardon it." Jer. 5:1. The thought of a similar path toward degradation in some parts of this newly settled land of America, regarding how we treat the Negroes, deeply weighed on my mind during this journey. Although it's not pleasant to summarize how these people are treated, after reviewing the notes I made while traveling, I feel compelled to preserve them. Many white individuals in those areas care little or nothing about Negro marriages, and when Negroes marry in their own way, some take those marriages so lightly that, driven by their own interests, they often separate men from their wives by selling them far apart, which is common when estates are sold at auction by executors. Many laborers, who work hard in the fields and are followed by a man with a whip hired for that purpose, typically receive little more than one peck of Indian corn and some salt for one week, along with a few potatoes; the potatoes they usually grow through their labor on the first day of the week.
The Correction, ensuing on their Disobedience to Overseers, or Slothfulness in Business, is often very severe, and sometimes desperate.
The punishment that follows their disobedience to supervisors or laziness at work is often very harsh and sometimes extreme.
The Men and Women have many Times scarce Clothes enough to hide their Nakedness, and Boys and Girls, ten and twelve Years old, are often quite naked amongst their Master's Children: Some of our Society, and some of the Society called New-Lights, use some Endeavours to instruct those they have in reading; but, in common, this is not only neglected, but disapproved. These are the People by whose Labour the other Inhabitants are in a great Measure supported, and many of them in the Luxuries of Life: These are the People who have made no Agreement to serve us, and who have not forfeited their Liberty that we know of: These are Souls for whom Christ died, and, for our Conduct toward them, we must answer before him who is no Respecter of Persons.
The men and women often barely have enough clothing to cover themselves, and boys and girls around ten to twelve years old are frequently seen completely naked among their master's children. Some members of our community, along with those from the group known as New-Lights, try to teach those in their care how to read; however, generally, this is not only overlooked but also frowned upon. These are the people whose labor significantly supports the other residents, many of whom enjoy luxuries because of it. These individuals have not agreed to serve us, and as far as we know, they haven't given up their freedom. These are souls for whom Christ died, and we will be held accountable for our treatment of them before Him, who shows no favoritism.
They who know the only true God, and Jesus Christ[Pg 59] whom he hath sent, and are thus acquainted with the merciful, benevolent Gospel Spirit, will therein perceive that the Indignation of God is kindled against Oppression and Cruelty; and, in beholding the great Distress of so numerous a People, will find Cause for Mourning.
Those who know the one true God and Jesus Christ[Pg 59] whom He sent, and are familiar with the merciful, loving message of the Gospel, will see that God's anger is directed at oppression and cruelty. When they witness the immense suffering of so many people, they will have reason to mourn.
From my Lodging I went to Burleigh Meeting, where I felt my Mind drawn into a quiet resigned State; and, after long Silence, I felt an Engagement to stand up; and, through the powerful Operation of divine Love, we were favoured with an edifying Meeting. The next Meeting we had was at Black-Water; and so to the Yearly-meeting at the western Branch: When Business began, some Queries were considered, by some of their Members, to be now produced; and, if approved, to be answered hereafter by their respective Monthly-meetings. They were the Pennsylvania Queries, which had been examined by a Committee of Virginia Yearly-meeting appointed the last Year, who made some Alterations in them; one of which Alterations was made in Favour of a Custom which troubled me. The Query was, "Are there any concerned in the Importation of Negroes, or buying them after imported?" Which they altered thus: "Are there any concerned in the Importation of Negroes, or buying them to trade in?" As one Query admitted with Unanimity was, "Are any concerned in buying or vending Goods unlawfully imported, or prize Goods?" I found my Mind engaged to say, that as we professed the Truth, and were there assembled to support the Testimony of it, it was necessary for us to dwell deep, and act in that Wisdom which is pure, or otherwise we could not prosper. I then mentioned their Alteration; and, referring to the last-mentioned Query, added, as purchasing any Merchandize, taken by the Sword, was always allowed to be inconsistent with our Principles; Negroes being Captives of War, or taken by Stealth, those Circumstances make it inconsistent with our Testimony to buy them; and their being our Fellow-creatures, who are sold as Slaves, adds greatly to the Iniquity. Friends appeared attentive to what was said; some expressed a Care and Concern about their Negroes; none[Pg 60] made any Objection, by Way of Reply to what I said; but the Query was admitted as they had altered it. As some of their Members have heretofore traded in Negroes, as in other Merchandize, this Query being admitted, will be one Step farther than they have hitherto gone: And I did not see it my Duty to press for an Alteration; but felt easy to leave it all to him, who alone is able to turn the Hearts of the Mighty, and make Way for the spreading of Truth on the Earth, by Means agreeable to his infinite Wisdom. But, in Regard to those they already had, I felt my Mind engaged to labour with them; and said, that, as we believe the Scriptures were given forth by holy Men, as they were moved by the Holy Ghost, and many of us know by Experience that they are often helpful and comfortable, and believe ourselves bound in Duty to teach our Children to read them, I believe, that, if we were divested of all selfish Views, the same good Spirit, that gave them forth, would engage us to teach the Negroes to read, that they might have the Benefit of them: Some, amongst them, at this Time, manifested a Concern in Regard to taking more Care in the Education of their Negroes.
From my place, I went to the Burleigh Meeting, where I felt my mind drawn into a quiet, accepting state. After a long silence, I felt led to stand up, and by the powerful influence of divine love, we had an uplifting meeting. The next gathering we had was at Black-Water; and then we moved on to the Yearly Meeting at the western branch. When the meeting started, some questions were brought up by some of their members to be considered and, if approved, answered later by their respective Monthly Meetings. These were the Pennsylvania Queries, which had been reviewed by a committee from the Virginia Yearly Meeting appointed last year, who made some changes to them; one of which changes favored a practice that troubled me. The query was, "Are there any involved in the importation of Negroes or buying them after they are imported?" They changed it to: "Are there any involved in the importation of Negroes or buying them to trade in?" One query that was unanimously accepted was, "Are any involved in buying or selling goods that were unlawfully imported or prize goods?" I felt compelled to say that as we professed the truth and gathered to support its testimony, we needed to go deep and act with pure wisdom, or otherwise, we could not prosper. I then mentioned their alteration and, referencing the last query, added that purchasing merchandise taken by force has always been considered inconsistent with our principles; Negroes, being captives of war or taken by deception, must be seen as inconsistent with our testimony to buy; and the fact that they are our fellow human beings sold as slaves greatly adds to the wrongdoing. Friends listened attentively to what I said; some showed care and concern about their Negroes; none[Pg 60] voiced any objections to my comments, but the query was accepted as they had changed it. Since some of their members have previously traded in Negroes like other merchandise, accepting this query would be a step further than they had gone before. I didn't feel it was my duty to press for a change, but felt at ease leaving it all to Him who alone can change the hearts of the powerful and create a path for spreading truth on Earth in ways aligned with His infinite wisdom. However, regarding those they already had, I felt led to work with them and said that since we believe the Scriptures were given by holy men as moved by the Holy Spirit, and many of us know from experience that they are often helpful and comforting, we believe we are obligated to teach our children to read them. I believe that if we were free from all selfish motives, the same good spirit that inspired them would lead us to teach the Negroes to read so they could benefit from them. Some of them at that time showed a concern for taking more care in the education of their Negroes.
On the twenty-ninth Day of the fifth Month, at the House where I lodged, was a Meeting of Ministers and Elders, at the ninth Hour in the Morning; at which Time I found an Engagement to speak freely and plainly to them concerning their Slaves; mentioning, how they, as the first Rank in the Society, whose Conduct in that Case was much noticed by others, were under the stronger Obligations to look carefully to themselves: Expressing how needful it was for them, in that Situation, to be thoroughly divested of all selfish Views; that living in the pure Truth, and acting conscientiously toward those People in their Education and otherwise, they might be instrumental in helping forward a Work so necessary, and so much neglected amongst them. At the twelfth Hour the Meeting of Worship began, which was a solid Meeting.
On the twenty-ninth day of the fifth month, at the place where I was staying, there was a meeting of ministers and elders at nine in the morning. During that time, I had a chance to speak openly and honestly to them about their slaves, pointing out that as the leaders in society, their actions in this matter were closely observed by others, and they had a greater responsibility to examine their own behavior. I emphasized how important it was for them, in this situation, to let go of all selfish motives; that by living in pure truth and acting with integrity towards those people in their education and other areas, they could play a significant role in promoting work that was both essential and largely overlooked by them. At noon, the worship meeting began, which was a profound gathering.
On the thirtieth Day, about the tenth Hour, Friends met to finish their Business, and then the meeting for Worship ensued, which to me was a laborious Time; but,[Pg 61] through the Goodness of the Lord, Truth, I believe, gained some Ground; and it was a strengthening Opportunity to the Honest-hearted.
On the thirtieth day, around ten in the morning, friends got together to wrap up their business, and then the worship meeting began, which felt like a tough time for me; however, [Pg 61] thanks to the Lord's goodness, I believe that truth made some progress, and it was a strengthening opportunity for those with sincere hearts.
About this Time I wrote an Epistle to Friends in the Back-settlements of North-Carolina, as follows:
About this time, I wrote a letter to friends in the backcountry of North Carolina, as follows:
To Friends at their Monthly-meeting at New-Garden and Cane-Creek, in North-Carolina.
To Friends at their Monthly meeting at New-Garden and Cane-Creek in North Carolina.
Dear Friends,—It having pleased the Lord to draw me forth on a Visit to some Parts of Virginia and Carolina, you have often been in my Mind; and though my Way is not clear to come in Person to visit you, yet I feel it in my Heart to communicate a few Things, as they arise in the Love of Truth. First, my dear Friends, dwell in Humility, and take Heed that no Views of outward Gain get too deep hold of you, that so your Eyes being single to the Lord, you may be preserved in the Way of Safety. Where People let loose their Minds after the Love of outward Things, and are more engaged in pursuing the Profits, and seeking the Friendships, of this World, than to be inwardly acquainted with the Way of true Peace; such walk in a vain Shadow, while the true Comfort of Life is wanting: Their Examples are often hurtful to others; and their Treasures, thus collected, do many Times prove dangerous Snares to their Children.
Dear Friends, I felt compelled to visit parts of Virginia and Carolina, and you have often been on my mind. Although I can’t be there in person, I want to share some thoughts from my heart, inspired by a love for truth. First, my dear friends, remain humble and be cautious not to let the desire for material gain take over. Keep your focus on the Lord so you can stay on the safe path. When people get caught up in chasing worldly things and prioritize profit and friendships over finding inner peace, they’re simply chasing shadows and missing out on true comfort in life. This behavior can negatively affect others, and the wealth they accumulate can often become dangerous traps for their children.
But where People are sincerely devoted to follow Christ, and dwell under the Influence of his holy Spirit, their Stability and Firmness, through a divine Blessing, is at Times like Dew on the tender Plants round about them, and the Weightiness of their Spirits secretly works on the Minds of others; and in this Condition, through the spreading Influence of divine Love, they feel a Care over the Flock; and Way is opened for maintaining good Order in the Society: And though we meet with Opposition from another Spirit, yet, as there is a dwelling in Meekness, feeling our Spirits subject, and moving only in the gentle peaceable Wisdom, the inward Reward of Quietness will be greater than all our Difficulties. Where the pure Life is kept to, and Meetings of Discipline are[Pg 62] held in the Authority of it, we find by Experience that they are comfortable, and tend to the Health of the Body.
However, where people are truly devoted to following Christ and live under the influence of His holy Spirit, their stability and strength, through divine blessing, can feel like dew on the delicate plants around them. The weight of their spirits quietly impacts the minds of others; in this state, through the spreading influence of divine love, they feel a responsibility for the community, and pathways open for maintaining good order within society. Although we may face opposition from other spirits, as long as we stay humble, feeling our spirits submitted, and act with gentle, peaceful wisdom, the inner reward of tranquility will outweigh all our difficulties. Where a pure life is upheld and meetings of discipline are[Pg 62] held with its authority, our experiences show that these meetings are comforting and promote the well-being of the community.
While I write, the Youth come fresh in my Way:—Dear young People, choose God for your Portion; love his Truth, and be not ashamed of it: Choose for your Company such as serve him in Uprightness; and shun, as most dangerous, the Conversation of those whose Lives are of an ill Savour; for, by frequenting such Company, some hopeful young People have come to great Loss, and have been drawn from less Evils to greater, to their utter Ruin. In the Bloom of Youth no Ornament is so lovely as that of Virtue, nor any Enjoyments equal to those which we partake of, in fully resigning ourselves to the divine Will: These Enjoyments add Sweetness to all other Comforts, and give true Satisfaction in Company and Conversation, where People are mutually acquainted with it; and, as your Minds are thus seasoned with the Truth, you will find Strength to abide stedfast to the Testimony of it, and be prepared for Services in the Church.
While I write, I think of the young people:—Dear young folks, prioritize God; love His Truth, and don’t be ashamed of it. Choose friends who serve Him with integrity and seriously avoid the company of those whose lives are morally questionable; associating with such people can lead promising young individuals to significant suffering and entice them from minor evils to greater ones, resulting in their complete downfall. In youth, there’s no ornament more beautiful than virtue, and no enjoyment matches the happiness we find when we fully surrender to the divine will. These joys enhance all other comforts and bring true satisfaction in social interactions, where people mutually understand it; as your minds ground themselves in Truth, you will find the strength to remain steadfast in its testimony and be ready for service in the Church.
And now, dear Friends and Brethren, as you are improving a Wilderness, and may be numbered amongst the first Planters in one Part of a Province, I beseech you, in the Love of Jesus Christ, to wisely consider the Force of your Examples, and think how much your Successors may be thereby affected: It is a Help in a Country, yea, and a great Favour and a Blessing, when Customs, first settled, are agreeable to sound Wisdom; so, when they are otherwise, the Effect of them is grievous; and Children feel themselves encompassed with Difficulties prepared for them by their Predecessors.
And now, dear Friends and Brethren, as you are developing a new community and may be among the first settlers in part of a province, I urge you, in the spirit of Jesus Christ, to carefully consider the impact of your actions and how much your successors may be influenced by them. It is a benefit in a nation, and a great favor and blessing, when established customs align with good judgment; however, when they don’t, the consequences can be challenging, leading future generations to face difficulties created by their predecessors.
As moderate Care and Exercise, under the Direction of true Wisdom, are useful both to Mind and Body; so by this Means in general, the real Wants of Life are easily supplied: Our gracious Father having so proportioned one to the other, that keeping in the true Medium we may pass on quietly. Where Slaves are purchased to do our Labour, numerous Difficulties attend it. To rational Creatures Bondage is uneasy, and frequently occasions Sourness and Discontent in them; which affects the[Pg 63] Family, and such as claim the Mastery over them: And thus People and their Children are many Times encompassed with Vexations, which arise from their applying to wrong Methods to get a Living.
Just as moderate care and exercise, guided by true wisdom, are beneficial for both the mind and body, maintaining a true middle ground enables us to meet life’s essential needs more easily. Our gracious Father has balanced the two, allowing us to live peacefully. When slaves are bought to perform our labor, it brings many challenges. For rational beings, slavery is uncomfortable and often leads to resentment and dissatisfaction, which impacts the[Pg 63] family and those in authority. Consequently, people and their children often find themselves surrounded by frustrations that arise from trying to earn a living through misguided means.
I have been informed that there is a large Number of Friends in your Parts, who have no Slaves; and in tender and most affectionate Love, I beseech you to keep clear from purchasing any. Look, my dear Friends, to divine Providence; and follow in Simplicity that Exercise of Body, that Plainness and Frugality, which true Wisdom leads to; so will you be preserved from those Dangers which attend such as are aiming at outward Ease and Greatness.
I’ve heard that there are many Friends in your area who have no slaves, and with deep affection, I urge you to avoid purchasing any. Look to divine Providence, my dear Friends; practice simplicity in your physical pursuits, along with plainness and frugality, which true wisdom directs you toward; by doing so, you will stay safe from the dangers faced by those seeking external comfort and greatness.
Treasures, though small, attained on a true Principle of Virtue, are sweet in the Possession, and, while we walk in the Light of the Lord, there is true Comfort and Satisfaction. Here, neither the Murmurs of an oppressed People, nor an uneasy Conscience, nor anxious Thoughts about the Events of Things, hinder the Enjoyment of it.
Treasures, even if small, gained through genuine virtue, are enjoyable to possess. When we live in the light of the Lord, we find true comfort and satisfaction. Here, nothing—neither the complaints of an oppressed people, nor a troubled conscience, nor worries about future events—can interfere with that enjoyment.
When we look toward the End of Life, and think on the Division of our Substance among our Successors; if we know that it was collected in the Fear of the Lord, in Honesty, in Equity, and in Uprightness of Heart before him, we may consider it as his Gift to us; and with a single Eye to his Blessing, bestow it on those we leave behind us. Such is the Happiness of the plain Ways of true Virtue. "The Work of Righteousness shall be Peace; and the Effect of Righteousness, Quietness and Assurance for ever." Isa. xxxii. 17.
When we consider the end of life and how to divide our assets among our heirs, if we know that what we’ve gathered was done with respect for God, honesty, fairness, and a sincere heart, we can see it as a gift from Him. With our focus on His blessing, we can pass it on to those we leave behind. This is the joy that comes from following the true path of virtue. "The work of righteousness will be peace, and the result of righteousness will be quietness and security forever." Isa. xxxii. 17.
Dwell here, my dear Friends; and then, in remote and solitary Desarts, you may find true Peace and Satisfaction. If the Lord be our God, in Truth and Reality, there is Safety for us; for he is a Stronghold in the Day of Trouble, and knoweth them that trust in him.
Stay here, my dear Friends; and then, in distant and isolated places, you may find true peace and satisfaction. If the Lord is our God, in truth and reality, there is safety for us; for He is a stronghold in times of trouble and knows those who trust in Him.
Isle of Wight County, in Virginia,
29th of the 5th Month, 1757.
From the Yearly-meeting in Virginia, I went to Carolina; and, on the first Day of the sixth Month, was at Wells Monthly-meeting, where the Spring of the Gospel[Pg 64] Ministry was opened, and the Love of Jesus Christ experienced amongst us: To his Name be the Praise!
From the yearly meeting in Virginia, I traveled to Carolina; and on the first day of the sixth month, I attended the Wells monthly meeting, where the spirit of the Gospel[Pg 64] ministry was shared, and we experienced the love of Jesus Christ among us: To His name be the praise!
Here my Brother joined with some Friends from New-Garden, who were going homeward; and I went next to Simond's Creek Monthly-meeting, where I was silent during the Meeting for Worship: When Business came on, my Mind was exercised concerning the poor Slaves; but did not feel my Way clear to speak: In this Condition I was bowed in Spirit before the Lord; and with Tears and inward Supplication besought him so to open my Understanding, that I might know his Will concerning me; and, at length, my mind was settled in Silence: Near the End of their Business, a Member of their Meeting expressed a Concern, that had some Time lain upon him, on Account of Friends so much neglecting their Duty in the Education of their Slaves; and proposed having Meetings sometimes appointed for them on a Week-day, to be only attended by some Friends to be named in their Monthly-meetings: Many present appeared to unite with the Proposal: One said, he had often wondered that they, being our Fellow-creatures, and capable of religious Understanding, had been so exceedingly neglected: Another expressed the like Concern, and appeared zealous, that Friends, in future, might more closely consider it: At length a Minute was made; and the farther Consideration of it referred to their next Monthly-meeting. The Friend who made this Proposal had Negroes: He told me, that he was at New-Garden, about two hundred and fifty Miles from Home, and came back alone; and that in this solitary Journey, this Exercise, in Regard to the Education of their Negroes, was, from Time to Time, renewed in his Mind. A Friend of some Note in Virginia, who had Slaves, told me, that he being far from Home on a lonesome Journey, had many serious Thoughts about them; and that his Mind was so impressed therewith, that he believed that he saw a Time coming, when divine Providence would alter the Circumstances of these People, respecting their Condition as Slaves.
Here, my brother joined some friends from New-Garden who were heading home; I then went to Simond's Creek Monthly Meeting, where I stayed silent during the Meeting for Worship. When it shifted to business, I felt a strong concern for the poor slaves but didn’t feel ready to speak. In this state, I bowed my spirit before the Lord, and with tears and inward supplication, I begged Him to help me understand His will for me. Eventually, I settled into silence. Near the end of their business, a member of the meeting shared a concern that had weighed on him for some time about Friends neglecting their duty in educating their slaves. He suggested setting up weekday meetings just for them, to be attended by certain Friends chosen in their Monthly meetings. Many present supported the idea. One person mentioned that he often wondered why, since they are our fellow-creatures and capable of understanding religion, they had been so greatly neglected. Another echoed this concern and seemed passionate about Friends taking it more seriously in the future. Finally, a record was made, and further discussion was postponed until the next Monthly Meeting. The Friend who made this proposal had slaves. He told me he had been at New-Garden, about two hundred and fifty miles from home, and returned alone. On that solitary journey, his concerns about the education of their enslaved people periodically resurfaced in his mind. A well-known Friend in Virginia, who also had slaves, told me that while he was far from home on a lonely trip, he had many serious thoughts about them, and he felt so strongly about it that he believed he could see a time coming when divine Providence would change the circumstances of these individuals regarding their status as slaves.
From hence I went to Newbegun Creek, and sat a[Pg 65] considerable Time in much Weakness; then I felt Truth open the Way to speak a little in much Plainness and Simplicity, till, at length, through the Increase of divine Love amongst us, we had a seasoning Opportunity. From thence to the Head of Little-River, on a First-day, where was a crowded Meeting; and, I believe, it was, through divine Goodness, made profitable to some. Thence to the Old-Neck; where I was led into a careful searching out the secret Workings of the Mystery of Iniquity, which, under a Cover of Religion, exalts itself against that pure Spirit, which leads in the Way of Meekness and Self-denial. From thence to Pineywoods: This was the last Meeting I was at in Carolina, and was large; and, my Heart being deeply engaged, I was drawn forth into a fervent Labour amongst them.
From there, I went to Newbegun Creek and spent a considerable amount of time feeling quite weak. Then, I sensed the truth opening up the way for me to speak a bit more plainly and simply, until eventually, thanks to the growth of divine love among us, we had a meaningful opportunity. From there, I went to the head of Little-River on a First Day, where there was a packed meeting; and I believe, through divine goodness, it was beneficial for some. Then I went to Old-Neck; where I felt led to carefully examine the hidden workings of the mystery of iniquity, which, under the guise of religion, elevates itself against that pure spirit that guides us in the way of meekness and self-denial. From there, I traveled to Pineywoods: this was the last meeting I attended in Carolina, and it was large; my heart being deeply engaged, I felt compelled to labor fervently among them.
From hence I went back into Virginia, and had a Meeting near James Cowpland's; it was a Time of inward Suffering; but, through the Goodness of the Lord, I was made content: Then to another Meeting; where, through the Renewings of pure Love, we had a very comfortable Season.
From there, I returned to Virginia, and attended a meeting near James Cowpland's; it was a time of inner struggle, but thanks to the Lord's goodness, I found contentment. Then I went to another meeting, where, through the refreshment of pure love, we experienced a very comforting time.
Travelling up and down of late, I have had renewed Evidences, that to be faithful to the Lord, and content with his Will concerning me, is a most necessary and useful Lesson for me to be learning; looking less at the Effects of my Labour, than at the pure Motion and Reality of the Concern, as it arises from heavenly Love. In the Lord Jehovah is everlasting Strength; and as the Mind, by a humble Resignation, is united to him; and we utter Words from an inward Knowledge that they arise from the heavenly Spring, though our Way may be difficult, and require close Attention to keep in it; and though the Manner in which we may be led may tend to our own Abasement; yet, if we continue in Patience and Meekness, heavenly Peace is the Reward of our Labours.
Lately, as I've been traveling back and forth, I've come to realize again that staying faithful to the Lord and being content with His will for me is a crucial lesson for me to learn. I need to focus less on the outcomes of my efforts and more on the genuine purpose and reality of my concerns, which come from divine love. In the Lord Jehovah is everlasting strength; when our minds humbly surrender to Him, we speak from an inner understanding that flows from a heavenly source. Even if our journey is tough and demands careful attention to stay on track, and even if the way we are guided may lead to our own humility, if we remain patient and gentle, we will find heavenly peace as the reward for our efforts.
From thence I went to Curles Meeting; which, though small, was reviving to the Honest-hearted. Thence to Black-Creek and Caroline Meetings; from whence, accompanied by William Standley, before-mentioned, we rode[Pg 66] to Goose-Creek, being much through the Woods, and about one hundred Miles.—We lodged the first Night at a Publick-house; the second, in the Woods; and, the next Day, we reached a Friend's House, at Goose-Creek. In the Woods we lay under some Disadvantage, having no Fire-works nor Bells for our Horses; but we stopped a little before Night, and let them feed on the wild Grass which was in plenty; in the mean Time cutting with our Knives a Store against Night, and then tying them, and gathering some Bushes under an Oak, we lay down; but, the Musquettoes being plenty, and the Ground damp, I slept but little: Thus, lying in the Wilderness, and looking at the Stars, I was led to contemplate on the Condition of our first Parents, when they were sent forth from the Garden; but the Almighty, though they had been disobedient, continued to be a Father to them, and shewed them what tended to their Felicity, as intelligent Creatures, and was acceptable to him. To provide Things relative to our outward Living, in the Way of true Wisdom, is good; and the Gift of improving in Things useful is a good Gift, and comes from the Father of Lights. Many have had this Gift; and, from Age to Age, there have been Improvements of this Kind made in the World: But some, not keeping to the pure Gift, have, in the creaturely Cunning and Self-Exaltation, sought out many Inventions; which Inventions of Men are distinct from that Uprightness in which Man was created; as the first Motion to them was evil, so the Effects have been and are evil. At this Day, it is as necessary for us constantly to attend on the heavenly Gift, to be qualified to use rightly the good Things in this Life amidst great Improvements, as it was for our first Parents, when they were without any Improvements, without any Friend or Father but God only.
From there, I went to Curles Meeting; which, although small, was uplifting for the sincere-hearted. Then I traveled to Black-Creek and Caroline Meetings; from there, along with William Standley, mentioned earlier, we rode[Pg 66] to Goose-Creek, navigating much of the woods, covering about one hundred miles. We stayed the first night at an inn; the second night, in the woods; and the next day, we reached a Friend's house at Goose-Creek. While in the woods, we had some challenges, lacking fire tools and bells for our horses; however, we stopped just before nightfall and let them graze on the abundant wild grass. In the meantime, we cut some branches with our knives for the night, tied them together, and gathered some bushes under an oak tree to rest. Unfortunately, there were many mosquitoes, and the ground was damp, so I hardly slept. Lying in the wilderness and gazing at the stars, I reflected on the state of our first parents when they were expelled from the Garden. Despite their disobedience, the Almighty continued to be a Father to them, showing them what would lead to their happiness as intelligent beings that pleased Him. Seeking what we need for our lives through true wisdom is valuable, and the ability to improve useful things is a great gift that comes from the Father of Lights. Many have received this gift, and throughout history, there have been advancements of this sort made in the world. Yet some, deviating from the pure gift, have pursued various inventions through human cunning and self-promotion, leading away from the integrity in which humans were created. Just as the initial impulse behind those inventions was evil, so too have been their outcomes. Today, it is just as essential for us to constantly focus on the heavenly gift to be equipped to use the good things in this life amidst substantial advancements as it was for our first parents when they had no advancements, no friends or fathers except God alone.
I was at a Meeting at Goose-Creek; and next at a Monthly-meeting at Fairfax; where, through the gracious Dealing of the Almighty with us, his Power prevailed over many Hearts. Thence to Manoquacy and Pipe-Creek, in Maryland; at both which Places I had Cause humbly to adore him, who supported me through many[Pg 67] Exercises, and by whose Help I was enabled to reach the true Witness in the Hearts of others: There were some hopeful young People in those Parts. Thence I had Meetings at John Everit's in Monalen, and at Huntingdon; and I was made humbly thankful to the Lord, who opened my Heart amongst the People in these new Settlements, so that it was a Time of Encouragement to the Honest-minded.
I was at a meeting at Goose-Creek; and next I attended a monthly meeting at Fairfax; where, through the gracious dealings of the Almighty with us, His power prevailed over many hearts. Then I went to Manoquacy and Pipe-Creek in Maryland; at both places, I had reason to humbly adore Him, who supported me through many[Pg 67] challenges, and by whose help I was able to reach the true witness in the hearts of others. There were some hopeful young people in those areas. After that, I had meetings at John Everit's in Monalen, and at Huntingdon; and I felt humbly thankful to the Lord, who opened my heart among the people in these new settlements, making it a time of encouragement for those with honest intentions.
At Monalen, a Friend gave me some Account of a religious Society among the Dutch, called Mennonists; and, amongst other Things, related a Passage in Substance as follows:—One of the Mennonists having Acquaintance with a Man of another Society at a considerable Distance, and being with his Waggon on Business near the House of his said Acquaintance, and Night coming on, he had Thoughts of putting up with him; but passing by his Fields, and observing the distressed Appearance of his Slaves, he kindled a Fire in the Woods hard by, and lay there that Night: His said Acquaintance hearing where he lodged, and afterward meeting the Mennonist, told him of it; adding, he should have been heartily welcome at his House; and, from their Acquaintance in former Time, wondered at his Conduct in that Case. The Mennonist replied, Ever since I lodged by thy Field, I have wanted an Opportunity to speak with thee: The Matter was; I intended to have come to thy House for Entertainment, but, seeing thy Slaves at their Work, and observing the Manner of their Dress, I had no liking to come to partake with thee: Then admonished him to use them with more Humanity; and added, As I lay by the Fire that Night, I thought that, as I was a Man of Substance, thou wouldst have received me freely; but, if I had been as poor as one of thy Slaves, and had no Power to help myself, I should have received from thy Hand no kinder Usage than they.
At Monalen, a friend told me about a religious group among the Dutch called Mennonists. Among other things, he shared a story that went something like this: One of the Mennonists knew a man from a different group who lived quite far away. When he was nearby with his wagon on business and night was approaching, he considered staying with this man. However, as he passed by the man's fields and noticed the poor condition of his slaves, he decided to start a fire in the nearby woods and spend the night there instead. The man eventually heard where he had stayed and, upon meeting the Mennonist, told him about it, expressing that he would have been warmly welcomed at his home. Given their previous acquaintance, he was surprised by the Mennonist's actions. The Mennonist responded, "Ever since I stayed by your field, I've wanted to talk to you. The thing is, I intended to visit your house for hospitality, but after seeing your slaves working and noticing how they were dressed, I didn’t feel comfortable sharing a meal with you. I urge you to treat them more humanely. As I sat by the fire that night, I thought that since I was a person of means, you would have welcomed me without hesitation; but had I been as poor as one of your slaves, with no ability to fend for myself, I would have received no better treatment from you than they did."
Hence I was at three Meetings in my Way; and so I went Home, under a humbling Sense of the gracious Dealings of the Lord with me, in preserving me through many Trials and Afflictions in my Journey. I was out about two Months, and travelled about eleven hundred and fifty Miles.
Hence I attended three meetings along my journey; and so I went home, feeling humbled by the Lord's gracious actions toward me, in protecting me through many trials and struggles during my travels. I was away for about two months and covered roughly eleven hundred and fifty miles.
CHAPTER V
The draughting of the Militia in New-Jersey to serve in the Army; with some Observations on the State of the Members of our Society at that Time—His Visit to Friends in Pennsylvania, accompanied by Benjamin Jones—Proceedings at the Monthly, Quarterly, and Yearly-Meetings, in Philadelphia, respecting those who keep Slaves
The recruitment of the militia in New Jersey to serve in the army; including some thoughts on the condition of the members of our society at that time—his visit to friends in Pennsylvania, along with Benjamin Jones—discussions at the monthly, quarterly, and yearly meetings in Philadelphia, about those who own slaves
On the ninth Day of the eighth Month, in the Year 1757, at Night, Orders came to the military Officers in our County (Burlington), directing them to draught the Militia, and prepare a Number of Men to go off as Soldiers, to the Relief of the English at Fort-William-Henry, in New-York Government: A few Days after which there was a general Review of the Militia at Mount-Holly, and a Number of Men chosen and sent off under some Officers. Shortly after, there came Orders to draught three Times as many, to hold themselves in Readiness to march when fresh Orders came: And, on the 17th Day of the eighth Month, there was a Meeting of the military Officers at Mount-Holly, who agreed on a Draught; and Orders were sent to the Men, so chosen, to meet their respective Captains at set Times and Places; those in our Township to meet at Mount-Holly; amongst whom was a considerable Number of our Society. My Mind being affected herewith, I had fresh Opportunity to see and consider the Advantage of living in the real Substance of Religion, where Practice doth harmonize with Principle. Amongst the Officers are Men of Understanding, who have some Regard to Sincerity where they see it; and in the Execution of their Office, when they have Men to deal with whom they believe to be upright-hearted, to put them to Trouble, on account of Scruples of Conscience, is a painful Task, and likely to be avoided as much as easily may be: But where Men profess to be so meek[Pg 69] and heavenly-minded, and to have their Trust so firmly settled in God, that they cannot join in Wars, and yet, by their Spirit and Conduct in common Life, manifest a contrary Disposition, their Difficulties are great at such a Time.
On the ninth day of the eighth month in the year 1757, at night, orders came to the military officers in our county (Burlington), instructing them to draft the militia and prepare a number of men to go as soldiers to aid the English at Fort-William-Henry in the New-York government. A few days later, there was a general review of the militia at Mount-Holly, and a number of men were selected and sent off under some officers. Shortly after, more orders came to draft three times as many men to be ready to march when new orders arrived. On the 17th day of the eighth month, there was a meeting of the military officers at Mount-Holly, who agreed on a draft, and orders were sent to those selected to meet their respective captains at set times and places; those in our township were to meet at Mount-Holly; among them was a significant number from our community. This situation made me reflect on the importance of living authentically in our faith, where practice aligns with principles. Among the officers are individuals of understanding who value sincerity when they see it; and in carrying out their duties, dealing with men they believe to be genuine at heart, troubling them because of their conscience is a difficult task and likely to be avoided whenever possible. However, when people claim to be so humble and God-centered that they cannot engage in war, yet their actions and attitudes in everyday life show the opposite, their challenges during such times are significant.
Officers, in great Anxiety, endeavouring to get Troops to answer the Demands of their Superiors, seeing Men, who are insincere, pretend Scruple of Conscience in Hopes of being excused from a dangerous Employment, such are likely to be roughly handled. In this Time of Commotion some of our young Men left the Parts, and tarried abroad till it was over; some came, and proposed to go as Soldiers; others appeared to have a real tender Scruple in their Minds against joining in Wars, and were much humbled under the Apprehension of a Trial so near: I had Conversation with several of them to my Satisfaction. At the set Time when the Captain came to Town, some of those last-mentioned went and told him in Substance as follows:—That they could not bear Arms for Conscience-sake; nor could they hire any to go in their Places, being resigned as to the Event of it: At length the Captain acquainted them all, that they might return Home for the present, and, required them to provide themselves as Soldiers, and to be in Readiness to march when called upon. This was such a Time as I had not seen before; and yet I may say, with Thankfulness to the Lord, that I believed this Trial was intended for our Good; and I was favoured with Resignation to him. The French Army, taking the Fort they were besieging, destroyed it and went away: The Company of Men first draughted, after some Days march, had Orders to return Home; and those on the second Draught were no more called upon on that Occasion.
Officers, feeling a lot of pressure, tried to get troops to meet the demands of their superiors. They saw men who were insincere, pretending to have a crisis of conscience in hopes of being excused from dangerous duties, and these men were likely to face harsh consequences. During this chaotic time, some of our young men left the area and stayed away until it was over; some returned and expressed their desire to enlist as soldiers; others genuinely struggled with the idea of participating in war and felt deeply troubled about the impending trial. I had satisfying conversations with several of them. When the captain arrived in town, some of those who had reservations approached him and essentially said: they couldn't bear arms for reasons of conscience, nor could they find anyone to take their place, as they accepted whatever happened. Eventually, the captain informed them that they could go home for now but needed to prepare themselves as soldiers and be ready to march when called. It was a time unlike any I had seen before, yet I can say with gratitude to the Lord that I believed this trial was meant for our benefit, and I felt a sense of resignation to His will. The French army, after capturing the fort they were besieging, destroyed it and moved on. The group of men initially drafted, after a few days of marching, received orders to return home, and those in the second draft were no longer called upon for this matter.
On the fourth Day of the fourth Month, in the Year 1758, Orders came to some Officers in Mount-Holly, to prepare Quarters, a short Time, for about one hundred Soldiers: And an Officer and two other Men, all Inhabitants of our Town, came to my House; and the Officer told me, that he came to speak with me, to provide Lodging and Entertainment for two Soldiers, there being[Pg 70] six Shillings a Week per Man allowed as Pay for it. The Case being new and unexpected, I made no Answer suddenly; but sat a Time silent, my Mind being inward: I was fully convinced, that the Proceedings in Wars are inconsistent with the Purity of the Christian Religion: And to be hired to entertain Men, who were then under Pay as Soldiers, was a Difficulty with me. I expected they had legal Authority for what they did; and, after a short Time, I said to the Officer, If the Men are sent here for Entertainment, I believe I shall not refuse to admit them into my House; but the Nature of the Case is such, that I expect I cannot keep them on Hire: One of the Men intimated, that he thought I might do it consistent with my religious Principles; To which I made no Reply; as believing Silence at that Time best for me. Though they spake of two, there came only one, who tarried at my House about two Weeks, and behaved himself civilly; and when the Officer came to pay me, I told him I could not take Pay for it, having admitted him into my House in a passive Obedience to Authority. I was on Horseback when he spake to me: And, as I turned from him, he said, he was obliged to me: To which I said nothing; but, thinking on the Expression, I grew uneasy; and afterwards, being near where he lived, I went and told him on what Grounds I refused taking Pay for keeping the Soldier.
On the fourth day of the fourth month in 1758, orders came to some officers in Mount-Holly to prepare accommodations for about one hundred soldiers for a short time. An officer and two other local men came to my house, and the officer said he wanted to talk to me about providing lodging and meals for two soldiers, mentioning that there was a pay of six shillings a week per man for it. The situation was new and unexpected, so I didn’t respond right away and sat in silence, deep in thought. I felt strongly that participating in war was not in line with the teachings of the Christian faith. Agreeing to accommodate men who were being paid as soldiers presented a moral challenge for me. I assumed they had the authority to make this request, and after a little while, I told the officer that if the men were sent here for accommodations, I would likely not refuse to let them stay; however, given the circumstances, I didn’t think I could keep them for pay. One of the men suggested that it might be fine for me to do this without going against my beliefs, but I chose to remain silent, thinking it was for the best at that moment. Although they mentioned two soldiers, only one came, staying at my house for about two weeks and behaving respectfully. When the officer came to pay me, I told him I could not accept payment, as I had let the soldier stay out of a sense of obedience to authority. I was on horseback when he spoke to me, and as I turned away, he said he appreciated my help. I didn’t answer, but his words troubled me, and later, when I was near his home, I went and explained why I refused to take payment for housing the soldier.
Near the Beginning of the Year 1758, I went one Evening, in Company with a Friend, to visit a sick Person; and, before our Return, we were told of a Woman living near, who, of late, had several Days been disconsolate, occasioned by a Dream; wherein Death, and the Judgments of the Almighty after Death, were represented to her Mind in a moving Manner: Her Sadness on that Account, being worn off, the Friend, with whom I was in Company, went to see her, and had some religious Conversation with her and her Husband: With this Visit they were somewhat affected; and the Man, with many Tears, expressed his Satisfaction; and, in a short Time after, the poor Man being on the River in a Storm of Wind, he, with one more, was drowned.[Pg 71]
Near the beginning of 1758, I went one evening with a friend to visit someone who was sick; and before we returned, we heard about a woman living nearby who had been very upset for several days because of a dream. In the dream, she vividly saw Death and the judgments of God after death. Once her sadness started to fade, my friend and I visited her and engaged in some religious conversation with her and her husband. They were somewhat moved by this visit, and the man expressed his gratitude with many tears. Sadly, not long after, this poor man drowned in the river during a storm.[Pg 71]
In the eighth Month of the Year 1758, having had Drawings in my Mind to be at the Quarterly-meeting in Chester County, and at some Meetings in the County of Philadelphia, I went first to said Quarterly-meeting, which was large, and several weighty Matters came under Consideration and Debate; and the Lord was pleased to qualify some of his Servants with Strength and Firmness to bear the Burthen of the Day: Though I said but little, my Mind was deeply exercised; and, under a Sense of God's Love, in the Anointing and fitting some young Men for his Work, I was comforted, and my Heart was tendered before him. From hence I went to the Youth's Meeting at Darby, where my beloved Friend and Brother, Benjamin Jones, met me, by an Appointment before I left Home, to join in the Visit: And we were at Radnor, Merion, Richland, North-Wales, Plymouth, and Abington Meetings; and had Cause to bow in Reverence before the Lord, our gracious God, by whose Help Way was opened for us from day to day. I was out about two Weeks, and rode about two hundred Miles.
In the eighth month of 1758, I had plans in my mind to attend the Quarterly meeting in Chester County and some meetings in Philadelphia County. I first went to the Quarterly meeting, which was large, and several important topics were discussed and debated. The Lord empowered some of His servants with strength and determination to handle the day's challenges. Even though I spoke very little, I was deeply moved; under the feeling of God's love, as He anointed and prepared some young men for His work, I found comfort, and my heart softened before Him. After that, I went to the Youth's Meeting at Darby, where my dear friend and brother, Ben Jones, met me as we had planned before I left home to work together on this visit. We also attended meetings at Radnor, Merion, Richland, North-Wales, Plymouth, and Abington; we had every reason to bow in reverence before the Lord, our gracious God, who helped us find a way each day. I was out for about two weeks and traveled approximately two hundred miles.
The Monthly-meeting of Philadelphia having been under a Concern on Account of some Friends who this Summer (1758) had bought Negro Slaves, the said Meeting moved it to their Quarterly-meeting, to have the Minute reconsidered in the Yearly-meeting, which was made last on that Subject: And the said Quarterly-meeting appointed a Committee to consider it, and report to their next; which Committee having met once and adjourned, I going to Philadelphia to meet a Committee of the Yearly-meeting, was in Town the Evening on which the Quarterly-meeting's Committee met the second Time; and, finding an Inclination to sit with them, was, with some others, admitted; and Friends had a weighty Conference on the Subject: And, soon after their next Quarterly-meeting, I heard that the Case was coming to our Yearly-meeting; which brought a weighty Exercise upon me, and under a Sense of my own Infirmities, and the great Danger I felt of turning aside from perfect Purity, my Mind was often drawn to retire alone, and put up my Prayers to the Lord, that he would be graciously[Pg 72] pleased to strengthen me; that, setting aside all Views of Self-interest, and the Friendship of this World, I might stand fully resigned to his holy Will.
The Monthly meeting of Philadelphia was concerned about some Friends who had purchased enslaved people this summer (1758). The meeting decided to bring this issue to their Quarterly meeting for reconsideration of the previous decision made at the Yearly meeting on the subject. The Quarterly meeting appointed a committee to look into it and report back at their next session. This committee met once, then adjourned. When I went to Philadelphia to meet with a committee from the Yearly meeting, I happened to be in town the evening the Quarterly meeting's committee met for the second time. Feeling a desire to join them, I, along with a few others, was allowed to sit in. Friends had a serious discussion on the matter. Soon after their next Quarterly meeting, I learned that the issue would be taken up at our Yearly meeting, which caused me significant concern. Aware of my own weaknesses and the serious risk of straying from complete purity, I often felt compelled to withdraw and pray alone, asking the Lord to graciously strengthen me, so that, putting aside any personal interests and worldly friendships, I could be fully resigned to His holy will.
In this Yearly-meeting, several weighty Matters were considered; and, toward the last, that in Relation to dealing with Persons who purchase Slaves. During the several Sittings of the said Meeting, my Mind was frequently covered with inward Prayer, and I could say with David, that Tears were my Meat Day and Night. The Case of Slave-keeping lay heavy upon me; nor did I find any Engagement to speak directly to any other Matter before the Meeting. Now, when this Case was opened, several faithful Friends spake weightily thereto, with which I was comforted; and, feeling a Concern to cast in my Mite, I said in Substance as follows:
In this yearly meeting, several important issues were discussed, particularly towards the end, about how to handle people who buy slaves. Throughout the different sessions of this meeting, I often felt a deep need to pray, and I could relate to David when he said, "Tears were my food day and night." The issue of slavery weighed heavily on my heart; I found no reason to speak on any other topic before the meeting. When this issue was brought up, several dedicated friends spoke powerfully about it, which brought me comfort; feeling a need to contribute my thoughts, I expressed myself as follows:
"In the Difficulties attending us in this Life, nothing is more precious than the Mind of Truth inwardly manifested; and it is my earnest Desire that, in this weighty Matter we may be so truly humbled as to be favoured with a clear Understanding of the Mind of Truth, and follow it; this would be of more Advantage to the Society, than any Medium not in the Clearness of divine Wisdom. The Case is difficult to some who have them; but if such set aside all Self-interest, and come to be weaned from the Desire of getting Estates, or even from holding them together, when Truth requires the Contrary, I believe Way will open that they will know how to steer through those Difficulties."
"In the challenges we face in this life, nothing is more valuable than having a clear understanding of the truth within ourselves. I truly hope that in this important matter, we can be genuinely humbled and gain a clear insight into the truth, and follow it. This would benefit our community more than any solution that lacks the clarity of divine wisdom. It's tough for some who possess these insights, but if they set aside all self-interest and detach from the desire to accumulate wealth or hold onto it when truth demands otherwise, I believe a path will open for them to navigate through those challenges."
Many Friends appeared to be deeply bowed under the Weight of the Work; and manifested much Firmness in their Love to the Cause of Truth and universal Righteousness on the Earth: And, though none did openly justify the Practice of Slave-keeping in general, yet some appeared concerned, lest the Meeting should go into such Measures as might give Uneasiness to many Brethren; alledging, that if Friends patiently continued under the Exercise, the Lord, in Time to come might open a Way for the Deliverance of these People: And, I finding an Engagement to speak, said, "My Mind is often led to consider the Purity of the divine Being, and the Justice of his[Pg 73] Judgments; and herein my Soul is covered with Awfulness: I cannot omit to hint of some Cases, where People have not been treated with the Purity of Justice, and the Event hath been lamentable: Many Slaves on this Continent are oppressed, and their Cries have reached the Ears of the Most High. Such are the Purity and Certainty of his Judgments, that he cannot be partial in our Favour. In infinite Love and Goodness, he hath opened our Understandings, from one Time to another, concerning our Duty towards this People; and it is not a Time for Delay. Should we now be sensible of what he requires of us, and, through a Respect to the private Interest of some Persons, or through a Regard to some Friendships which do not stand on an immutable Foundation, neglect to do our Duty in Firmness and Constancy, still waiting for some extraordinary Means to bring about their Deliverance, it may be by terrible Things in Righteousness God may answer us in this Matter."
Many Friends seemed to be overwhelmed by the weight of the work; they showed a strong commitment to the cause of truth and universal justice on Earth. While no one openly supported the practice of slavery in general, some were worried that the Meeting might take steps that would upset many members. They argued that if Friends patiently endured the struggle, in time, the Lord might provide a way for the liberation of these people. Feeling compelled to speak, I said, "I often think about the purity of the divine being and the justice of his judgments, and this fills my soul with awe. I cannot ignore some instances where people haven't been treated with true justice, leading to sad outcomes. Many slaves on this continent are suffering, and their cries have reached the ears of the Most High. His judgments are so pure and certain that He cannot be biased in our favor. In His infinite love and goodness, He has opened our understanding, time and again, about our responsibilities towards these people; and this is not a time for delay. If we recognize what He asks of us, but, out of concern for some personal interests or friendships that are not securely based, fail to fulfill our duty with firmness and perseverance while waiting for some extraordinary means to effect their liberation, it may be that God will respond to us in this matter with terrible consequences in righteousness.”
Many faithful Brethren laboured with great Firmness; and the Love of Truth, in a good Degree, prevailed. Several Friends, who had Negroes, expressed their Desire that a Rule might be made, to deal with such Friends as Offenders who bought Slaves in future: To this it was answered, that the Root of this Evil would never be effectually struck at, until a thorough Search was made into the Circumstances of such Friends as kept Negroes, with respect to the Righteousness of their Motives in keeping them, that impartial Justice might be administered throughout. Several Friends expressed their Desire, that a Visit might be made to such Friends as kept Slaves; and many Friends said, that they believed Liberty was the Negroes Right: To which, at length, no Opposition was made publickly. A Minute was made more full on that Subject than any heretofore; and the Names of several Friends entered, who were free to join in a Visit to such as kept Slaves.
Many devoted members worked with great determination, and a genuine love for the truth shone through. Some members who owned enslaved people expressed a desire for a rule to address those who buy slaves in the future. In response, it was noted that the root of this issue would never be truly addressed until a thorough examination was done regarding the motives of those who kept enslaved people, ensuring that fair justice was applied across the board. Many members wished to visit those who owned enslaved individuals, and lots of them were firm in their belief that freedom was the right of the enslaved. Eventually, no public opposition arose against this idea. A detailed minute was recorded on this topic, more comprehensive than any prior ones, with the names of several members who were willing to participate in a visit to those who owned enslaved people.
CHAPTER VI
His visiting the Quarterly-meetings in Chester County; and afterwards joining with Daniel Stanton and John Scarborough in a Visit to such as kept Slaves there—Some Observations on the Conduct such should maintain as are concerned to speak in Meetings for Discipline—Several more Visits to such as kept Slaves; and to Friends near Salem—Some Account of the Yearly-meeting in the Year 1759; and of the increasing Concern, in divers Provinces, to labour against buying and keeping Slaves—The Yearly-meeting Epistle
His visit to the Quarterly meetings in Chester County; and later joining Daniel Stanton and John Scarborough to visit those who owned slaves there—Some thoughts on how those involved should behave when speaking at Meetings for Discipline—Several more visits to those who owned slaves; and to Friends near Salem—A report on the Yearly meeting in 1759; and the increasing concern, in various provinces, to address the issue of buying and owning slaves—The Yearly meeting Epistle
On the eleventh Day of the eleventh Month, in the Year 1758, I set out for Concord; the Quarterly-meeting, heretofore held there, was now, by reason of a great Increase of Members, divided into two by the Agreement of Friends, at our last Yearly-meeting. Here I met with our beloved Friends, Samuel Spavold and Mary Kirby, from England, and with Joseph White, from Bucks County, who had taken Leave of his Family in order to go on a religious Visit to Friends in England; and, through divine Goodness, we were favoured with a strengthening Opportunity together.
On the 11th day of the 11th month in 1758, I headed to Concord; the Quarterly Meeting, which used to be held there, was now, due to a significant increase in members, divided into two by the agreement of Friends at our last Yearly Meeting. There, I met our dear Friends, Samuel Spavold and Mary Kirby, from England, and Joseph White from Bucks County, who had left his family to go on a religious visit to Friends in England; and, thanks to divine goodness, we were blessed with a supportive opportunity together.
After this Meeting I joined with my Friends, Daniel Stanton and John Scarborough, in visiting Friends who had Slaves; and at Night we had a Family-meeting at William Trimble's, many young People being there; and it was a precious reviving Opportunity. Next Morning we had a comfortable Sitting with a sick Neighbour; and thence to the Burial of the Corpse of a Friend at Uwchland Meeting, at which were many People, and it was a Time of divine Favour; after which, we visited some who had Slaves; and, at Night, had a Family-meeting at a Friend's House, where the Channel of Gospel-love was opened, and my Mind was comforted after a hard Day's Labour. The next Day we were at Goshen Monthly-meeting; and thence, on the eighteenth Day of[Pg 75] the eleventh Month, in the Year 1758, attended the Quarterly-meeting at London-Grove, it being the first held at that Place. Here we met again with all the before-mentioned Friends, and had some edifying Meetings: And, near the Conclusion of the Meeting for Business, Friends were incited to Constancy in supporting the Testimony of Truth, and reminded of the Necessity which the Disciples of Christ are under to attend principally to his Business, as he is pleased to open it to us: And to be particularly careful to have our Minds redeemed from the Love of Wealth; to have our outward Affairs in as little Room as may be; that no temporal Concerns may entangle our Affections, or hinder us from diligently following the Dictates of Truth, in labouring to promote the pure Spirit of Meekness and Heavenly-mindedness amongst the Children of Men in these Days of Calamity and Distress, wherein God is visiting our Land with his just Judgments.
After this meeting, I joined my friends, Daniel Stanton and John Scarborough, to visit friends who owned slaves. That night, we had a family meeting at William Trimble, which many young people attended; it was a wonderful uplifting experience. The next morning, we had a comforting visit with a sick neighbor; then we went to the burial of a friend’s body at Uwchland Meeting, where many people gathered, and it was a time of divine favor. After that, we visited some who had slaves, and later that evening, we held a family meeting at a friend’s house, where the channel of gospel love was opened, and I felt comforted after a long day’s work. The following day, we attended Goshen Monthly Meeting, and then on the eighteenth day of [Pg 75] in the eleventh month of the year 1758, we attended the Quarterly Meeting at London-Grove, which was the first one held there. We reunited with all the previously mentioned friends and had some enriching meetings. Near the end of the business meeting, friends were encouraged to remain steadfast in supporting the testimony of truth and reminded of the necessity for Christ's disciples to focus primarily on his work as he reveals it to us. We were specifically urged to free our minds from the love of wealth and keep our outward affairs as minimal as possible, so that no temporal concerns could entangle our affections or hinder us from diligently following the guidance of truth, as we work to promote the pure spirit of meekness and heavenly-mindedness among people during these times of calamity and distress, in which God is visiting our land with his just judgments.
Each of these Quarterly-meetings was large, and sat near eight Hours. Here I had Occasion to consider, that it was a weighty Thing to speak much in large Meetings for Business: First, except our Minds are rightly prepared, and we clearly understand the Case we speak to, instead of forwarding, we hinder, Business, and make more Labour for those on whom the Burthen of the Work is laid.
Each of these quarterly meetings was large and lasted about eight hours. Here, I realized that speaking a lot in big meetings for business is significant. First, unless our minds are properly prepared and we clearly understand the issue at hand, instead of helping, we actually hinder progress and create more work for those who bear the burden of the tasks.
If selfish Views, or a partial Spirit, have any Room in our Minds, we are unfit for the Lord's Work; if we have a clear Prospect of the Business, and proper Weight on our Minds to speak, it behoves us to avoid useless Apologies and Repetitions: Where People are gathered from far, and adjourning a Meeting of Business is attended with great Difficulty, it behoves all to be cautious how they detain a Meeting; especially when they have sat six or seven Hours, and have a great Distance to ride Home. After this Meeting I rode Home.
If we have selfish views or a biased mindset, we aren't ready to do the Lord's work. If we clearly understand the task and feel the necessary weight to speak, we should skip pointless apologies and repetitions. When people come from far away, and postponing a meeting poses significant challenges, everyone should be careful about how long they keep the meeting going; especially after sitting for six or seven hours, with a long distance to travel home. After this meeting, I rode home.
In the Beginning of the twelfth Month of the Year 1758 I joined in Company with my Friends, John Sykes and Daniel Stanton, in visiting such as had Slaves: Some, whose Hearts were rightly exercised about them, appeared[Pg 76] to be glad of our Visit; but in some Places our Way was more difficult; and I often saw the Necessity of keeping down to that Root from whence our Concern proceeded; and have Cause, in reverent Thankfulness, humbly to bow down before the Lord, who was near to me, and preserved my Mind in Calmness under some sharp Conflicts, and begat a Spirit of Sympathy and Tenderness in me toward some who were grievously entangled by the Spirit of this World.
In the beginning of December 1758, I joined my friends, John Sykes and Daniel Stanton, in visiting those who had slaves. Some of them, who were genuinely concerned about the situation, seemed to appreciate our visit; however, in other places, it was more challenging. I often recognized the need to return to the core of our concern, and I have reason, in deep gratitude, to humbly bow before the Lord, who was close to me and kept my mind calm during some intense struggles, instilling in me a spirit of compassion and kindness toward those who were deeply caught up in the ways of this world.
In the first Month of the Year 1759, having found my Mind drawn to visit some of the more active Members, in our Society at Philadelphia, who had Slaves, I met my Friend John Churchman there, by an Agreement: And we continued about a Week in the City. We visited some that were sick, and some Widows and their Families; and the other Part of our Time was mostly employed in visiting such as had Slaves.—It was a Time of deep Exercise, looking often to the Lord for his Assistance; who, in unspeakable Kindness, favoured us with the Influence of that Spirit, which crucifies to the Greatness and Splendour of this World, and enabled us to go through some heavy Labours, in which we found Peace.
In the first month of the year 1759, I felt compelled to visit some of the more active members of our society in Philadelphia who owned slaves. I met my friend John Churchman there as planned, and we stayed in the city for about a week. We visited some people who were sick, as well as widows and their families; most of our time was spent visiting those who had slaves. It was a time of deep struggle, always looking to the Lord for His help, who, in His immense kindness, blessed us with the influence of His spirit, which helps us detach from the grandeur and allure of this world, enabling us to endure some difficult work, where we found peace.
On the twenty-fourth Day of the third Month of this Year, I was at our general Spring-meeting at Philadelphia: After which, I again joined with John Churchman on a Visit to some more who had Slaves in Philadelphia; and, with Thankfulness to our heavenly Father, I may say, that divine Love and a true sympathising Tenderness of Heart prevailed at Times in this Service.
On the twenty-fourth day of the third month of this year, I was at our general spring meeting in Philadelphia. After that, I joined John Churchman to visit more people who had slaves in Philadelphia. With gratitude to our heavenly Father, I can say that divine love and genuine compassion occasionally shone through in this work.
Having, at Times, perceived a Shyness in some Friends, of considerable Note, towards me, I found an Engagement in Gospel Love to pay a Visit to one of them; and, as I dwelt under the Exercise, I felt a Resignedness in my Mind to go; So I went, and told him, in private, I had a Desire to have an Opportunity with him alone; to which he readily agreed: And then, in the Fear of the Lord, Things relating to that Shyness were searched to the Bottom; and we had a large Conference, which, I believe, was of Use to both of us, and am thankful that Way was opened for it.[Pg 77]
Having sometimes noticed a shyness in some of my notable friends towards me, I felt a strong urge, driven by love, to visit one of them. As I reflected on this, I found a peace in my mind about going; so I did, and privately told him I wanted the chance to talk just the two of us, which he readily agreed to. Then, in a spirit of sincerity, we explored the reasons behind that shyness deeply, and we ended up having a long discussion that I believe benefited both of us. I'm grateful that the opportunity for this conversation arose.[Pg 77]
On the fourteenth Day of the sixth Month, in the same Year, having felt Drawings in my Mind to visit Friends about Salem, and having the Approbation of our Monthly-meeting therein, I attended their Quarterly-meeting, and was out seven Days, and at seven Meetings; in some of which I was chiefly silent, and in others, through the baptizing Power of Truth, my Heart was enlarged in heavenly Love, and found a near Fellowship with the Brethren and Sisters, in the manifold Trials attending their Christian Progress through this World.
On the fourteenth day of the sixth month in the same year, feeling a strong urge in my mind to visit friends near Salem, and having received approval from our monthly meeting, I went to their quarterly meeting. I was away for seven days and attended seven meetings. In some of these, I mostly stayed silent, while in others, through the powerful influence of Truth, my heart was opened in heavenly love, and I felt a deep connection with the brothers and sisters as we faced the various challenges of their Christian journey in this world.
In the seventh Month, I found an increasing Concern on my Mind to visit some active Members in our Society who had Slaves; and, having no Opportunity of the Company of such as were named on the Minutes of the Yearly-meeting, I went alone to their Houses, and, in the Fear of the Lord, acquainted them with the Exercise I was under: And thus, sometimes, by a few Words, I found myself discharged from a heavy Burthen.
In the seventh month, I felt a growing urge to visit some active members of our community who owned slaves. Since I had no chance to be with those mentioned in the minutes of the yearly meeting, I went to their homes alone, and, with a sense of respect and sincerity, I shared the struggle I was facing. In doing so, I found that sometimes just a few words helped relieve me of a heavy burden.
After this, our Friend John Churchman, coming into our Province with a View to be at some Meetings, and to join again in the Visit to those who had Slaves, I bore him Company in the said Visit to some active Members, and found inward Satisfaction.
After this, our friend John Churchman came to our area to attend some meetings and reconnect with those who had slaves. I accompanied him on this visit to a few active members, and I felt a sense of inner satisfaction.
At our Yearly-meeting, in the Year 1759, we had some weighty Seasons; where the Power of Truth was largely extended, to the strengthening of the Honest-minded. As Friends read over the Epistles, to be sent to the Yearly-meetings along this Continent, I observed in most of them, both this Year and last, it was recommended to Friends to labour against buying and keeping Slaves; and in some of them closely treated upon. This Practice had long been a heavy Exercise to me, and I have often waded through mortifying Labours on that Account; and, at Times, in some Meetings been almost alone therein. Now, observing the increasing Concern in our religious Society, and seeing how the Lord was raising up and qualifying Servants for his Work, not only in this Respect, but for promoting the Cause of Truth in general, I was humbly bowed in Thankfulness before him.
At our Yearly Meeting in 1759, we experienced some significant moments where the power of Truth was greatly felt, strengthening those with honest hearts. As Friends reviewed the letters to be sent to the Yearly Meetings across the continent, I noticed in most of them, both this year and last, a recommendation for Friends to work against buying and owning slaves, with some letters discussing this issue in depth. This practice had long troubled me, and I have often gone through painful struggles because of it, sometimes feeling almost alone in my meetings. Now, seeing the growing concern within our religious community and witnessing how the Lord was raising and preparing servants for His work, not just on this issue but in promoting the cause of Truth in general, I felt humbly grateful to Him.
This Meeting continued near a Week; and, for several[Pg 78] Days, in the fore Part of it, my Mind was drawn into a deep inward Stillness; and being, at Times, covered with the Spirit of Supplication, my Heart was secretly poured out before the Lord: And, near the Conclusion of the Meeting for Business, Way opened, that, in the pure Flowings of divine Love, I expressed what lay upon me; which, as it then arose in my Mind, was "first to shew how Deep answers to Deep in the Hearts of the Sincere and Upright; though, in their different Growths, they may not all have attained to the same Clearness in some Points relating to our Testimony: And I was led to mention the Integrity and Constancy of many Martyrs, who gave their Lives for the Testimony of Jesus; and yet, in some Points, held Doctrines distinguishable from some which we hold: And that, in all Ages, where People were faithful to the Light and Understanding which the Most High afforded them, they found Acceptance with him; and that now, though there are different Ways of Thinking amongst us in some Particulars, yet, if we mutually kept to that Spirit and Power which crucifies to the World, which teaches us to be content with Things really needful, and to avoid all Superfluities, giving up our Hearts to fear and serve the Lord, true Unity may still be preserved amongst us: And that if such, as were, at Times, under Sufferings on Account of some Scruples of Conscience, kept low and humble, and in their Conduct in Life manifested a Spirit of true Charity, it would be more likely to reach the Witness in others, and be of more Service in the Church, than if their Sufferings were attended with a contrary Spirit and Conduct." In which Exercise I was drawn into a sympathizing Tenderness with the Sheep of Christ, however distinguished one from another in this World; and the like Disposition appeared to spread over others in the Meeting. Great is the Goodness of the Lord toward his poor Creatures!
This meeting went on for nearly a week, and for several[Pg 78] days at the beginning, I found myself in a deep inner calm. At times, I was filled with a spirit of prayer, and my heart was quietly laid bare before the Lord. Towards the end of the business meeting, a way opened up for me to speak, inspired by the pure flow of divine love, about what was on my mind. I wanted to highlight how Deep connects with Deep in the hearts of honest and upright people. Even though they grow in different ways and might not fully understand every detail of our beliefs, I felt led to mention the integrity and steadfastness of many martyrs who gave their lives for the testimony of Jesus; they held some beliefs that differ from ours. Throughout history, whenever people stayed true to the light and understanding that the Most High granted them, they found acceptance with Him. Now, even though we may think differently on some issues, if we all stick to that spirit and power which separates us from the world—teaching us to be satisfied with what we truly need and to avoid excesses, while dedicating our hearts to fearing and serving the Lord—we can still maintain true unity among us. I also noted that those who face struggles due to their conscience should remain humble and, by their actions, show true charity, as it would likely resonate more with others and be of greater benefit to the Church than if their struggles were accompanied by a negative spirit and behavior. In this experience, I felt a deep compassion for the followers of Christ, regardless of how they are distinguished in this world, and I sensed that this same attitude spread among others in the meeting. The Lord's goodness toward His humble creatures is immense!
An Epistle went forth from this Yearly-meeting, which I think good to give a Place in this Journal; being as follows:[Pg 79]
An email was sent out from this annual meeting, which I think is good to include in this journal; it is as follows:[Pg 79]
From the Yearly-meeting held at Philadelphia, for Pennsylvania and New-Jersey, from the twenty-second Day of the ninth Month, to the twenty-eighth Day of the same, inclusive, 1759.
From the annual meeting held in Philadelphia for Pennsylvania and New Jersey, from the 22nd day of the 9th month to the 28th day of the same, inclusive, 1759.
To the Quarterly and Monthly-meetings of Friends belonging to the said Yearly-meeting.
To the Quarterly and Monthly meetings of Friends connected with the said Yearly meeting.
"Dearly beloved Friends and Brethren,—In an awful Sense of the Wisdom and Goodness of the Lord our God, whose tender Mercies have long been continued to us in this Land, we affectionately salute you, with sincere and fervent Desires, that we may reverently regard the Dispensations of his Providence, and improve under them.
"Dear friends and loved ones, — With a deep appreciation for the wisdom and goodness of our Lord God, whose gentle mercies have consistently been displayed to us in this land, we warmly greet you, with heartfelt hopes that we may respectfully acknowledge the workings of His providence and learn from them."
The Empires and Kingdoms of the Earth are subject to his almighty Power: He is the God of the Spirits of all Flesh, and deals with his People agreeable to that Wisdom, the Depth whereof is to us unsearchable: We, in these Provinces, may say, he hath, as a gracious and tender Parent, dealt bountifully with us, even from the Days of our Fathers: It was he who strengthened them to labour through the Difficulties attending the Improvement of a Wilderness, and made Way for them in the Hearts of the Natives; so that by them they were comforted in Times of Want and Distress: It was by the gracious Influences of his holy Spirit, that they were disposed to work Righteousness, and walk uprightly one towards another, and towards the Natives, and in Life and Conversation to manifest the Excellency of the Principles and Doctrines of the Christian Religion; and thereby they retain their Esteem and Friendship: Whilst they were labouring for the Necessaries of Life, many of them were fervently engaged to promote Piety and Virtue in the Earth, and educate their Children in the Fear of the Lord.
The nations and kingdoms of the world are under His great power: He is the God of all living spirits and interacts with His people according to wisdom that is beyond our understanding. Here in these provinces, we can truly say that He has treated us generously, like a loving and caring parent, since the days of our ancestors. It was He who gave them strength to navigate the challenges of transforming wilderness into something better and helped them win the hearts of the native people; in this way, they found comfort during times of need and hardship. It was through the gracious influence of His holy Spirit that they were encouraged to do the right thing and to treat each other and the natives with integrity, showing the excellence of the principles and teachings of the Christian faith; as a result, they maintained respect and friendship. While working for the necessities of life, many committed themselves to promoting faith and virtue in the world and raised their children with a reverence for the Lord.
If we carefully consider the peaceable Measures pursued in the first Settlement of the Land, and that Freedom from the Desolations of Wars which for a long Time we enjoyed, we shall find ourselves under strong Obligations[Pg 80] to the Almighty, who, when the Earth is so generally polluted with Wickedness, gave us a Being in a Part so signally favoured with Tranquility and Plenty, and in which the Glad-tidings of the Gospel of Christ are so freely published, that we may justly say with the Psalmist, "What shall we render unto the Lord for all his Benefits?"
If we consider the peaceful means used during the initial settlement of this land, and the long period of freedom from the devastation of wars, we will realize we owe a great deal to the Almighty. He gave us life in a place that has been particularly blessed with peace and abundance, where the good news of the Gospel of Christ is shared freely. In this light, we can rightly echo the Psalmist's question: "What shall we render unto the Lord for all his Benefits?"[Pg 80]
Our own real Good, and the Good of our Posterity, in some Measure, depend on the Part we act; and it nearly concerns us to try our Foundations impartially. Such are the different Rewards of the Just and Unjust in a future State, that, to attend diligently to the Dictates of the Spirit of Christ, to devote ourselves to his Service, and engage fervently in his Cause, during our short Stay in this World, is a Choice well becoming a free intelligent Creature; we shall thus clearly see and consider that the Dealings of God with Mankind in a national Capacity, as recorded in Holy Writ, do sufficiently evidence the Truth of that Saying, "It is Righteousness which exalteth a Nation;" and though he doth not at all Times suddenly execute his Judgments on a sinful People in this Life, yet we see, by many Instances, that where "Men follow lying Vanities, they forsake their own Mercies;" and as a proud selfish Spirit prevails and spreads among a People, so partial Judgment, Oppression, Discord, Envy, and Confusions, increase, and Provinces and Kingdoms are made to drink the Cup of Adversity as a Reward of their own Doings. Thus the inspired Prophet, reasoning with the degenerated Jews, saith, "Thine own Wickedness shall correct thee, and thy Backslidings shall reprove thee: Know, therefore, that it is an evil Thing and bitter, that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God, and that my Fear is not in thee, saith the Lord God of Hosts." Jer. ii. 19.
Our true well-being, and that of future generations, partly relies on our actions; it’s essential for us to examine our foundations without bias. The varying rewards for the righteous and the wicked in the afterlife demonstrate that dedicating ourselves to the teachings of Christ, serving Him, and passionately supporting His cause during our short time in this world is a choice that reflects the essence of a free and thoughtful being. By doing this, we clearly recognize that God's interactions with humanity on a national level, as noted in the Scriptures, affirm the truth of the saying, "Righteousness exalts a nation." Although God doesn’t always immediately impose His judgments on a sinful people in this life, we see many instances where when people pursue falsehoods, they miss out on their own blessings. As pride and selfishness spread within a community, we witness increases in biased judgments, oppression, conflict, envy, and chaos, leading regions and nations to face adversity as a result of their own actions. Thus, the inspired prophet, addressing the corrupt Jews, says, "Your own wickedness will correct you, and your backslidings will reprove you: Know, therefore, that it is an evil and bitter thing that you have forsaken the Lord your God, and that my fear is not in you, says the Lord God of Hosts." Jer. ii. 19.
The God of our Fathers, who hath bestowed on us many Benefits, furnished a Table for us in the Wilderness, and made the Desarts and solitary Places to rejoice; he doth now mercifully call upon us to serve him more faithfully.—We may truly say, with the Prophet, "It is his Voice which crieth to the City, and Men of Wisdom see his Name: They regard the Rod, and him who hath[Pg 81] appointed it."—People, who look chiefly at Things outward, too little consider the original Cause of the present Troubles; but such as fear the Lord, and think often upon his Name, see and feel that a wrong Spirit is spreading among the Inhabitants of our Country; that the Hearts of many are waxed fat, and their Ears dull of hearing; that the Most High, in his Visitations to us, instead of calling, lifteth up his Voice and crieth; he crieth to our Country, and his Voice waxeth louder and louder. In former Wars between the English and other Nations, since the Settlement of our Provinces, the Calamities attending them have fallen chiefly on other Places, but now of late they have reached to our Borders; many of our fellow Subjects have suffered on and near our Frontiers, some have been slain in Battle, some killed in their Houses, and some in their Fields, some wounded and left in great Misery, and others separated from their Wives and little Children, who have been carried Captives among the Indians: We have seen Men and Women, who have been Witnesses of these Scenes of Sorrow, and been reduced to Want, have come to our Houses asking Relief.—It is not long since it was the Case of many young Men, in one of these Provinces, to be draughted, in order to be taken as Soldiers; some were at that Time in great Distress, and had Occasion to consider that their Lives had been too little conformable to the Purity and Spirituality of that Religion which we profess, and found themselves too little acquainted with that inward Humility, in which true Fortitude to endure Hardness for the Truth's Sake is experienced.—Many Parents were concerned for their Children, and in that Time of Trial were led to consider, that their Care, to get outward Treasure for them, had been greater than their Care for their Settlement in that Religion which crucifieth to the World, and enableth to bear a clear Testimony to the peaceable Government of the Messiah. These Troubles are removed, and for a Time we are released from them.
The God of our Fathers, who has given us many blessings, provided us with a feast in the wilderness and filled the desolate places with joy; He now lovingly calls us to serve Him more faithfully.—We can truly say, with the Prophet, "It is His Voice that cries out to the City, and Wise People recognize His Name: They pay attention to the Rod and to Him who has[Pg 81] appointed it."—People who primarily focus on outward things often overlook the root cause of our current troubles; but those who fear the Lord and frequently contemplate His Name see and feel that a wrong spirit is spreading among the people of our Country; that many hearts have become hardened, and their ears dull of hearing; that the Most High, in His dealings with us, instead of merely calling, raises His voice and cries out; He cries out to our Country, and His Voice grows louder and louder. In prior Wars between the English and other Nations, since our Provinces were established, the resulting suffering primarily affected other places, but lately it has reached our Borders; many of our fellow Subjects have suffered on and near our Frontiers, some have been killed in battle, some in their homes, and some in their fields, some wounded and in great pain, and others separated from their wives and little children, who have been taken captive among the Indians: We have seen men and women, who have witnessed these painful scenes and have fallen into need, come to our homes asking for help.—Not long ago, many young men in one of these Provinces were drafted to serve as soldiers; some were deeply distressed at that time, and they recognized that their lives hadn’t closely aligned with the purity and spirituality of our Religion, and they found themselves lacking the inner humility that truly helps one endure hardships for the sake of the Truth.—Many parents worried about their children, and during that time of testing, they realized that their efforts to acquire outward wealth for them had been greater than their concern for their children’s foundation in the faith that detaches from the world and enables them to bear strong testimony to the peaceful reign of the Messiah. These troubles have been lifted, and for now, we are free from them.
Let us not forget that "The Most High hath his Way in the Deep, in Clouds and in thick Darkness"—that it is his Voice which crieth to the City and to the Country;[Pg 82] and oh! that these loud and awakening Cries may have a proper Effect upon us, that heavier Chastisement may not become necessary! For though Things, as to the Outward, may, for a short Time, afford a pleasing Prospect; yet, while a selfish Spirit, that is not subject to the Cross of Christ, continueth to spread and prevail, there can be no long Continuance in outward Peace and Tranquility. If we desire an Inheritance incorruptible, and to be at Rest in that State of Peace and Happiness, which ever continues; if we desire, in this Life, to dwell under the Favour and Protection of that almighty Being, whose Habitation is in Holiness, whose Ways are all equal, and whose Anger is now kindled because of our Backslidings; let us then awfully regard these Beginnings of his fore Judgments, and, with Abasement and Humiliation turn to him, whom we have offended.
Let’s not forget that "The Most High has His way in the deep, in clouds and in thick darkness"—that it is His voice that calls out to the city and the countryside; [Pg 82] and oh! that these loud and awakening calls may have the right effect on us, so that heavier punishment doesn’t become necessary! For although things may seem pleasant on the outside for a short time, as long as a selfish spirit, which is not under the cross of Christ, continues to grow and prevail, there cannot be lasting outward peace and tranquility. If we desire an uncorrupted inheritance, and to be at rest in a lasting state of peace and happiness; if we want to live this life under the favor and protection of that almighty Being, whose dwelling is in holiness, whose ways are just, and whose anger is currently ignited because of our backslidings; let us then seriously consider these early signs of His judgments, and, with humility and awareness of our shortcomings, turn to Him whom we have offended.
Contending with one equal in Strength is an uneasy Exercise; but if the Lord is become our Enemy, if we persist to contend with him who is omnipotent, our Overthrow will be unavoidable.
Dealing with someone equally strong is a tough challenge; but if the Lord has become our enemy, and we keep trying to fight against the one who is all-powerful, our defeat is certain.
Do we feel an affectionate Regard to Posterity; and are we employed to promote their Happiness? Do our Minds, in Things outward, look beyond our own Dissolution; and are we contriving for the Prosperity of our Children after us? Let us then, like wise Builders, lay the Foundation deep; and, by our constant uniform Regard to an inward Piety and Virtue, let them see that we really value it: Let us labour, in the Fear of the Lord, that their innocent Minds, while young and tender, may be preserved from Corruptions; that, as they advance in Age, they may rightly understand their true Interest, may consider the Uncertainty of temporal Things, and, above all, have their Hope and Confidence firmly settled in the Blessing of that Almighty Being, who inhabits Eternity, and preserves and supports the World.
Do we care about future generations and strive to ensure their happiness? Do our thoughts, concerning what’s outside ourselves, extend beyond our own end, and are we planning for our children’s success after we're gone? Let’s be like wise builders and lay a strong foundation. By consistently valuing inner piety and virtue, let’s demonstrate that we genuinely care about it. Let's work, with the fear of the Lord, to keep their innocent minds safe from corruption while they’re still young and impressionable, so that as they grow older, they can understand their true interests, recognize the uncertainty of worldly things, and, most importantly, secure their hope and confidence in the blessing of the Almighty Being who exists in eternity and sustains the world.
In all our Cares, about worldly Treasures, let us steadily bear in Mind, that Riches, possessed by Children who do not truly serve God, are likely to prove Snares that may more grievously entangle them in that Spirit of Selfishness and Exaltation, which stands in Opposition to real[Pg 83] Peace and Happiness; and renders them Enemies to the Cross of Christ, who submit to the Influence of it.
In all our concerns about worldly possessions, let’s remember that wealth held by those who don’t genuinely serve God can easily become traps, pulling them deeper into selfishness and pride. This attitude goes against true peace and happiness and makes them adversaries of the Cross of Christ, which those who submit to it embrace.
To keep a watchful eye towards real Objects of Charity, to visit the Poor in their lonesome Dwelling-places, to comfort them who, through the Dispensations of divine Providence, are in strait and painful Circumstances in this Life, and steadily to endeavour to honour God with our Substance, from a real Sense of the Love of Christ influencing our Minds thereto, is more likely to bring a Blessing to our Children, and will afford more Satisfaction to a Christian favoured with Plenty, than an earnest Desire to collect much Wealth to leave behind us; for "Here we have no continuing City;" may we therefore diligently "seek one that is to come, whose Builder and Maker is God."
To focus on real acts of charity, to visit the poor in their lonely homes, to comfort those facing difficult and painful situations in life due to divine providence, and to consistently honor God with our resources because of our genuine love for Christ influencing our thoughts, is more likely to bring blessings to our children and provide greater satisfaction to a Christian who has been blessed with abundance, than a strong desire to accumulate wealth to leave behind; for "Here we have no lasting city;" so let us diligently "seek the one that is to come, whose builder and maker is God."
"Finally, Brethren, whatsoever Things are true, whatsoever Things are just, whatsoever Things are pure, whatsoever Things are lovely, whatsoever Things are of good Report; if there be any Virtue, if there be any Praise, think on these Things and do them, and the God of Peace shall be with you."
"Finally, brothers and sisters, whatever is true, whatever is right, whatever is pure, whatever is lovely, whatever is admirable; if there is anything excellent or praiseworthy—think about such things. Whatever you have learned or received or heard from me, or seen in me—put it into practice. And the God of peace will be with you."
Signed, by Appointment, and on Behalf of our said Meeting, by seven Friends.
Signed, by appointment, and on behalf of our meeting, by seven friends.
On the twenty-eighth Day of the eleventh Month, in the Year 1759, I was at the Quarterly-meeting in Bucks County: This Day being the Meeting of Ministers and Elders, my Heart was enlarged in the Love of Jesus Christ; and the Favour of the Most High was extended to us in that and the ensuing Meeting.
On the 28th day of the 11th month in the year 1759, I was at the quarterly meeting in Bucks County. This day was the meeting of ministers and elders, and my heart was filled with the love of Jesus Christ. The favor of the Most High was upon us during that meeting and the one that followed.
I had Conversation, at my Lodging, with my beloved Friend, Samuel Eastburn; who expressed a Concern to join in a Visit to some Friends, in that County, who had Negroes; and as I had felt a Draught in my Mind to that Work in the said County, came Home and put Things in Order: On the eleventh Day of the twelfth Month following, I went over the River; and on the next Day was at Buckingham Meeting; where, through the Descendings of heavenly Dew, my Mind was comforted, and drawn into a near Unity with the Flock of Jesus Christ.[Pg 84]
I had a conversation at my place with my dear friend, Samuel Eastburn; he mentioned wanting to visit some friends in that county who had enslaved people. Since I felt a pull in my heart to do that work in the area, I went home and got things organized. On the eleventh day of the twelfth month that followed, I crossed the river; the next day, I attended the Buckingham Meeting, where, through the outpouring of heavenly blessings, I found comfort and was drawn into a close unity with the community of Jesus Christ.[Pg 84]
Entering upon this Visit appeared weighty: And before I left Home my Mind was often sad; under which Exercise I felt, at Times, the Holy Spirit, which helps our Infirmities; through which, in private, my Prayers were, at Times, put up to God, that he would be pleased to purge me from all Selfishness, that I might be strengthened to discharge my Duty faithfully, how hard soever to the natural Part. We proceeded on the Visit in a weighty Frame of Spirit, and went to the Houses of the most active Members, throughout the Country, who had Negroes; and, through the Goodness of the Lord, my Mind was preserved in Resignation in Times of Trial, and, though the Work was hard to Nature, yet through the Strength of that Love which is stronger than Death, Tenderness of Heart was often felt amongst us in our Visits, and we parted from several Families with greater Satisfaction than we expected.
Entering upon this visit felt heavy. Before I left home, I often felt sad; during these times, I sensed the Holy Spirit, which helps us with our weaknesses. In private, I occasionally prayed to God to cleanse me of all selfishness so that I could be strengthened to perform my duty faithfully, no matter how challenging it felt to my natural self. We approached the visit with a serious mindset and went to the homes of the most engaged members across the country who had enslaved people. By the grace of the Lord, my mind was kept in a state of acceptance during difficult times, and even though the work was tough, we often felt a deep sense of love that’s stronger than death. We left several families with a sense of satisfaction greater than we expected.
We visited Joseph White's Family, he being in England; and also a Family-sitting at the House of an Elder who bore us Company, and was at Makefield on a First-day: At all which Times my Heart was truly thankful to the Lord, who was graciously pleased to renew his Loving-kindness to us, his poor Servants, uniting us together in his Work.
We visited Joseph White's family while he was in England; we also spent time with a family at the home of an Elder who kept us company while we were at Makefield on a Sunday. During all these times, I felt truly grateful to the Lord, who kindly renewed his loving kindness towards us, his humble servants, bringing us together in his work.
CHAPTER VII
His Visit, in Company with Samuel Eastburn, to Long-Island, Rhode-Island, Boston, etc. in New-England—Remarks on the Slave-Trade at Newport, and his Exercise on that Account; also on Lotteries—Some Observations on the Island of Nantucket
His trip, along with Samuel Eastburn, to Long Island, Rhode Island, Boston, and other locations in New England—Remarks on the Slave Trade in Newport, and his actions about it; as well as Lotteries—Some reflections on the island of Nantucket
Having, for some Time past, felt a Sympathy in my Mind with Friends Eastward, I opened my Concern in our Monthly-meeting; and, obtaining a Certificate, set forward on the seventeenth Day of the fourth Month, in the Year 1760, joining in Company, by a previous Agreement, with my beloved Friend, Samuel Eastburn. We had Meetings at Woodbridge, Rahaway, and Plainfield; and were at their Monthly-meeting of Ministers and Elders in Rahaway. We laboured under some Discouragement; but, through the invisible Power of Truth, our Visit was made reviving to the Lowly-minded, with whom I felt a near Unity of Spirit, being much reduced in my Mind. We passed on and visited the chief of the Meetings on Long-Island. It was my Concern, from Day to Day, to say no more nor less than what the Spirit of Truth opened in me; being jealous over myself, lest I should speak any Thing to make my Testimony look agreeable to that Mind in People, which is not in pure Obedience to the Cross of Christ.
Having felt a connection in my heart with friends to the east for some time, I brought my concerns to our monthly meeting. After receiving a certificate, I set out on the seventeenth day of the fourth month in the year 1760, joining my dear friend, Samuel Eastburn, as we had previously agreed. We held meetings in Woodbridge, Rahway, and Plainfield, and attended their monthly meeting of ministers and elders in Rahway. We faced some discouragement, but through the unseen power of truth, our visit brought renewal to the humble-minded, with whom I felt a deep unity of spirit, as I was feeling quite low myself. We continued on and visited the main meetings on Long Island. Each day, it was my intention to express only what the Spirit of Truth revealed to me, being cautious not to say anything that would make my testimony appealing to those who are not fully obedient to the cross of Christ.
The Spring of the Ministry was often low; and, through the subjecting Power of Truth, we were kept low with it; and from Place to Place, such whose Hearts were truly concerned for the Cause of Christ, appeared to be comforted in our Labours; and though it was in general a Time of Abasement of the Creature, yet, through his Goodness, who is a Helper of the Poor, we had some truly edifying Seasons, both in Meetings, and in Families where we tarried; and sometimes found Strength to labour earnestly with the Unfaithful, especially with[Pg 86] those whose Station in Families, or in the Society, was such, that their Example had a powerful Tendency to open the Way for others to go aside from the Purity and Soundness of the blessed Truth. At Jericho, on Long-Island, I wrote Home as follows:
The Spring of the Ministry often felt low, and through the powerful influence of Truth, we were kept low along with it. In every place we went, those whose hearts genuinely cared about the Cause of Christ seemed encouraged by our efforts. Although it was generally a time of humility for everyone, through the goodness of God, who helps the needy, we experienced some genuinely uplifting moments, both in meetings and in the families we stayed with. We sometimes found the strength to work passionately with those who were unfaithful, especially with[Pg 86] individuals whose roles in their families or in the community had a strong tendency to lead others away from the purity and soundness of the blessed Truth. While at Jericho, on Long Island, I wrote home as follows:
24th of the 4th Month, 1760.
April 24, 1760.
"Dearly beloved Wife,—We are favoured with Health; have been at sundry Meetings in East-Jersey, and on this Island: My Mind hath been much in an inward watchful Frame since I left thee, greatly desiring that our Proceedings may be singly in the Will of our heavenly Father.
"Dearly beloved Wife, — We are in good health and have attended various meetings in East-Jersey and on this island. Since I left you, I have been in deep thought and contemplation, hoping that our actions align with the will of our heavenly Father."
"As the present Appearance of Things is not joyous, I have been much shut up from outward Cheerfulness, remembering that Promise, 'Then shalt thou delight thyself in the Lord:'—As this, from Day to Day, has been revived in my Memory, I have considered that his internal Presence on our Minds is a Delight, of all others, the most pure; and that the Honest-hearted not only delight in this, but in the Effect of it upon them. He regards the Helpless and Distressed, and reveals his Love to his Children under Affliction; they delight in beholding his Benevolence, and feeling divine Charity moving upon them: Of this I may speak a little; for though, since I left you, I have often found an engaging Love and Affection toward thee and my Daughter, and Friends about Home, that going out at this Time, when Sickness is so great amongst you, is a Trial upon me; yet I often remember there are many Widows and Fatherless, many who have poor Tutors, many who have evil Examples before them, and many whose Minds are in Captivity, for whose Sake my Heart is, at Times, moved with Compassion; so that I feel my Mind resigned to leave you for a Season, to exercise that Gift which the Lord hath bestowed on me; which though small, compared with some, yet in this I rejoice, that I feel Love unfeigned toward my Fellow-creatures. I recommend you to the Almighty, who, I trust, cares for you; and, under a Sense of his heavenly Love, remain,—Thy loving Husband,
"Considering that the current situation isn't cheerful, I've been pretty closed off from outside happiness, remembering the promise, 'Then you will delight yourself in the Lord.' This thought comes to me each day, and I've realized that his constant presence in our minds is a joy above all others, the truest kind. Those with sincere hearts not only enjoy this but also recognize its impact on them. He cares for the helpless and distressed and shows his love to his children during difficult times; they find joy in witnessing his kindness and feeling divine charity within them. I can share this feeling; even though since I left you, I often feel a strong love and affection for you, my daughter, and our friends back home, leaving now while everyone is so ill weighs on me. Still, I often remind myself that there are many widows and fatherless children, many with struggling caregivers, many facing bad examples, and many whose minds are trapped, and for them, my heart is filled with compassion. So, I feel ready to leave you for a while to use the gift that the Lord has given me; which, though small compared to others, brings me joy knowing that I feel true love for my fellow beings. I entrust you to the Almighty, who I believe watches over you; and, sensing his heavenly love, I remain—Your loving husband,
"J. W."
"J. W."
We crossed from the East End of Long-Island to New-London, about thirty Miles, in a large open Boat; while we were out, the Wind rising high, the Waves several Times beat over us, so that to me it appeared dangerous; but my Mind was, at that Time, turned to him, who made and governs the Deep, and my Life was resigned to him: And, as he was mercifully pleased to preserve us, I had fresh Occasion to consider every Day as a Day lent to me; and felt a renewed Engagement to devote my Time, and all I had, to him who gave them.
We traveled from the East End of Long-Island to New-London, about thirty miles, in a large open boat. While we were out, the wind picked up, and the waves splashed over us several times, making it feel dangerous to me. But my thoughts were on the one who created and controls the sea, and I surrendered my life to him. Since he mercifully kept us safe, I began to see every day as a gift; I felt a renewed commitment to dedicate my time and everything I have to the one who gave them to me.
We had five Meetings in Narraganset; and went thence to Newport on Rhode-Island. Our gracious Father preserved us in an humble Dependence on him through deep Exercises, that were mortifying to the creaturely Will. In several Families in the Country, where we lodged, I felt an Engagement on my Mind to have a Conference with them in private concerning their Slaves; and, through divine Aid, I was favoured to give up thereto: Though, in this Concern, I appeared singular from many, whose Service in Travelling, I believe, is greater than mine; I do not think hard of them for omitting it; I do not repine at having so unpleasant a Task assigned me, but look with Awfulness to him, who appoints to his Servants their respective Employments, and is good to all who serve him sincerely.
We had five meetings in Narraganset and then went to Newport on Rhode Island. Our gracious Father helped us maintain a humble dependence on Him through challenging experiences that were tough on the human will. In several families in the area where we stayed, I felt compelled to have a private discussion with them about their slaves, and with divine assistance, I was able to do so. Although in this matter, I stood out from many others, whose service in traveling, I believe, is greater than mine; I don’t hold it against them for not addressing it. I don’t resent being given such an unpleasant task, but instead, I look with reverence to Him who assigns His servants their specific duties and is good to all who serve Him sincerely.
We got to Newport in the Evening, and on the next Day visited two sick Persons, and had comfortable Sittings with them; and in the Afternoon attended the Burial of a Friend.
We arrived in Newport in the evening, and the next day we visited two sick individuals and had meaningful time with them; in the afternoon, we attended the burial of a friend.
The next Day we were at Meetings at Newport, in the Forenoon and Afternoon; where the Spring of the Ministry was opened, and Strength given to declare the Word of Life to the People.
The next day we attended meetings at Newport, in the morning and afternoon; where the spirit of the ministry was awakened, and strength was given to share the Word of Life with the people.
The next Day we went on our Journey; but the great Number of Slaves in these Parts, and the Continuance of that Trade from thence to Guinea, made deep Impression on me; and my Cries were often put up to my heavenly Father in secret, that he would enable me to discharge my Duty faithfully, in such Way as he might be pleased to point out to me.[Pg 88]
The next day we set off on our journey, but the large number of slaves in this area and the ongoing trade to Guinea left a strong impact on me. I often prayed in secret to my heavenly Father, asking Him to help me fulfill my duty faithfully in whatever way He wanted me to. [Pg 88]
We took Swansea, Freetown, and Tanton, in our Way to Boston; where also we had a Meeting; our Exercise was deep, and the Love of Truth prevailed, for which I bless the Lord. We went Eastward about eighty Miles beyond Boston, taking Meetings, and were in a good Degree preserved in an humble Dependance on that Arm which drew us out; and, though we had some hard Labour with the Disobedient, laying Things home and close to such as were stout against the Truth; yet, through the Goodness of God, we had, at Times, to partake of heavenly Comfort with them who were meek, and were often favoured to part with Friends in the Nearness of true Gospel-fellowship. We returned to Boston, and had another comfortable Opportunity with Friends there; and thence rode back a Day's Journey Eastward of Boston: Our Guide being a heavy Man, and the Weather hot, and my Companion and I considering it, expressed our Freedom to go on without him, to which he consented, and we respectfully took our Leave of him; this we did, as believing the Journey would have been hard to him and his Horse.
We visited Swansea, Freetown, and Tanton on our way to Boston; where we also held a meeting. Our gathering was profound, and the love of truth was strong, for which I thank the Lord. We traveled eastward about eighty miles beyond Boston, holding meetings along the way, and we were largely kept with a humble reliance on the force that led us here. Although we faced some tough challenges with those who resisted, confronting them directly about their lack of adherence to the truth, we were blessed, thanks to God’s kindness, to experience spiritual comfort with those who were humble. We often enjoyed meaningful goodbyes with friends in true gospel fellowship. We returned to Boston and had another uplifting time with friends there, and then rode a day's journey east of Boston: Our guide was a heavy man, and with the weather being hot, my companion and I decided to continue without him. He agreed, and we respectfully said our farewells; we thought the journey would have been difficult for him and his horse.
We visited the Meetings in those Parts, and were measurably baptized into a feeling of the State of the Society: And in Bowedness of Spirit went to the Yearly-meeting at Newport; where I understood that a large Number of Slaves were imported from Africa into that Town, and then on Sale by a Member of our Society. At this Meeting we met with John Storer from England, Elizabeth Shipley, Ann Gaunt, Hannah Foster, and Mercy Redman, from our Parts, all Ministers of the Gospel, of whose Company I was glad.
We attended the meetings in that area and were somewhat immersed in understanding the state of the Society. With humility in our hearts, we went to the yearly meeting at Newport, where I learned that a significant number of slaves were brought in from Africa and were being sold by a member of our Society. At this meeting, we met John Storer from England, along with Elizabeth Shipley, Ann Gaunt, Hannah Foster, and Mercy Redman from our area—all ministers of the Gospel, and I was pleased to be in their company.
At this Time my Appetite failed, and I grew outwardly weak, and had a Feeling of the Condition of Habakkuk as there expressed: "When I heard, my Belly trembled, my Lips quivered, I trembled in myself that I might rest in the Day of Trouble;" I had many Cogitations, and was sorely distressed: And was desirous that Friends might petition the Legislature, to use their Endeavours to discourage the future Importation of Slaves; for I saw that this Trade was a great Evil, and tended to[Pg 89] multiply Troubles, and bring Distresses on the People in those parts, for whose Welfare my Heart was deeply concerned.
At that time, I lost my appetite, felt weak, and identified with the state of Habakkuk as described: "When I heard, my belly trembled, my lips quivered, I trembled within myself so that I might find rest in the day of trouble." I had many thoughts and was deeply troubled. I wished for my friends to urge the legislature to work on discouraging the future importation of slaves; I believed that this trade was a major evil and would only lead to [Pg 89] more troubles and bring distress to the people in those areas, whose well-being I was genuinely concerned about.
But I perceived several Difficulties in Regard to petitioning; and such was the Exercise of my Mind, that I had Thought of endeavouring to get an Opportunity to speak a few Words in the House of Assembly, then sitting in Town. This Exercise came upon me in the Afternoon, on the second Day of the Yearly-meeting, and, going to Bed, I got no Sleep till my Mind was wholly resigned therein; and in the Morning I enquired of a Friend how long the Assembly were likely to continue sitting; who told me, they were expected to be prorogued that Day or the next.
But I noticed several challenges regarding petitioning; and I was thinking about trying to find a chance to say a few words in the House of Assembly, which was then meeting in town. This thought came to me in the afternoon on the second day of the yearly meeting, and when I went to bed, I couldn’t sleep until my mind was completely settled on it. In the morning, I asked a friend how much longer the Assembly was likely to be in session, and they told me they were expected to be adjourned that day or the next.
As I was desirous to attend the Business of the Meeting, and perceived the Assembly were likely to depart before the Business was over; after considerable Exercise, humbly seeking to the Lord for Instruction, my Mind settled to attend on the Business of the Meeting; on the last Day of which, I had prepared a short Essay of a Petition to be presented to the Legislature, if Way opened: And being informed that there were some appointed, by that Yearly-meeting, to speak with those in Authority, in Cases relating to the Society, I opened my Mind to several of them, and shewed them the Essay I had made; and afterward opened the Case in the Meeting for Business, in Substance as follows:
As I wanted to take part in the Meeting’s discussions and realized that the Assembly might leave before we finished, I spent some time in prayer, seeking guidance from the Lord. Eventually, I decided to focus on the Meeting’s business. On the last day, I had prepared a brief draft of a petition to present to the Legislature if the opportunity arose. I learned that some people from that Yearly Meeting were designated to speak with authorities about issues affecting the Society, so I shared my thoughts with several of them and showed them the draft I had created. I then brought up the matter in the Meeting for Business, essentially as follows:
"I have been under a Concern for some Time, on Account of the great Number of Slaves which are imported in this Colony; I am aware that it is a tender Point to speak to, but apprehend I am not clear in the Sight of Heaven without speaking to it. I have prepared an Essay of a Petition, if Way open, to be presented to the Legislature; and what I have to propose to this Meeting is, that some Friends may be named to withdraw and look over it, and report whether they believe it suitable to be read in the Meeting; if they should think well of reading it, it will remain for the Meeting, after hearing it, to consider, whether to take any farther Notice of it at a Meeting or not." After a short[Pg 90] Conference some Friends went out, and, looking over it, expressed their Willingness to have it read; which being done, many expressed their Unity with the Proposal; and some signified, that to have the Subjects of the Petition enlarged upon, and to be signed out of Meeting by such as were free, would be more suitable than to do it there: Though I expected, at first, that if it was done it would be in that Way; yet, such was the Exercise of my Mind, that to move it in the hearing of Friends, when assembled, appeared to me as a Duty; for my Heart yearned toward the Inhabitants of these Parts; believing that by this Trade there had been an Increase of Inquietude amongst them, and a Way made easy for the spreading of a Spirit opposite to that Meekness and Humility, which is a sure Resting-place for the Soul: And that the Continuance of this Trade would not only render their Healing more difficult, but increase their Malady.
"I've been really concerned for a while about the large number of slaves being brought into this colony. I know it's a sensitive topic, but I feel like I can't be at peace with myself or with what’s right without addressing it. I've put together a draft for a petition that I’d like to present to the legislature if there’s an opportunity. What I’d like to propose to this meeting is that some friends be chosen to review it and decide if they think it’s appropriate to share it here. If they feel it’s a good idea to read it, then the meeting can consider whether to take any further action on it afterward." After a short [Pg 90] conference, some friends left to review it and expressed their willingness to have it read; once it was read, many showed their support for the proposal. Some mentioned that it might be better to expand on the issues in the petition and have people sign it outside of the meeting if they wanted to, rather than doing it here. Although I initially thought it might happen that way, I felt so strongly about it that bringing it up in front of everyone gathered felt like my responsibility. My heart goes out to the people in this area because I believe that this trade has caused more restlessness among them and has made it easier for a spirit contrary to the meekness and humility that provide true peace for the soul to spread. I believe that continuing this trade would not only make healing harder but would also worsen their suffering.
Having thus far proceeded, I felt easy to leave the Essay among Friends, for them to proceed in it as they believed best. And now an Exercise revived on my Mind in Relation to Lotteries, which were common in those Parts: I had once moved it in a former Sitting of this Meeting, when Arguments were used in Favour of Friends being held excused who were only concerned in such Lotteries as were agreeable to Law: And now, on moving it again, it was opposed as before; but the Hearts of some solid Friends appeared to be united to discourage the Practice amongst their Members; and the Matter was zealously handled by some on both Sides. In this Debate it appeared very clear to me, that the Spirit of Lotteries was a Spirit of Selfishness, which tended to Confusion and Darkness of Understanding; and that pleading for it in our Meetings, set apart for the Lord's Work, was not right: And, in the Heat of Zeal, I once made Reply to what an ancient Friend said, though when I sat down, I saw that my Words were not enough seasoned with Charity; and, after this, I spake no more on the Subject. At length a Minute was made; a Copy of which was agreed to be sent to their several Quarterly-meetings,[Pg 91] inciting Friends to labour to discourage the Practice amongst all professing with us.
Having gotten this far, I felt comfortable leaving the Essay with Friends so they could handle it as they thought best. Then, a thought came back to me about Lotteries, which were common in that area. I had previously brought it up in a past meeting when arguments were made in favor of Friends being excused if they were involved in Lotteries that were legal. Now, as I raised it again, it was opposed just like before; however, some serious Friends seemed united in wanting to discourage the practice among their Members, and the issue was passionately debated on both sides. During this discussion, it became very clear to me that the spirit of Lotteries was a spirit of selfishness, which led to confusion and a lack of understanding; and that advocating for it in our Meetings, which are meant for the Lord's Work, wasn’t right. In the heat of the moment, I replied to an older Friend, but when I sat down, I realized my words lacked enough charity, and after that, I didn’t speak further on the topic. Eventually, a Minute was created, and a copy of it was agreed to be sent to their various Quarterly meetings,[Pg 91] encouraging Friends to work towards discouraging the practice among everyone who identifies with us.
Some Time after this Minute was made, I, remaining uneasy with the Manner of my speaking to the ancient Friend, could not see my Way clear to conceal my Uneasiness, but was concerned that I might say nothing to weaken the Cause in which I had laboured; and then, after some close Exercise and hearty Repentance, for that I had not attended closely to the safe Guide, I stood up, and reciting the Passage, acquainted Friends, that, though I durst not go from what I had said as to the Matter, yet I was uneasy with the Manner of my speaking, as believing milder Language would have been better. As this was uttered in some Degree of creaturely Abasement, it appeared to have a good Savour amongst us, after a warm Debate.
Some time after this minute was made, I, feeling uneasy about how I spoke to my old friend, couldn't shake off my discomfort and was worried that I might say something that could weaken the cause I had worked hard for. After some deep reflection and sincere regret for not following the right guidance closely, I stood up and shared the passage, telling my friends that while I didn’t want to go back on what I had said about the matter, I was still uneasy about how I presented it, believing a gentler tone would have been better. Since this was expressed in a sense of personal humility, it seemed to resonate positively with us after a passionate discussion.
The Yearly-meeting being now over, there yet remained on my Mind a secret, though heavy, Exercise in regard to some leading active Members about Newport, being in the Practice of Slave-keeping. This I mentioned to two ancient Friends, who came out of the Country, and proposed to them, if Way opened, to have some Conversation with those Friends: And, thereupon, one of those Country Friends and I consulted one of the most noted Elders who had Slaves; and he, in a respectful Manner, encouraged me to proceed to clear myself of what lay upon me. Now I had, near the Beginning of the Yearly-meeting, a private Conference with this said Elder and his Wife concerning theirs; so that the Way seemed clear to me to advise with him about the Manner of proceeding: I told him, I was free to have a Conference with them all together in a private House; or, if he thought they would take it unkind to be asked to come together, and to be spoke with one in the hearing of another, I was free to spend some Time among them, and visit them all in their own Houses: He expressed his Liking to the first Proposal, not doubting their Willingness to come together: And, as I proposed a Visit to only Ministers, Elders, and Overseers, he named some others, who he desired might be present also: And, as[Pg 92] a careful Messenger was wanted to acquaint them in a proper Manner, he offered to go to all their Houses to open the Matter to them; and did so. About the eighth Hour, the next Morning, we met in the Meeting-house Chamber, and the last-mentioned Country Friend, also my Companion, and John Storer, with us; when, after a short Time of Retirement, I acquainted them with the Steps I had taken in procuring that Meeting, and opened the Concern I was under; and so we proceeded to a free Conference upon the Subject. My Exercise was heavy, and I was deeply bowed in Spirit before the Lord, who was pleased to favour us with the seasoning Virtue of Truth, which wrought a Tenderness amongst us; and the Subject was mutually handled in a calm and peaceable Spirit: And, at length, feeling my Mind released from that Burthen which I had been under, I took my Leave of them, in a good Degree of Satisfaction; and, by the Tenderness they manifested in Regard to the Practice, and the Concern several of them expressed in Relation to the Manner of disposing of their Negroes after their Decease, I believed that a good Exercise was spreading amongst them; and I am humbly thankful to God, who supported my Mind, and preserved me in a good Degree of Resignation through these Trials.
The Yearly Meeting has now concluded, but I still felt a heavy concern on my mind regarding some prominent active members in Newport who practiced slave-keeping. I shared this with two longtime friends who had come from the countryside, suggesting that if the opportunity arose, we should discuss this matter with those members. One of my country friends and I then consulted one of the most respected Elders who owned slaves; he respectfully encouraged me to address the burden I felt. Earlier in the Yearly Meeting, I had a private conversation with this Elder and his wife about their situation, which made me feel comfortable approaching him for advice on how to move forward. I expressed that I was open to meeting with all of them together in a private home, or if he thought they would prefer not to gather or be spoken to in front of each other, I was willing to visit them individually in their homes. He preferred the first option, believing they would be willing to come together. Since I intended to invite only ministers, elders, and overseers, he suggested including a few others as well. Recognizing that an attentive messenger was needed to inform them appropriately, he offered to visit all their homes to discuss the matter, and he did. Around eight in the morning the next day, we gathered in the meeting house chamber, along with my country friend and John Storer. After a brief period of reflection, I informed them about the steps I took to arrange this meeting and expressed my concerns. We then engaged in a free discussion on the subject. My burden was heavy, and I felt deeply humbled before the Lord, who graced us with the calming influence of Truth, which fostered a sense of tenderness among us. The discussion was approached in a calm and peaceful manner. Eventually, feeling my spirit lifted from the weight I carried, I took my leave with a sense of satisfaction. The gentleness they showed regarding the issue and the concerns some expressed about how to manage their slaves after their passing led me to believe a positive shift was beginning among them. I am humbly grateful to God, who steadied my mind and kept me in a good state of acceptance through these challenges.
Thou, who sometimes travellest in the Work of the Ministry, art made very welcome by thy Friends, and seest many Tokens of their Satisfaction, in having thee for their Guest, it is good for thee to dwell deep, that thou mayst feel and understand the Spirits of People: If we believe Truth points towards a Conference on some Subjects, in a private Way, it is needful for us to take heed that their Kindness, their Freedom, and Affability, do not hinder us from the Lord's Work. I have seen that, in the midst of Kindness and smooth Conduct, to speak close and home to them who entertain us, on Points that relate to their outward Interest, is hard Labour; and sometimes, when I have felt Truth lead toward it, I have found myself disqualified by a superficial Friendship; and as the Sense thereof hath abased me, and my Cries have been to the Lord, so I have been[Pg 93] humbled and made content to appear weak, or as a Fool for his Sake; and thus a Door hath opened to enter upon it. To attempt to do the Lord's Work in our own Way, and to speak of that which is the Burthen of the Word in a Way easy to the natural Part, doth not reach the Bottom of the Disorder. To see the Failings of our Friends and think hard of them, without opening that which we ought to open, and still carry a Face of Friendship; this tends to undermine the Foundation of true Unity.
You, who sometimes travel in the Ministry's Work, are very welcome among your Friends and see many signs of their happiness to have you as their Guest. It's important for you to go deep within yourself so you can truly feel and understand people's spirits. If we believe that Truth is guiding us to discuss certain topics privately, we need to be careful that their kindness, openness, and friendliness don't distract us from the Lord's Work. I've noticed that amid kindness and smooth interactions, speaking directly and honestly with those hosting us about matters that concern their interests is challenging. Sometimes, when I have felt led by Truth to do this, I found myself held back by a superficial friendship. As this realization humbled me, I cried out to the Lord, and I've been[Pg 93] humbled and made willing to appear weak or foolish for His sake; and in this way, a door has opened for me to address these matters. Trying to do the Lord's Work in our own way and discussing what weighs on our hearts in a manner that pleases the natural side doesn't get to the root of the problem. Noticing our Friends' shortcomings and thinking harshly of them, while keeping a friendly face without addressing what needs to be addressed, undermines the foundation of true unity.
The Office of a Minister of Christ is weighty; and they, who go forth as Watchmen, had need to be steadily on their Guard against the Snares of Prosperity and an outside Friendship.
The role of a Minister of Christ is significant; those who act as Watchmen must remain vigilant against the traps of success and superficial friendships.
After the Yearly-meeting, we were at Meetings at New-Town, Cushnet, Long-Plain, Rochester, and Dartmouth: From thence we sailed for Nantucket, in Company with Ann Gaunt and Mercy Redman, and several other Friends: The Wind being slack, we only reached Tarpawling-Cove the first Day; where, going on Shore, we found Room in a Publick-house, and Beds for a few of us, the rest sleeping on the Floor: We went on board again about Break of Day; and, though the Wind was small, we were favoured to come within about four Miles of Nantucket; and then, about ten of us getting into our Boat, we rowed to the Harbour before dark; whereupon a large Boat, going off, brought in the rest of the Passengers about Midnight: The next Day but one was their Yearly-meeting, which held four Days; the last of which was their Monthly-meeting for Business. We had a laborious Time amongst them: Our Minds were closely exercised, and I believe it was a Time of great Searching of Heart: The longer I was on the Island, the more I became sensible that there was a considerable Number of valuable Friends there, though an evil Spirit, tending to Strife, had been at Work amongst them: I was cautious of making any Visits, but as my Mind was particularly drawn to them; and in that Way we had some Sittings in Friends Houses, where the heavenly Wing was, at Times, spread over us, to our mutual Comfort.[Pg 94]
After the Yearly meeting, we attended meetings in New Town, Cushnet, Long Plain, Rochester, and Dartmouth. From there, we set sail for Nantucket with Ann Gaunt, Mercy Redman, and several other friends. Since the wind was light, we only managed to reach Tarpawling Cove on the first day. Once ashore, we found space in a public inn, with a few beds for us while the rest slept on the floor. We boarded again just before dawn, and although the wind remained weak, we were fortunate enough to get within about four miles of Nantucket. Around ten of us got into our boat and rowed to the harbor before dark, while a larger boat came out to bring the rest of the passengers around midnight. The day after next was their Yearly meeting, which lasted four days, with the last day dedicated to their monthly business meeting. We had a challenging time among them; our minds were deeply engaged, and I believe it was a period of significant soul-searching. The longer I stayed on the island, the more I realized there were many valuable friends there, even though a negative spirit, causing divisions, had been at work among them. I was careful about making visits, but I felt a strong pull toward them; through that connection, we had some gatherings in friends' homes, where we often felt a comforting spiritual presence. [Pg 94]
My beloved Companion had very acceptable Service on this Island.
My dear friend provided great service on this island.
When Meeting was over, we all agreed to sail the next Day, if the Weather was suitable and we well; and, being called up the latter Part of the Night, we went on board a Vessel, being in all about fifty; but, the Wind changing, the Seamen thought best to stay in the Harbour till it altered; so we returned on Shore; and, feeling clear as to any farther Visits, I spent my Time in our Chamber chiefly alone; and, after some Hours, my Heart being filled with the Spirit of Supplication, my Prayers and Tears were poured out, before my heavenly Father, for his Help and Instruction in the manifold Difficulties which attended me in Life: And, while I was waiting upon the Lord, there came a Messenger from the Women Friends, who lodged at another House, desiring to confer with us about appointing a Meeting, which to me appeared weighty, as we had been at so many before; but, after a short Conference, and advising with some elderly Friends, a Meeting was appointed, in which the Friend, who first moved it, and who had been much shut up before, was largely opened in the Love of the Gospel: And the next Morning, about Break of Day, going again on board the Vessel, we reached Falmouth on the Main before Night; where our Horses being brought, we proceeded toward Sandwich Quarterly-meeting.
When the meeting ended, we all agreed to set sail the next day, as long as the weather was good and we were well. Later that night, we boarded a vessel with about fifty of us, but when the wind changed, the sailors decided it was best to stay in the harbor until it improved. So, we returned to shore. Feeling confident about not needing to make any further visits, I spent most of my time alone in our room. After a few hours, my heart was filled with a spirit of supplication, and I poured out my prayers and tears before my heavenly Father, seeking His help and guidance through the many difficulties I faced in life. While I was waiting on the Lord, a messenger from the women friends, who were staying at another house, came to ask us about arranging a meeting. To me, this felt important, especially since we had attended so many before. After a brief discussion and consultation with some older friends, a meeting was scheduled. During it, the friend who had initially suggested it, and who had been quite reserved before, expressed herself openly in the love of the Gospel. The next morning, around dawn, we went back on board the vessel and reached Falmouth on the mainland before nightfall, where our horses were brought to us, and we headed toward the Sandwich Quarterly meeting.
Being two Days in going to Nantucket, and having been there once before, I observed many Shoals in their Bay, which make Sailing more dangerous, especially in stormy Nights; also, that a great Shoal, which encloses their Harbour, prevents their going in with Sloops, except when the Tide is up; waiting without which, for the Rising of the Tide, is sometimes hazardous in Storms; waiting within, they sometimes miss a fair Wind. I took Notice, that on that small Island was a great Number of Inhabitants, and the Soil not very fertile; the Timber so gone, that for Vessels, Fences, and Firewood, they depend chiefly on the buying from the Main; the Cost whereof, with most of their other Expences, they depend principally upon the Whale-fishery to answer. I[Pg 95] considered, that as Towns grew larger, and Lands near navigable Waters more cleared, Timber and Wood require more Labour to get it: I understood that the Whales being much hunted, and sometimes wounded and not killed, grew more shy and difficult to come at: I considered that the Formation of the Earth, the Seas, the Islands, Bays, and Rivers, the Motions of the Winds and great Waters, which cause Bars and Shoals in particular Places, were all the Works of him who is perfect Wisdom and Goodness; and, as People attend to his heavenly Instruction, and put their Trust in him, he provides for them in all Parts where he gives them a Being. And as, in this Visit to these People, I felt a strong Desire for their firm Establishment on the sure Foundation, besides what was said more publickly, I was concerned to speak with the Women Friends, in their Monthly-meeting of Business, many being present; and, in the fresh Spring of pure Love, to open before them the Advantage, both inward and outward, of attending singly to the Guidance of the Holy Spirit, and therein to educate their Children in true Humility, and the Disuse of all Superfluities, reminding them of the Difficulties their Husbands and Sons were frequently exposed to at Sea; and that, the more plain and simple their Way of Living was, the less Need of running great Hazards to support them in it; encouraging the young Women in their neat decent Way of attending themselves on the Affairs of the House; shewing, as the Way opened, that, where People were truly humble, used themselves to Business, and were content with a plain Way of Life, it had ever been attended with more true Peace and Calmness of Mind, than they have had who, aspiring to Greatness and outward Shew, have grasped hard for an Income to support themselves in it: And, as I observed they had few or no Slaves amongst them, I had to encourage them to be content without them; making mention of the numerous Troubles and Vexations which frequently attend the Minds of People who depend on Slaves to do their Labour.
After taking two days to reach Nantucket and having been there once before, I noticed many shoals in their bay that make sailing more dangerous, especially on stormy nights. A large shoal surrounds their harbor, which keeps them from entering with sloops unless the tide is up; waiting outside for the tide to rise can be risky during storms, and waiting inside can mean they miss a favorable wind. I noticed that there were many inhabitants on that small island, but the soil wasn’t very fertile; the trees were so depleted that they primarily relied on purchasing timber from the mainland for vessels, fences, and firewood. The costs for that, along with most of their other expenses, mainly depended on the whaling industry. I observed that as towns grew larger and lands near navigable waters were cleared more, obtaining timber and wood required more labor. I understood that whales were heavily hunted, and those that were wounded often became more elusive and harder to catch. I reflected that the formation of the earth, seas, islands, bays, and rivers, as well as the movements of the winds and waters that caused bars and shoals in specific places, were all the work of someone with perfect wisdom and goodness; and as people heed his heavenly guidance and place their trust in him, he provides for them everywhere he allows them to exist. During this visit with these people, I felt a strong desire for their stable establishment on a solid foundation. In addition to what was shared more publicly, I was eager to meet with the women friends at their monthly business meeting, where many attended. In the fresh spring of pure love, I wanted to highlight the benefits—both internal and external—of focusing solely on the guidance of the Holy Spirit and educating their children in true humility while avoiding all unnecessary excess. I reminded them of the dangers their husbands and sons often faced at sea; the more plain and simple their way of life, the less need they had for taking significant risks to maintain it. I encouraged the young women in their neat and decent way of managing household affairs, showing them, as the conversation flowed, that where people are genuinely humble, engage in work, and are content with a simple lifestyle, they experience more true peace and calmness of mind than those who, seeking greatness and outward appearances, struggle hard for an income to sustain themselves in such a way. I also noticed that they had few or no slaves among them, and I encouraged them to be satisfied without them, mentioning the numerous troubles and frustrations that often accompany people who rely on slaves for labor.
We attended the Quarterly-meeting at Sandwich, in Company with Ann Gaunt and Mercy Redman, which[Pg 96] was preceded by a Monthly-meeting; and in the whole held three Days: We were various Ways exercised amongst them, in Gospel-love, according to the several Gifts bestowed on us; and were, at Times, overshadowed with the Virtue of Truth, to the Comfort of the Sincere, and stirring up of the Negligent. Here we parted with Ann and Mercy, and went to Rhode-Island, taking one Meeting in our Way, which was a satisfactory Time; and, reaching Newport the Evening before their Quarterly-meeting, we attended it; and, after that, had a Meeting with our young People, separated from those of other Societies. We went through much Labour in this Town; and now, in taking Leave of it, though I felt close inward Exercise to the last, I found inward Peace; and was, in some Degree, comforted, in a Belief, that a good Number remain in that Place, who retain a Sense of Truth; and that there are some young People attentive to the Voice of the heavenly Shepherd. The last Meeting, in which Friends from the several Parts of the Quarter came together, was a select Meeting; and, through the renewed Manifestation of the Father's Love, the Hearts of the Sincere were united together.
We attended the quarterly meeting at Sandwich, along with Ann Gaunt and Mercy Redman, which[Pg 96] was preceded by a monthly meeting, lasting a total of three days. We were engaged in various ways among them, in the spirit of Gospel love, according to the different gifts we had received; at times, we felt the power of Truth, bringing comfort to the sincere and motivating the indifferent. Here we said goodbye to Ann and Compassion, and went to Rhode Island, stopping for one meeting along the way, which was a fulfilling experience. We arrived in Newport the evening before their quarterly meeting and attended it, followed by a meeting with our young people, separate from those in other groups. We put in a lot of effort in this town, and as we prepared to leave, despite feeling an intense internal struggle until the end, I found inner peace. I was somewhat comforted by the belief that a good number of people in that place still have a sense of Truth, and that some young people are attentive to the voice of the heavenly Shepherd. The final meeting, where friends from different parts of the quarter came together, was a special gathering; through the renewed expression of the Father's love, the hearts of the sincere were united.
That Poverty of Spirit, and inward Weakness, with which I was much tried the fore Part of this Journey, have of late appeared to me as a Dispensation of Kindness. Appointing Meetings never appeared more weighty to me; and I was led into a deep Search, whether in all Things my Mind was resigned to the Will of God; often querying with myself, what should be the Cause of such inward Poverty; and greatly desired, that no secret Reserve in my Heart might hinder my Access to the divine Fountain. In these humbling Times I was made watchful, and excited to attend the secret Movings of the heavenly Principle in my Mind, which prepared the Way to some Duties, that in more easy and prosperous Times, as to the Outward, I believe I should have been in danger of omitting.
That feeling of spiritual emptiness and inner weakness that I struggled with at the beginning of this journey has recently come to feel like a kind act. Setting up meetings felt more significant than ever, and I was led to deeply examine whether my thoughts were aligned with God's will. I often asked myself what could be causing my inner emptiness and hoped that any hidden reluctance in my heart wouldn’t block my connection to the divine source. During these humbling times, I became more watchful and motivated to notice the subtle movements of the divine spirit within me, which opened the door to some tasks that I likely would have overlooked in easier, more fortunate times.
From Newport we went to Greenwich, Shanticut, and Warwick; and were helped to labour amongst Friends in the Love of our gracious Redeemer: And then,[Pg 97] accompanied by our Friend, John Casey, from Newport, we rode through Connecticut to Oblong, visited the Meetings of Friends in those Parts, and thence proceeded to the Quarterly-meeting at Ryewoods; and, through the gracious Extendings of divine Help, had some seasoning Opportunities in those Places: So we visited Friends at New York and Flushing; and thence to Rahaway: And here, our Roads parting, I took Leave of my beloved Companion, and true Yoke-mate, Samuel Eastburn; and reached Home on the tenth Day of the eighth Month, 1760, where I found my Family well: And, for the Favours and Protection of the Lord, both inward and outward, extended to me in this Journey, my Heart is humbled in grateful Acknowledgments; and I find renewed Desires to dwell and walk in Resignedness before him.
From Newport, we traveled to Greenwich, Shanticut, and Warwick, and were assisted in our efforts among Friends in the love of our gracious Redeemer. Then, accompanied by our friend, John Casey, from Newport, we rode through Connecticut to Oblong, visited the Friends’ meetings in those areas, and then went to the quarterly meeting at Ryewoods. Through the gracious extensions of divine help, we had some meaningful opportunities in those places. We also visited Friends at New York and Flushing, and then to Rahaway. Here, as our paths began to diverge, I said farewell to my dear companion and true yoke-mate, Samuel Eastburn, and returned home on the tenth day of the eighth month, 1760, where I found my family well. For the favors and protection of the Lord, both inward and outward, that were extended to me during this journey, my heart is humbled in gratitude, and I feel renewed desires to dwell and walk in submission before Him.
CHAPTER VIII
His Visits to Pennsylvania, Shrewsbury, and Squan—His publishing the second Part of Considerations on keeping Negroes—His visiting the Families of Friends of Ancocas and Mount-Holly Meetings—His Visits to the Indians at Wehaloosing on the River Susquehannah
His Visits to Pennsylvania, Shrewsbury, and Squan—His publication of the second Part of Considerations on Keeping Slaves—His visits to the Families of Friends from Ancocas and Mount-Holly Meetings—His Visits to the Indians at Wehaloosing on the River Susquehanna
Having felt my Mind drawn toward a Visit to a few Meetings in Pennsylvania, I was very desirous to be rightly instructed as to the Time of setting off: And, on the tenth Day of the fifth Month, 1761, being the first Day of the Week, I went to Haddonfield Meeting, concluding to seek for heavenly Instruction, and come Home, or go on, as I might then believe best for me; and there, through the springing up of pure Love, I felt Encouragement, and so crossed the River. In this Visit I was at two Quarterly and three Monthly-meetings; and, in the Love of Truth, felt my Way open to labour with some noted Friends, who kept Negroes: And, as I was favoured to keep to the Root, and endeavoured to discharge what I believed was required of me, I found inward Peace therein, from Time to Time, and Thankfulness of Heart to the Lord, who was graciously pleased to be a Guide to me.
Feeling inspired to attend a few meetings in Pennsylvania, I really wanted to know the right time to leave. On the tenth day of the fifth month, 1761, which was a Sunday, I went to the Haddonfield meeting, planning to seek spiritual guidance and decide afterward whether to go home or continue my journey based on what felt right. There, through the emergence of pure love, I found encouragement and crossed the river. During this visit, I attended two quarterly and three monthly meetings, and in the spirit of truth, I felt led to engage with some well-known friends who owned slaves. As I remained focused on the core principles and tried to fulfill what I believed was required of me, I experienced moments of inner peace and a grateful heart towards the Lord, who kindly guided me.
In the eighth Month, 1761, having felt Drawings in my Mind to visit Friends in and about Shrewsbury, I went there, and was at their Monthly-meeting, and their First-day-meeting; and had a Meeting at Squan, and another at Squankum; and, as Way opened, had Conversation with some noted Friends concerning their Slaves: And I returned Home in a thankful Sense of the Goodness of the Lord.
In August 1761, feeling a strong urge to visit friends in and around Shrewsbury, I went there and attended their monthly meeting and Sunday service. I also had a meeting at Squan and another at Squankum; and as opportunities arose, I spoke with some well-known friends about their slaves. I returned home feeling grateful for the goodness of the Lord.
From the Care I felt growing in me some Years, I wrote Considerations on keeping Negroes, Part the Second; which was printed this Year, 1762. When the Overseers[Pg 99] of the Press had done with it, they offered to get a Number printed, to be paid for out of the Yearly-meeting Stock, and to be given away; but I being most easy to publish them at my own Expence, and, offering my Reasons, they appeared satisfied.
From the care I felt growing in me for some years, I wrote Considerations on Keeping Slaves, Part Two; which was printed this year, 1762. Once the overseers[Pg 99] of the press were done with it, they offered to print a number to be paid for out of the yearly meeting's funds and given away; but since I was more comfortable publishing them at my own expense, and after presenting my reasons, they seemed satisfied.
This Stock is the Contribution of the Members of our religious Society in general; amongst whom are some who keep Negroes; and, being inclined to continue them in Slavery, are not likely to be satisfied with those Books being spread amongst a People where many of the Slaves are taught to read, and especially not at their Expence; and such often, receiving them as a Gift, conceal them: But as they, who make a Purchase, generally buy that which they have a Mind for, I believe it best to sell them; expecting, by that Means, they would more generally be read with Attention. Advertisements being signed by Order of the Overseers of the Press, directed to be read in Monthly-meetings of Business within our own Yearly-meeting, informing where the Books were, and that the Price was no more than the Cost of printing and binding them, many were taken off in our Parts; some I sent to Virginia, some to New-York, and some to Newport, to my Acquaintance there; and some I kept, expecting to give Part of them away, where there appeared a Prospect of Service.
This stock represents the contributions of the members of our religious society as a whole; among them are some who own slaves and are inclined to keep them in slavery. They are unlikely to be pleased with these books being distributed among a population where many of the enslaved are learning to read, especially if it’s at their expense. Often, when they receive them as gifts, they hide them. However, since those who purchase generally buy what they want, I believe it's better to sell them. This way, they may be read more attentively. Advertisements, authorized by the overseers of the press, were posted to be read at our monthly meetings, informing where the books could be found and that the price was just the cost of printing and binding them. Many were taken in our area; some I sent to Virginia, some to New-York, and some to Newport for my acquaintances there, while I kept some, hoping to give part away where there seemed to be a chance to help.
In my Youth I was used to hard Labour; and, though I was middling healthy, yet my Nature was not fitted to endure so much as many others: So that, being often weary, I was prepared to sympathize with those whose Circumstances in Life, as free Men, required constant Labour to answer the Demands of their Creditors, and with others under Oppression. In the Uneasiness of Body, which I have many Times felt by too much Labour, not as a forced but as a voluntary Oppression, I have often been excited to think on the original Cause of that Oppression, which is imposed on many in the World: And, the latter Part of the Time wherein I laboured on our Plantation, my Heart, through the fresh Visitations of heavenly Love, being often tender, and my leisure Time frequently spent in reading the Life and Doctrines[Pg 100] of our blessed Redeemer, the Account of the Sufferings of Martyrs, and the History of the first Rise of our Society, a Belief was gradually settled in my Mind, that if such, as had great Estates, generally lived in that Humility and Plainness which belongs to a Christian Life, and laid much easier Rents and Interests on their Lands and Monies, and thus led the Way to a right Use of Things, so great a Number of People might be employed in Things useful, that Labour, both for Men and other Creatures, would need to be no more than an agreeable Employ; and divers Branches of Business, which serve chiefly to please the natural Inclinations of our Minds, and which, at present, seem necessary to circulate that Wealth which some gather, might, in this Way of pure Wisdom, be discontinued. And, as I have thus considered these Things, a Query, at Times, hath arisen: Do I, in all my Proceedings, keep to that Use of Things which is agreeable to universal Righteousness? And then there hath some Degree of Sadness, at Times, come over me, for that I accustomed myself to some Things, which occasioned more Labour than I believe divine Wisdom intends for us.
In my youth, I was used to hard work, and although I was fairly healthy, I wasn't built to handle as much as many others. So, feeling tired often, I was sympathetic to those who, as free men, had to work constantly to meet their creditors' demands, as well as to those under oppression. In the discomfort of my body, which I frequently experienced from too much labor—not because I was forced, but as a voluntary burden—I often thought about the root cause of that oppression faced by many in the world. During the latter part of my time working on our plantation, my heart, often touched by the renewed feelings of divine love, became tender. I spent my free time reading about the life and teachings[Pg 100] of our blessed Redeemer, the accounts of martyrs’ sufferings, and the history of the early days of our society. I gradually came to believe that if those with great estates lived in the humility and simplicity that aligns with a Christian life and imposed lighter rents and interests on their lands and money, leading by example in the right use of resources, many people could be engaged in truly useful work. Labor for both people and creatures would then become more enjoyable. Many branches of work, which currently exist mainly to satisfy our natural inclinations and seem necessary to circulate the wealth some accumulate, could be discontinued in this way of pure wisdom. As I reflected on these matters, I occasionally wondered: Am I, in all my actions, using things in a way that aligns with universal righteousness? Sometimes, this led to feelings of sadness, as I recognized that I had gotten used to practices that required more labor than I believe divine wisdom intends for us.
From my early Acquaintance with Truth I have often felt an inward Distress, occasioned by the striving of a Spirit in me against the Operation of the heavenly Principle; and in this Circumstance have been affected with a Sense of my own Wretchedness, and in a mourning Condition felt earnest Longing for that divine Help, which brings the Soul into true Liberty; and sometimes, in this State, retiring into private Places, the Spirit of Supplication hath been given me; and, under a heavenly Covering, I have asked my gracious Father to give me a Heart in all Things resigned to the Direction of his Wisdom.
From my early encounters with Truth, I have often felt an inner turmoil caused by a struggle within me against the influence of the divine Principle; in this situation, I have experienced a sense of my own misery, and in a state of mourning, I have felt a deep longing for that divine assistance that brings the Soul into true freedom. Sometimes, during this time, when I would retreat to peaceful places, I have been filled with a spirit of prayer; and, under a divine guidance, I have asked my gracious Father to give me a Heart that is fully surrendered to the direction of His Wisdom.
In visiting People of Note in the Society who had Slaves, and labouring with them in brotherly Love on that Account, I have seen, and the Sight hath affected me, that a Conformity to some Customs, distinguishable from pure Wisdom, has entangled many; and the Desire of Gain, to support these Customs, greatly opposed the Work of Truth: And sometimes, when the Prospect of[Pg 101] the Work before me has been such, that in Bowedness of Spirit, I have been drawn into retired Places, and besought the Lord with Tears that he would take me wholly under his Direction, and shew me the Way in which I ought to walk, it hath revived, with Strength of Conviction, that, if I would be his faithful Servant, I must, in all Things, attend to his Wisdom, and be teachable; and so cease from all Customs contrary thereto, however used amongst religious People.
While visiting notable members of society who owned slaves and working with them in a spirit of brotherly love because of that, I have witnessed, and it has deeply affected me, that adhering to certain customs, separate from true wisdom, has trapped many people; and the desire for profit to uphold these customs has significantly hindered the work of truth. Sometimes, when the outlook on the work ahead of me has been such that I’ve felt a deep spiritual heaviness, I have retreated to quiet places and earnestly prayed to the Lord, asking Him to fully guide me and show me the way I should go. This has renewed my conviction that if I want to be His faithful servant, I must, in all things, rely on His wisdom and remain open to learning, and stop following any customs that contradict that, no matter how common they are among religious people.
As he is the Perfection of Power, of Wisdom, and of Goodness, so, I believe, he hath provided, that so much Labour shall be necessary for Men's Support, in this World, as would, being rightly divided, be a suitable Employment of their Time; and that we cannot go into Superfluities, or grasp after Wealth in a Way contrary to his Wisdom, without having Connection with some Degree of Oppression, and with that Spirit which leads to Self-exaltation and Strife, and which frequently brings Calamities on Countries, by Parties contending about their Claims.
As he embodies the ultimate Power, Wisdom, and Goodness, I believe he has arranged for men to require a certain amount of work to support themselves in this world, which, if divided appropriately, would offer a fitting use of their time. We cannot indulge in excess or pursue wealth in a way that goes against his Wisdom without being linked to some level of oppression and the mindset that drives self-importance and conflict. This often leads to disasters in nations due to groups fighting over their claims.
In the eleventh Month of the Year 1762, feeling an Engagement of Mind to visit some Families in Mansfield. I joined my beloved Friend, Benjamin Jones, and we spent a few Days together in that Service. In the second Month, 1763, I joined in Company with Elizabeth Smith and Mary Noble on a Visit to the Families of Friends at Ancocas; in both which Visits, through the baptizing Power of Truth, the sincere Labourers were often comforted, and the Hearts of Friends opened to receive us. And, in the fourth Month following, I accompanied some Friends in a Visit to the Families of Friends in Mount-Holly, in which my Mind was often drawn into an inward Awfulness, wherein strong Desires were raised for the everlasting Welfare of my Fellow-creatures; and, through the Kindness of our heavenly Father, our Hearts were, at Times, enlarged, and Friends invited, in the Flowings of divine Love, to attend to that which would settle them on the sure Foundation.
In the eleventh month of 1762, I felt a strong urge to visit some families in Mansfield. I joined my dear friend, Ben Jones, and we spent a few days together doing this. In the second month of 1763, I teamed up with Liz Smith and Mary Noble to visit the families of friends in Ancocas. During both of these visits, through the powerful influence of truth, the dedicated laborers found comfort, and the hearts of friends were opened to welcome us. Then, in the fourth month that followed, I joined some friends on a visit to the families of friends in Mount-Holly. During this time, I often felt a deep sense of reverence, and strong desires arose for the lasting well-being of my fellow humans. Thanks to the kindness of our heavenly Father, our hearts were occasionally expanded, and friends were encouraged, in the outpourings of divine love, to focus on what would ground them on a solid foundation.
Having many Years felt Love in my Heart towards the Natives of this Land, who dwell far back in the[Pg 102] Wilderness, whose Ancestors were the Owners and Possessors of the Land where we dwell; and who, for a very small Consideration, assigned their Inheritance to us; and, being at Philadelphia, in the eighth Month, 1761, in a Visit to some Friends who had Slaves, I fell in Company with some of those Natives who lived on the East Branch of the River Susquehannah, at an Indian Town called Wehaloosing, two hundred Miles from Philadelphia, and, in Conversation with them by an Interpreter, as also by Observations on their Countenances and Conduct, I believed some of them were measurably acquainted with that divine Power which subjects the rough and forward Will of the Creature: And, at Times, I felt inward Drawings toward a Visit to that Place, of which I told none except my dear Wife, until it came to some Ripeness; and, then, in the Winter, 1762, I laid it before Friends at our Monthly and Quarterly, and afterwards at our general Spring-meeting; and, having the Unity of Friends, and being thoughtful about an Indian Pilot, there came a Man and three Women from a little beyond that Town to Philadelphia on Business: And I, being informed thereof by Letter, met them in Town in the fifth Month, 1763; and, after some Conversation, finding they were sober People, I, by the Concurrence of Friends in that Place, agreed to join with them as Companions in their Return; and, on the seventh Day of the sixth Month following, we appointed to meet at Samuel Foulk's, at Richland in Bucks County. Now, as this Visit felt weighty, and was performed at a Time when Travelling appeared perilous, so the Dispensations of divine Providence, in preparing my Mind for it, have been memorable; and I believe it good for me to give some Hints thereof.
For many years, I have felt love in my heart for the Native people of this land, who live deep in the[Pg 102] wilderness. Their ancestors were the original owners of the land where we live, and for a very small payment, they gave up their inheritance to us. While I was in Philadelphia in August 1761, visiting some friends who owned slaves, I met some of those Natives from the East Branch of the Susquehannah River at an Indian town called Wehaloosing, two hundred miles from Philadelphia. Through conversations with them via an interpreter, as well as my observations of their expressions and behavior, I sensed that some of them were somewhat familiar with the divine power that humbles the unruly desires of people. At times, I felt a strong urge to visit that place, which I only shared with my dear wife until it developed further. Then, in the winter of 1762, I brought it up to Friends at our Monthly and Quarterly meetings, and later at our general Spring meeting. With the support of Friends, and while considering the need for an Indian guide, a man and three women came to Philadelphia from just beyond that town on business. Once I learned about them through a letter, I met them in town in May 1763. After talking with them and recognizing that they were serious people, I decided, with the agreement of Friends in that area, to join them as companions on their return trip. We planned to meet at Samuel Foulk's in Richland, Bucks County, on the seventh day of June following. This visit felt significant, and it occurred during a time when travel seemed risky, so the way divine providence prepared my mind for it has been remarkable. I believe it is important for me to share some details about this experience.
After I had given up to go, the Thoughts of the Journey were often attended with unusual Sadness; in which Times my Heart was frequently turned to the Lord with inward Breathings for his heavenly Support, that I might not fail to follow him wheresoever he might lead me: And, being at our Youths Meeting at Chesterfield, about a Week before the Time I expected to set off,[Pg 103] I was there led to speak on that Prayer of our Redeemer to his Father: "I pray not that thou shouldest take them out of the World, but that thou shouldest keep them from the Evil." And, in attending to the pure Openings of Truth, I had to mention what he elsewhere said to his Father; "I know that thou hearest me at all Times:" So that, as some of his Followers kept their Places, and as his Prayer was granted, it followed necessarily that they were kept from Evil: And, as some of those met with great Hardships and Afflictions in this World, and at last suffered Death by cruel Men, it appears, that whatsoever befals Men while they live in pure Obedience to God, as it certainly works for their Good, so it may not be considered an Evil as if relates to them. As I spake on this Subject, my Heart was much tendered, and great Awfulness came over me; and then, on the first Day of the next Week, being at our own Afternoon-meeting, and my Heart being enlarged in Love, I was led to speak on the Care and Protection of the Lord over his People, and to make mention of that Passage, where a Band of Assyrians endeavouring to take captive the Prophet, were disappointed; and how the Psalmist said, "The Angel of the Lord encampeth round about them that fear him." And thus, in true Love and Tenderness, I parted from Friends, expecting the next Morning, to proceed on my Journey, and, being weary, went early to Bed; and, after I had been asleep a short Time, I was awaked by a Man calling at my Door; and, arising, was invited to meet some Friends at a Publick-house in our Town, who came from Philadelphia so late, that Friends were generally gone to Bed: These Friends informed me, that an Express arrived the last Morning from Pittsburgh, and brought News that the Indians had taken a Fort from the English Westward, and slain and scalped English People in divers Places, some near the said Pittsburgh; and that some elderly Friends in Philadelphia, knowing the Time of my expecting to set off, had conferred together, and thought good to inform me of these Things, before I left Home, that I might consider them, and proceed as I believed best; so I, going again to Bed, told[Pg 104] not my Wife till Morning. My Heart was turned to the Lord for his heavenly Instruction; and it was an humbling Time to me. When I told my dear Wife, she appeared to be deeply concerned about it; but, in a few Hours Time, my Mind became settled in a Belief, that it was my Duty to proceed on my Journey; and she bore it with a good Degree of Resignation. In this Conflict of Spirit, there were great Searchings of Heart, and strong Cries to the Lord, that no Motion might be, in the least Degree, attended to, but that of the pure Spirit of Truth.
After I had decided to go, thoughts about the journey often came with a unique sadness; during those times, my heart would frequently turn to the Lord with silent prayers for his heavenly support, so that I wouldn't fail to follow him wherever he led me. A week before I planned to leave, at our youth meeting in Chesterfield, I felt inspired to speak about our Redeemer's prayer to his Father: "I pray not that you take them out of the world, but that you keep them from evil." In reflecting on the clear truths, I also mentioned what he said to his Father elsewhere: "I know that you hear me at all times." This meant that, as some of his followers remained steadfast, and his prayer was answered, they were kept safe from evil. Even though some faced great hardships and suffering in this world, ultimately dying at the hands of cruel men, it shows that whatever happens to people living in pure obedience to God works for their good and shouldn't be seen as evil in their case. As I spoke on this topic, my heart was deeply touched, and a sense of awe overwhelmed me. Then, on the first day of the following week, during our afternoon meeting, my heart expanded with love, and I felt led to talk about the Lord's care and protection over his people. I mentioned the story where a group of Assyrians tried to capture the prophet but failed, along with the verse where the psalmist says, "The Angel of the Lord encamps around those who fear him." Thus, with genuine love and tenderness, I said goodbye to my friends, expecting to leave the next morning. Feeling tired, I went to bed early, and after a short time asleep, I was awakened by a man calling at my door. I got up and was invited to meet some friends at a pub in town who had arrived from Philadelphia so late that most friends had already gone to bed. These friends told me that an express messenger had arrived the previous morning from Pittsburgh, bringing news that the Indians had captured a fort from the English to the west and had killed and scalped English people in various places, some near Pittsburgh. A few elderly friends in Philadelphia knew when I was supposed to leave and had decided to inform me of these things before I departed so I could consider them and proceed as I deemed best. So I went back to bed and didn’t tell[Pg 104] my wife until morning. My heart turned to the Lord for guidance, and it was a humbling time for me. When I finally told my dear wife, she seemed very concerned, but over the next few hours, I felt settled in my belief that it was my duty to continue with my journey; she accepted it with a good degree of resignation. During this spiritual struggle, there were deep searches of heart and strong cries to the Lord, ensuring that I would only follow the pure spirit of truth.
The Subjects before-mentioned, on which I had so lately spoken in publick, were now very fresh before me; and I was brought inwardly to commit myself to the Lord, to be disposed of as he saw best. So I took Leave of my Family and Neighbours, in much Bowedness of Spirit, and went to our Monthly-meeting at Burlington; and, after taking Leave of Friends there, I crossed the River, accompanied by my Friends, Israel and John Pemberton; and, parting the next Morning with Israel, John bore me Company to Samuel Foulk's, where I met the before-mentioned Indians, and we were glad to see each other: Here my Friend, Benjamin Parvin, met me, and proposed joining as a Companion, we having passed some Letters before on the Subject; and now, on his Account, I had a sharp Trial; for, as the Journey appeared perilous, I thought, if he went chiefly to bear me Company, and we should be taken Captive, my having been the Means of drawing him into these Difficulties would add to my own Afflictions: So I told him my Mind freely, and let him know that I was resigned to go alone; but, after all, if he really believed it to be his Duty to go on, I believed his Company would be very comfortable to me: It was indeed a Time of deep Exercise, and Benjamin appeared to be so fastened to the Visit, that he could not be easy to leave me; so we went on, accompanied by our Friends, John Pemberton, and William Lightfoot of Pikeland, and lodged at Bethlehem; and there, parting with John, William and we went forward on the ninth Day of the sixth Month, and got Lodging on the Floor of a House, about five Miles from Fort-Allen:[Pg 105] Here we parted with William; and at this Place we met with an Indian Trader, lately come from Wioming; and, in Conversation with him, I perceived that many white People do often sell Rum to the Indians, which, I believe, is a great Evil; first, they being thereby deprived of the Use of their Reason, and their Spirits violently agitated, Quarrels often arise, which end in Mischief; and the Bitterness and Resentments, occasioned hereby, are frequently of long Continuance; Again, their Skins and Furs, gotten through much Fatigue and hard Travels in Hunting, with which they intended to buy Clothing, when they become intoxicated, they often sell at a low Rate for more Rum; and afterward, when they suffer for want of the Necessaries of Life, are angry with those who, for the Sake of Gain, took the Advantage of their Weakness: Of this their Chiefs have often complained, at their Treaties with the English. Where cunning People pass Counterfeits, and impose that on others which is good for nothing, it is considered as a Wickedness; but, to sell that to People which we know does them Harm, and which often works their Ruin, for the Sake of Gain, manifests a hardened and corrupt Heart, and is an Evil, which demands the Care of all true Lovers of Virtue to suppress: And while my Mind, this Evening, was thus employed, I also remembered, that the People on the Frontiers, among whom this Evil is too common, are often poor; who venture to the Outside of a Colony, that they may live more independent on such as are wealthy, who often set high Rents on their Land: Being renewedly confirmed in a Belief, that, if all our Inhabitants lived according to sound Wisdom, labouring to promote universal Love and Righteousness, and ceased from every inordinate Desire after Wealth, and from all Customs which are tinctured with Luxury, the Way would be easy for our Inhabitants, though much more numerous than at present, to live comfortably on honest Employments, without having that Temptation they are often under of being drawn into Schemes to make Settlements on Lands which have not been purchased of the Indians, or of applying to that wicked Practice of selling Rum to them.[Pg 106]
The topics I recently spoke about publicly were still very fresh in my mind. I felt deeply compelled to commit myself to the Lord and let Him decide what's best for me. So, I said goodbye to my family and neighbors, with a heavy heart, and headed to our Monthly meeting at Burlington. After saying farewell to friends there, I crossed the river with my friends, Israel and John Pemberton. The next morning, after parting ways with Israel, John accompanied me to Samuel Foulk's, where I met the previously mentioned Indians, and we were glad to see each other. There, my friend Benjamin Parvin joined me and expressed his desire to come along, as we had discussed previously. His decision put me in a tough spot; since the journey seemed dangerous, I worried that if he came mainly to keep me company and we got captured, I would be adding to my own distress by bringing him into such trouble. I shared my thoughts with him openly and mentioned that I was willing to go alone. However, if he genuinely believed it was his duty to join me, I thought his company would be comforting. It truly was a time of deep reflection, and Benjamin seemed so determined to visit that he couldn’t bear the thought of leaving me. So we continued on, with our friends John Pemberton and William Lightfoot from Pikeland, and spent the night at Bethlehem. After saying goodbye to John, William and I went ahead on the ninth day of the sixth month, lodging on the floor of a house about five miles from Fort-Allen:[Pg 105] There, we said farewell to William. At this location, we met an Indian trader who had recently arrived from Wioming. While talking with him, I discovered that many white people often sell rum to the Indians, which I believe is a serious problem. They become unable to reason because of the effects of alcohol, leading to violent quarrels that often result in trouble. The bitterness and resentment that follow can last a long time. Additionally, the skins and furs that they obtain through hard work and hunting, which they plan to sell for clothing, are often sold for little in exchange for more rum when they’re drunk. Then, when they suffer from not having basic necessities, they become angry with those who exploited their weakness for profit. Their leaders have often complained about this in treaties with the English. While it’s considered wicked when deceitful people pass off worthless items to others, selling something that we know harms people for profit, especially when it leads to their ruin, reveals a hardened and corrupt heart, and is an evil that all true lovers of virtue should strive to eliminate. And as I contemplated this issue that evening, I also remembered that the people on the frontiers, where this problem is too common, are often poor. They venture to the outskirts of a colony to live more independently from the wealthy, who frequently set high rents on their land. I was once again convinced that if all our inhabitants lived by sound wisdom, working to promote universal love and righteousness, and avoided excessive desires for wealth and customs tainted by luxury, the path would be easier for our residents—even if they were many more than now—to live comfortably through honest work without falling into the temptation to settle lands not purchased from the Indians or resorting to the wicked practice of selling rum to them.[Pg 106]
On the tenth Day of the Month we set out early in the Morning, and crossed the Western Branch of Delaware, called the Great Lehie, near Fort-Allen; the Water being high, we went over in a Canoe: Here we met an Indian, and had some friendly Conversation with him, and gave him some Biscuit; and he having killed a Deer, gave the Indians with us some of it: Then, after travelling some Miles, we met several Indian Men and Women with a Cow and Horse, and some Household Goods, who were lately come from their Dwelling at Wioming, and going to settle at another Place; we made them some small Presents, and, some of them understanding English, I told them my Motive in coming into their Country, with which they appeared satisfied: And, one of our Guides talking a While with an ancient Woman concerning us, the poor old Woman came to my Companion and me, and took her Leave of us with an Appearance of sincere Affection. So, going on, we pitched our Tent near the Banks of the same River, having laboured hard in crossing some of those Mountains called the Blue-Ridge; and, by the Roughness of the Stones, and the Cavities between them, and the Steepness of the Hills, it appeared dangerous; but we were preserved in Safety, through the Kindness of him, whose Works in those mountainous Desarts appeared awful: Toward whom my Heart was turned during this Day's Travel.
On the tenth day of the month, we set out early in the morning and crossed the western branch of Delaware, called the Great Lehie, near Fort-Allen; the water was high, so we crossed in a canoe. Here, we met an Indian, had some friendly conversation with him, and gave him some biscuits. He had killed a deer and shared some of it with the Indians traveling with us. After traveling a few miles, we encountered several Indian men and women with a cow and horse, along with some household goods. They had recently come from their home at Wioming and were on their way to settle elsewhere. We made them some small gifts, and since some of them understood English, I explained my reason for visiting their land, which seemed to satisfy them. One of our guides talked with an elderly woman about us, and the kind old woman came over to my companion and me to say goodbye, showing genuine affection. Continuing on, we pitched our tent near the banks of the same river, having worked hard to cross some of the mountains known as the Blue Ridge. The rough stones, gaps between them, and steep hills made it seem dangerous; however, we were kept safe through the kindness of him whose works in those mountainous deserts were awe-inspiring. My heart was turned toward him during this day's journey.
Near our Tent, on the Sides of large Trees peeled for that Purpose, were various Representations of Men going to, and returning from the Wars, and of some killed in Battle; this being a Path heretofore used by Warriours: And, as I walked about viewing those Indian Histories, which were painted mostly in red, but some in black; and thinking on the innumerable Afflictions which the proud, fierce, Spirit produceth in the World; thinking on the Toils and Fatigues of Warriours, travelling over Mountains and Desarts; thinking on their Miseries and Distresses when wounded far from Home by their Enemies; and of their Bruises and great Weariness in chasing one another over the Rocks and Mountains; and of their restless, unquiet, State of Mind, who live in this Spirit;[Pg 107] and of the Hatred which mutually grows up in the Minds of the Children of those Nations engaged in War with each other: During these Meditations, the Desire to cherish the Spirit of Love and Peace amongst these People arose very fresh in me. This was the first Night that we lodged in the Woods; and, being wet with travelling in the Rain, the Ground, our Tent, and the Bushes, which we proposed to lay under our Blankets, being also wet, all looked discouraging; but I believed, that it was the Lord who had thus far brought me forward, and that he would dispose of me as he saw good; and therein I felt easy: So we kindled a Fire, with our Tent open to it; and, with some Bushes next the Ground, and then our Blankets, we made our Bed, and, lying down, got some Sleep; and, in the Morning, feeling a little unwell, I went into the River; the Water was cold, but soon after I felt fresh and well.
Near our tent, on the sides of large trees stripped for that purpose, were various images of men going to and returning from wars, as well as some who were killed in battle; this path had been used by warriors before. As I walked around viewing those Indian histories, which were mostly painted in red and some in black, I thought about the countless afflictions that the proud and fierce spirit creates in the world. I reflected on the toils and hardships of warriors traveling over mountains and deserts, on their misery and distress when wounded far from home by their enemies, on their bruises and exhaustion while chasing each other over rocks and mountains, and on the restless, uneasy state of mind of those who live in this spirit; [Pg 107] and on the hatred that grows in the hearts of the children of nations at war with one another. During these reflections, the desire to foster a spirit of love and peace among these people arose strongly within me. This was the first night we stayed in the woods, and since we were damp from traveling in the rain, the ground, our tent, and the bushes we intended to lie on under our blankets were also wet, making everything look discouraging. But I believed that it was the Lord who had brought me this far and that He would take care of me as He saw fit, which gave me peace. So we started a fire with our tent open to it; with some bushes on the ground and our blankets, we made our bed, and as we lay down, we managed to get some sleep. In the morning, feeling a bit unwell, I went into the river; the water was cold, but soon after, I felt fresh and well.
The eleventh Day of the sixth Month, the Bushes being wet, we tarried in our Tent till about eight o'Clock; when, going on, we crossed a high Mountain supposed to be upwards of four Miles over; the Steepness on the North Side exceeding all the others. We also crossed two Swamps, and, it raining near Night, we pitched our Tent and lodged.
The 11th day of the 6th month, with the bushes wet, we stayed in our tent until about 8 o'clock. When we set out, we crossed a high mountain that was thought to be over four miles across, with the steepness on the north side being greater than the others. We also crossed two swamps, and as it started to rain in the evening, we set up our tent and stayed there for the night.
About Noon, on our Way, we were overtaken by one of the Moravian Brethren, going to Wehaloosing, and an Indian Man with him, who could talk English; and we, being together while our Horses ate Grass, had some friendly Conversation; but they, travelling faster than we, soon left us. This Moravian, I understood, had spent some Time this Spring at Wehaloosing, and was, by some of the Indians, invited to come again.
About noon, on our way, we were joined by a member of the Moravian Brethren heading to Wehaloosing, along with an Indian man who could speak English. While our horses were grazing, we had a friendly chat. However, they were traveling faster than we were and soon left us behind. I learned that this Moravian had spent some time this spring at Wehaloosing and had been invited to return by some of the Indians.
The twelfth Day of the sixth Month, and first of the Week, it being a rainy Day, we continued in our Tent; and here I was led to think on the Nature of the Exercise which hath attended me: Love was the first Motion, and thence a Concern arose to spend some Time with the Indians, that I might feel and understand their Life, and the Spirit they live in, if haply I might receive some Instruction from them, or they be in any Degree helped[Pg 108] forward by my following the Leadings of Truth amongst them: And, as it pleased the Lord to make Way for my going at a Time when the Troubles of War were increasing, and when, by Reason of much wet Weather, Travelling was more difficult than usual at that Season, I looked upon it as a more favourable Opportunity to season my Mind, and bring me into a nearer Sympathy with them: And, as mine Eye was to the great Father of Mercies, humbly desiring to learn what his Will was concerning me, I was made quiet and content.
On the twelfth day of the sixth month, and the first day of the week, since it was a rainy day, we stayed in our tent. Here, I found myself reflecting on the nature of the journey I was on: love sparked my first motivation, and that led to a desire to spend time with the Indians, so I could understand their lives and the spirit they live in. I hoped to gain some insight from them or perhaps help them in some way by following the guidance of truth among them. And as it pleased the Lord to provide an opportunity for me to go at a time when the troubles of war were increasing and traveling was tougher than usual due to the wet weather, I viewed it as a chance to deepen my understanding and connect more closely with them. As I focused on the great Father of Mercies, humbly seeking to know His will for me, I found peace and contentment.
Our Guide's Horse, though hoppled, went away in the Night; after finding our own, and searching some Time for him, his Footsteps were discovered in the Path going back again, whereupon my kind Companion went off in the Rain, and, about seven Hours after, returned with him: And here we lodged again; tying up our Horses before we went to Bed, and loosing them to feed about Break of Day.
Our guide's horse, even though it was hobbled, ran off during the night. After we found our own horse and spent some time looking for him, we discovered his tracks on the path leading back. My kind companion then set off in the rain, and about seven hours later, he returned with the horse. We stayed here again, tying up our horses before going to bed and letting them loose to feed at dawn.
On the thirteenth Day of the sixth Month, the Sun appearing, we set forward; and, as I rode over the barren Hills, my Meditations were on the Alterations of the Circumstances of the Natives of this Land since the Coming in of the English. The Lands near the Sea are conveniently situated for fishing; the Lands near the Rivers, where the Tides flow, and some above, are in many Places fertile, and not mountainous; while the Running of the Tides makes passing up and down easy with any Kind of Traffic. Those Natives have, in some Places, for trifling Considerations, sold their Inheritance so favourably situated; and, in other Places, been driven back by superior Force: So that in many Places, as their Way of clothing themselves is now altered from what it was, and they, far remote from us, have to pass over Mountains, Swamps, and barren Desarts, Travelling is very troublesome, in bringing their Skins and Furs to trade with us.
On the 13th day of the 6th month, with the sun shining, we set off; and while I rode over the barren hills, I thought about how much the circumstances of the natives in this land have changed since the arrival of the English. The land near the coast is great for fishing; the land by the rivers, where the tides flow, and some of the areas further inland are quite fertile and not hilly; plus, the tides make it easy for all kinds of transportation. In some places, the natives have sold their well-located inheritance for small sums, while in other areas, they've been pushed back by stronger forces: As a result, in many places, their way of dressing has changed from what it used to be, and they now have to travel great distances over mountains, swamps, and barren deserts, making it very difficult to bring their skins and furs to trade with us.
By the extending of English Settlements, and partly by English Hunters, the wild Beasts, they chiefly depend on for a Subsistance, are not so plenty as they were; and People too often, for the Sake of Gain, open a Door for[Pg 109] them to waste their Skins and Furs, in purchasing a Liquor which tends to the Ruin of them and their Families.
By the expansion of English settlements, and partly due to English hunters, the wild animals they mainly rely on for food are not as plentiful as they used to be. Additionally, people often, for the sake of profit, allow them to waste their skins and furs to buy alcohol that leads to their downfall and that of their families.
My own Will and Desires were now very much broken, and my Heart, with much Earnestness, turned to the Lord, to whom alone I looked for Help in the Dangers before me. I had a Prospect of the English along the Coast, for upwards of nine hundred Miles, where I had travelled; and the favourable Situation of the English, and the Difficulties attending the Natives in many Places, and the Negroes, were open before me; and a weighty and heavenly Care came over my Mind, and Love filled my Heart toward all Mankind, in which I felt a strong Engagement, that we might be obedient to the Lord, while, in tender Mercies, he is yet calling to us; and so attend to pure universal Righteousness, as to give no just Cause of Offence to the Gentiles, who do not profess Christianity, whether the Blacks from Africa, or the native Inhabitants of this Continent: And here I was led into a close laborious Enquiry, whether I, as an Individual, kept clear from all Things which tended to stir up, or were connected with Wars, either in this Land or Africa; and my Heart was deeply concerned, that, in future, I might in all Things keep steadily to the pure Truth, and live and walk in the Plainness and Simplicity of a sincere Follower of Christ. And, in this lonely Journey, I did, this Day, greatly bewail the Spreading of a wrong Spirit, believing, that the prosperous, convenient, Situation of the English, requires a constant Attention to divine Love and Wisdom to guide and support us in a Way answerable to the Will of that good, gracious, and almighty Being, who hath an equal Regard to all Mankind: And, here, Luxury and Covetousness, with the numerous Oppressions, and other Evils attending them, appeared very afflicting to me; and I felt in that which is immutable, that the Seeds of great Calamity and Desolation are sown and growing fast on this Continent: Nor have I Words sufficient to set forth that Longing I then felt, that we, who are placed along the Coast, and have tasted the Love and Goodness of God, might arise in his Strength; and, like faithful Messengers, labour to[Pg 110] check the Growth of these Seeds, that they may not ripen to the Ruin of our Posterity.
My own will and desires were now very much broken, and my heart sincerely turned to the Lord, who is the only one I looked to for help in the dangers ahead of me. I had a view of the English along the coast for over nine hundred miles, where I had traveled; and the favorable situation of the English, along with the difficulties faced by the natives in many places and the Africans, were clear to me; a heavy and spiritual concern came over my mind, and love filled my heart for all mankind. I felt a strong commitment that we should be obedient to the Lord while, in His tender mercies, He is still calling us; and that we should focus on pure universal righteousness to avoid giving any just cause for offense to the Gentiles, who do not profess Christianity, whether the blacks from Africa or the native inhabitants of this continent. Here, I was led into a deep and earnest inquiry about whether I, as an individual, kept myself free from anything that might stir up or relate to wars, either in this land or Africa; and my heart was deeply concerned that, in the future, I might consistently adhere to pure truth and live and walk simply as a sincere follower of Christ. In this lonely journey, I greatly lamented the spread of a wrong spirit, believing that the prosperous and convenient situation of the English requires constant attention to divine love and wisdom to guide and support us in a way that aligns with the will of that good, gracious, and almighty being, who has equal regard for all mankind. Here, luxury and greed, along with the many oppressions and other evils that come with them, appeared very distressing to me; and I felt in that which is unchanging that the seeds of great calamity and desolation are being sown and rapidly growing on this continent. I do not have enough words to express the longing I felt then, that we, who are situated along the coast and have experienced the love and goodness of God, might rise in His strength and, like faithful messengers, work to[Pg 110] prevent the growth of these seeds, so they do not mature into the ruin of our future generations.
We reached the Indian Settlement at Wioming; and here we were told, that an Indian Runner had been at that Place a Day or two before us, and brought News of the Indians taking an English Fort westward, and destroying the People, and that they were endeavouring to take another; and also, that another Indian Runner came there about the Middle of the Night before we got there, who came from a Town about ten Miles above Wehaloosing, and brought News, that some Indian Warriours, from distant Parts, came to that Town with two English Scalps, and told the People, that it was War with the English.
We arrived at the Indian Settlement in Wioming, and here we were told that an Indian Runner had been at that place a day or two before us. He brought news that the Indians took an English Fort to the west and killed the people there, and they were trying to capture another one. Also, another Indian Runner showed up around midnight before we got there, coming from a town about ten miles above Wehaloosing. He reported that some Indian warriors from distant areas had arrived in that town with two English scalps and told the people that there was war with the English.
Our Guides took us to the House of a very ancient Man; and, soon after we had put in our Baggage, there came a Man from another Indian House some Distance off; and I, perceiving there was a Man near the Door, went out; and, having a Tomahawk wrapped under his Matchcoat out of Sight, as I approached him, he took it in his Hand; I, however, went forward, and, speaking to him in a friendly Way, perceived he understood some English: My Companion then coming out, we had some Talk with him concerning the Nature of our Visit in these Parts; and then he going into the House with us, and talking with our Guides, soon appeared friendly, and sat down and smoked his Pipe. Though his taking his Hatchet in his Hand, at the Instant I drew near to him, had a disagreeable Appearance, I believe he had no other Intent than to be in Readiness in case any Violence was offered to him.
Our guides took us to the home of a very old man, and soon after we dropped off our baggage, a man from another Indian house not far away arrived. Noticing someone near the door, I stepped outside. The man had a tomahawk hidden under his coat, and as I got closer, he took it in his hand. I went up to him, and speaking to him in a friendly way, I noticed he understood some English. My companion then joined us, and we talked with him about the purpose of our visit in the area. Afterward, he came into the house with us and spoke with our guides, quickly appearing friendly and sitting down to smoke his pipe. Even though it looked unsettling when he picked up his hatchet as I approached, I believe he meant no harm; he just wanted to be ready in case anyone tried to hurt him.
Hearing the News brought by these Indian Runners, and being told by the Indians where we lodged, that what Indians were about Wioming expected, in a few Days, to move to some larger Towns, I thought that, to all outward Appearance, it was dangerous Travelling at this Time; and was, after a hard Day's Journey, brought into a painful Exercise at Night, in which I had to trace back, and view over the Steps I had taken from my first Moving in the Visit; and though I had to bewail some[Pg 111] Weakness which, at Times, had attended me, yet I could not find that I had ever given way to a wilful Disobedience: And then, as I believed I had, under a Sense of Duty, come thus far, I was now earnest in Spirit, beseeching the Lord to shew me what I ought to do. In this great Distress I grew jealous of myself, lest the Desire of Reputation, as a Man firmly settled to persevere through Dangers, or the Fear of Disgrace arising on my returning without performing the Visit, might have some Place in me: Thus I lay, full of Thoughts, great Part of the Night, while my beloved Companion lay and slept by me; till the Lord, my gracious Father, who saw the Conflicts of my Soul, was pleased to give Quietness: Then I was again strengthened to commit my Life, and all Things relating thereto, into his heavenly Hands; and, getting a little Sleep toward Day, when Morning came we arose.
Hearing the news from the Indian runners and being told by the locals where we were staying that the Indians around Wyoming were planning to move to larger towns in a few days, I thought that, at least from the outside, traveling at this time seemed dangerous. After a long day's journey, I found myself in a painful struggle at night, going over the steps I had taken since I began this visit. While I regretted some weaknesses I had occasionally faced, I realized I had never willingly disobeyed. Since I believed I had come this far out of a sense of duty, I earnestly prayed to the Lord to show me what I should do. In this great distress, I became concerned about myself, worried that my desire for a reputation as someone who could bravely face dangers or my fear of disgrace for returning without completing the visit might influence me. I spent a large part of the night troubled with these thoughts while my beloved companion slept beside me, until the Lord, my gracious Father, who understood the struggles of my soul, granted me peace. Then I felt renewed strength to entrust my life and everything related to it into His heavenly hands, and getting a bit of sleep before dawn, we rose when morning came.
On the fourteenth Day of the sixth Month, we sought out and visited all the Indians hereabout that we could meet with; they being chiefly in one Place, about a Mile from where we lodged, in all perhaps twenty. Here I expressed the Care I had on my Mind for their Good; and told them, that true Love had made me willing thus to leave my Family to come and see the Indians, and speak with them in their Houses. Some of them appeared kind and friendly. So we took our Leave of these Indians, and went up the River Susquehannah, about three Miles, to the House of an Indian, called Jacob January, who had killed his Hog; and the Women were making store of Bread, and preparing to move up the River. Here our Pilots left their Canoe when they came down in the Spring, which lying dry, was leaky; so that we, being detained some Hours, had a good deal of friendly Conversation with the Family; and, eating Dinner with them, we made them some small Presents. Then, putting our Baggage in the Canoe, some of them pushed slowly up the Stream, and the rest of us rode our Horses; and swimming them over a Creek, called Lahawahamunk, we pitched our Tent a little above it, there being a Shower in the Evening: And, in a Sense of God's Goodness in helping me in my Distress, sustaining me under Trials,[Pg 112] and inclining my Heart to trust in him, I lay down in an humble bowed Frame of Mind, and had a comfortable Night's Lodging.
On the fourteenth day of the sixth month, we went out and visited all the Indians in the area that we could find; they mostly gathered in one place, about a mile from where we were staying, around twenty in total. Here, I shared my care for their well-being and told them that genuine love had motivated me to leave my family to meet them and talk in their homes. Some of them seemed friendly and welcoming. After saying goodbye to these Indians, we headed up the River Susquehannah for about three miles to the home of an Indian named Jacob January, who had just killed his pig; the women were baking bread and getting ready to move up the river. Our guides had left their canoe there when they came down in the spring, and since it was now dry and leaky, we were delayed for a few hours, which gave us an opportunity for some friendly conversation with the family. We shared a meal with them and gave them a few small gifts. After putting our baggage in the canoe, some of them pushed slowly upstream while the rest of us rode our horses. We swam the horses across a creek called Lahawahamunk, and set up our tent a little beyond it, as there was a rain shower that evening. Feeling grateful for God's goodness in assisting me during my troubles, supporting me through trials, and encouraging me to trust in Him, I lay down in a humble, reflective state of mind and had a restful night.
On the fifteenth Day of the sixth Month, we proceeded forward till the Afternoon; when, a Storm appearing, we met our Canoe at an appointed Place; and, the Rain continuing, we stayed all Night, which was so heavy, that it beat through our Tent, and wet us and our Baggage.
On the fifteenth day of the sixth month, we moved ahead until the afternoon; then, a storm rolled in, and we met our canoe at a designated spot. Since the rain kept pouring, we stayed there all night, which was so intense that it soaked through our tent and drenched us and our belongings.
On the sixteenth Day, we found, on our Way, abundance of Trees blown down with the Storm the Day before; and had Occasion reverently to consider the kind Dealings of the Lord, who provided a safe Place for us in a Valley, while this Storm continued. By the falling of abundance of Trees across our Path, we were much hindered, and in some Swamps our Way was so stopped, that we got through with extreme Difficulty.
On the sixteenth day, we came across a lot of trees that had fallen down from the storm the day before. We took a moment to appreciate the kind provisions of the Lord, who had given us a safe spot in a valley while this storm persisted. The many fallen trees blocked our path, causing us significant delays, and in some swamps, our way was so obstructed that we managed to get through with great difficulty.
I had this Day often to consider myself as a Sojourner in this World; and a Belief in the All-sufficiency of God to support his People in their Pilgrimage felt comfortable to me; and I was industriously employed to get to a State of perfect Resignation.
I often found myself thinking of my time in this world as a journey. Believing in God's ability to support His people throughout their journey brought me comfort, and I worked diligently to reach a state of complete acceptance.
We seldom saw our Canoe but at appointed Places, by reason of the Path going off from the River; and, this Afternoon, Job Chilaway, an Indian from Wehaloosing, who talks good English, and is acquainted with several People in and about Philadelphia, met our People on the River; and, understanding where we expected to lodge, pushed back about six Miles, and came to us after Night; and in a While our own Canoe came, it being hard Work pushing up Stream. Job told us, that an Indian came in Haste to their Town yesterday, and told them, that three Warriours, coming from some Distance, lodged in a Town above Wehaloosing a few Nights past; and that these three Men were going against the English at Juniata. Job was going down the River to the Province-store at Shamokin. Though I was so far favoured with Health as to continue travelling, yet, through the various Difficulties in our Journey, and the different Way of living from what I had been used to, I grew sick; and the News of these Warriours being on their March so[Pg 113] near us, and not knowing whether we might not fall in with them, was a fresh Trial of my Faith; and though, through the Strength of divine Love, I had several Times been enabled to commit myself to the divine Disposal, I still found the Want of my Strength to be renewed, that I might persevere therein; and my Cries for Help were put up to the Lord, who, in great Mercy, gave me a resigned Heart, in which I found Quietness.
We rarely saw our Canoe except at designated spots because the path went off from the River. This afternoon, Job Chilaway, an Indian from Wehaloosing who speaks good English and knows several people around Philadelphia, met our group on the River. He learned where we planned to stay, traveled back about six miles, and joined us after dark. After a while, our own Canoe arrived, as it was tough work paddling upstream. Work told us that an Indian had rushed into their town yesterday and informed them that three warriors had stayed in a town above Wehaloosing a few nights ago. These three men were on their way to confront the English at Juniata. Work was heading down the River to the Province store at Shamokin. Although I was fortunate enough to stay healthy enough to keep traveling, the various challenges of our journey and the different way of life from what I was used to made me sick. The news of these warriors marching so[Pg 113] close to us, and not knowing if we might run into them, was a fresh test of my faith. Even though, through the strength of divine love, I had been able several times to trust myself to God's care, I still felt the need for my strength to be renewed so I could continue doing so. My cries for help went up to the Lord, who, in great mercy, gave me a peaceful heart, which brought me tranquility.
On the seventeenth Day, parting from Job Chilaway, we went on, and reached Wehaloosing about the Middle of the Afternoon, and the first Indian that we saw was a Woman of a modest Countenance, with a Bible, who first spake to our Guide; and then, with a harmonious Voice, expressed her Gladness at seeing us, having before heard of our Coming: Then, by the Direction of our Guide, we sat down on a Log; and he went to the Town, to tell the People we were come. My Companion and I sitting thus together, in a deep inward Stillness, the poor Woman came and sat near us; and, great Awfulness coming over us, we rejoiced in a Sense of God's Love manifested to our poor Souls. After a While, we heard a Conkshell blow several Times, and then came John Curtis, and another Indian Man, who kindly invited us into a House near the Town, where we found, I suppose, about sixty People sitting in Silence; and, after sitting a short Time, I stood up, and in some Tenderness of Spirit acquainted them with the Nature of my Visit, and that a Concern for their Good had made me willing to come thus far to see them; all in a few short Sentences, which some of them understanding interpreted to the others, and there appeared Gladness amongst them. Then I shewed them my Certificate, which was explained to them; and the Moravian, who overtook us on the Way, being now here, bade me welcome.
On the seventeenth day, after saying goodbye to Job Chilaway, we moved on and arrived at Wehaloosing around midday. The first Indian we saw was a modest woman with a Bible, who greeted our guide first and then, with a cheerful voice, expressed her happiness at seeing us, having heard about our arrival. Following our guide's direction, we sat down on a log while he went to the town to inform the people we had arrived. My companion and I sat together in deep silence, and the poor woman came and sat near us. A profound sense of awe washed over us, and we rejoiced in feeling God's love for our souls. After a while, we heard a conch shell blow several times, and then John Curtis and another Indian man kindly invited us into a nearby house, where we found around sixty people sitting in silence. After a short time, I stood up and, feeling tender-hearted, explained the purpose of my visit and that my concern for their well-being had brought me this far to see them. I shared this in just a few short sentences, which some understood and interpreted for the others, and there was a sense of joy among them. Then I showed them my certificate, which was explained to them, and the Moravian, who caught up with us on the way, welcomed me.
On the eighteenth Day: We rested ourselves this Forenoon; and the Indians, knowing that the Moravian and I were of different religious Societies, and as some of their People had encouraged him to come and stay a While with them, were, I believe, concerned that no Jarring or Discord might be in their Meetings: And they, I[Pg 114] suppose, having conferred together, acquainted me, that the People, at my Request, would, at any Time, come together, and hold Meetings; and also told me, that they expected the Moravian would speak in their settled Meetings, which are commonly held Morning and near Evening. So I found Liberty in my Heart to speak to the Moravian, and told him of the Care I felt on my Mind for the Good of these People; and that I believed no ill Effects would follow it, if I sometimes spake in their Meetings when Love engaged me thereto, without calling them together at Times when they did not meet of course: Whereupon he expressed his Good-will toward my speaking, at any Time, all that I found in my Heart to say: So, near Evening, I was at their Meeting, where the pure Gospel-love was felt, to the tendering some of our Hearts; and the Interpreters, endeavouring to acquaint the People with what I said in short Sentences, found some Difficulty, as none of them were quite perfect in the English and Delaware Tongues; so they helped one another, and we laboured along, divine Love attending: And afterwards, feeling my Mind covered with the Spirit of Prayer, I told the Interpreters that I found it in my Heart to pray to God, and believed, if I prayed aright, he would hear me, and expressed my Willingness for them to omit interpreting; so our Meeting ended with a Degree of divine Love: And, before the People went out, I observed Papunehang (the Man who had been zealous in labouring for a Reformation in that Town, being then very tender) spoke to one of the Interpreters; and I was afterwards told that he said in Substance as follows: "I love to feel where Words come from."
On the eighteenth day: We took the morning off to rest; and the Indians, aware that the Moravian and I belonged to different religious groups, and since some of their people had encouraged him to come and spend some time with them, seemed worried that there would be any conflict or disagreement during their gatherings. I think they got together to discuss this and then informed me that the people, at my request, would be willing to come together at any time to hold meetings. They also mentioned that they expected the Moravian to speak during their regular meetings, which usually happen in the morning and evening. So, I felt it was right to talk to the Moravian, and I shared my concern for the well-being of these people. I believed that it wouldn’t cause any problems if I occasionally spoke during their meetings when I felt moved by love, without needing to call them together at times when they didn’t normally meet. He welcomed my speaking freely whenever I felt the urge to share. Later, in the evening, I attended their meeting, where we felt a deep sense of Gospel love that touched some of our hearts. The interpreters worked to summarize what I said in short sentences but faced some challenges since none of them were completely fluent in both English and Delaware; they helped one another, and we kept going with the support of divine love. Afterward, feeling moved by a spirit of prayer, I informed the interpreters that I felt led to pray to God, believing that if I prayed sincerely, He would hear me, and I expressed my willingness for them to skip the interpretation. Our meeting concluded with a sense of divine love. Before the people left, I noticed Papunehang (the man who had been eager to promote change in that town, looking very touched) spoke to one of the interpreters, and later I was told that he said something along the lines of: "I love to feel where words come from."
On the nineteenth Day, and first of the Week: This Morning, in the Meeting, the Indian, who came with the Moravian, being also a Member of that Society, prayed; and then the Moravian spake a short Time to the People: And, in the Afternoon, they coming together, and my Heart being filled with a heavenly Care for their Good, I spake to them a While by Interpreters; but none of them being perfect in the Work, and I, feeling the Current of Love run strong, told the Interpreters, that I believed[Pg 115] some of the People would understand me, and so I proceeded: In which Exercise I believe the Holy Ghost wrought on some Hearts to Edification, where all the Words were not understood, I looked upon it as a Time of divine Favour, and my Heart was tendered and truly thankful before the Lord; and, after I sat down, one of the Interpreters seemed spirited to give the Indians the Substance of what I had said.
On the nineteenth day, and the first of the week: This morning, during the meeting, the Indian, who came with the Moravian and is also a member of that society, prayed; then the Moravian spoke briefly to the people. In the afternoon, as they gathered again, my heart was filled with a heavenly concern for their well-being, and I spoke to them for a while through interpreters. However, none of them were perfect in their work, and feeling a deep sense of love flowing through me, I told the interpreters that I believed[Pg 115] some of the people would understand me, so I continued. In that moment, I felt the Holy Spirit working on some hearts for their upliftment, even when not all the words were grasped. I regarded it as a time of divine favor, and my heart was softened and genuinely thankful before the Lord. After I finished, one of the interpreters seemed inspired to convey the essence of what I said to the Indians.
Before our first Meeting, this Morning, I was led to meditate on the manifold Difficulties of these Indians, who, by the Permission of the six Nations, dwell in these Parts; and a near Sympathy with them was raised in me; and, my Heart being enlarged in the Love of Christ, I thought that the affectionate Care of a good Man for his only Brother in Affliction does not exceed what I then felt for that People.
Before our first meeting this morning, I was prompted to reflect on the many challenges faced by these Indians, who, with the permission of the six Nations, live in this area; and I felt a deep connection with them. With my heart opened by the love of Christ, I realized that the compassionate concern a good man has for his only brother in suffering doesn't surpass the feelings I had for that community.
I came to this Place through much Trouble; and though, through the Mercies of God, I believed, that if I died in the Journey, it would be well with me; yet the Thoughts of falling into the Hands of Indian Warriours were, in Times of Weakness, afflicting to me; and, being of a tender Constitution of Body, the Thoughts of Captivity amongst them were, at Times, grievous; as supposing, that they being strong and hardy, might demand Service of me beyond what I could well bear; but the Lord alone was my Keeper; and I believed, if I went into Captivity, it would be for some good End: And thus, from Time to Time, my Mind was centered in Resignation, in which I always found Quietness. And now, this Day, though I had the same dangerous Wilderness between me and Home, I was inwardly joyful that the Lord had strengthened me to come on this Visit, and manifested a fatherly Care over me in my poor lowly Condition, when in mine own Eyes I appeared inferior to many amongst the Indians.
I made my way to this place after a lot of struggles, and although I believed, thanks to God's mercy, that if I died on the journey, everything would be okay for me, the thought of falling into the hands of Indian warriors was distressing in moments of weakness. Since I had a delicate constitution, the idea of being captured by them sometimes weighed heavily on me, as I feared they might require more from me than I could handle. But the Lord was my protector, and I believed that if I were taken captive, it would be for a good reason. As a result, I often found solace in surrendering to this belief. Now, even though I still faced the same treacherous wilderness separating me from home, I felt a deep sense of joy today that the Lord gave me the strength to undertake this visit and showed a caring, fatherly presence over me in my humble condition, especially when I felt inferior to many among the Indians.
When the last-mentioned Meeting was ended, it being Night, Papunehang went to Bed; and, one of the Interpreters sitting by me, I observed Papunehang spoke with an harmonious Voice, I suppose a Minute or two; and, asking the Interpreter, I was told, that "He was expressing his Thankfulness to God for the Favours he[Pg 116] had received that Day; and prayed that he would continue to favour him with that same, which he had experienced in that Meeting." And though Papunehang had before agreed to receive the Moravian, and join with them, he still appeared kind and loving to us.
When the last meeting was over and it was night, Papunehang went to bed. One of the interpreters was sitting next to me, and I noticed that Papunehang spoke in a melodic voice for a minute or two. When I asked the interpreter, I was told that "He was expressing his gratitude to God for the blessings he[Pg 116] received that day and prayed that God would continue to bless him like he did in that meeting." Even though Papunehang had previously agreed to join the Moravian group, he still seemed kind and loving towards us.
On the twentieth Day I was at two Meetings, and silent in them.
On the twentieth day, I attended two meetings and remained silent in both.
The twenty-first Day: This Morning, in Meeting, my Heart was enlarged in pure Love amongst them, and, in short plain Sentences, I expressed several Things that rested upon me, which one of the Interpreters gave the People pretty readily; after which, the Meeting ended in Supplication, and I had Cause humbly to acknowledge the Loving-kindness of the Lord towards us; and then I believed that a Door remained open for the faithful Disciples of Jesus Christ to labour amongst these People.
The twenty-first Day: This morning, during the meeting, my heart was filled with pure love for everyone, and in simple, straightforward sentences, I shared several thoughts that were weighing on me, which one of the interpreters conveyed to the people quite well; after that, the meeting wrapped up with a prayer, and I felt a deep sense of gratitude for the Lord's kindness towards us; I believed that there was still an opportunity for the faithful followers of Jesus Christ to work among these people.
I now feeling my Mind at Liberty to return, took my Leave of them in general, at the Conclusion of what I said in Meeting; and so we prepared to go homeward: But some of their most active Men told us, that, when we were ready to move, the People would choose to come and shake Hands with us; which those who usually come to Meeting did: And, from a secret Draught in my Mind, I went amongst some who did not use to go to Meeting, and took my Leave of them also: And the Moravian and his Indian Interpreter appeared respectful to us at parting. This Town stands on the Bank of Susquehannah, and consists, I believe, of about forty Houses, mostly compact together; some about thirty feet long, and eighteen wide, some bigger, some less; mostly built of split Plank, one End set in the Ground, and the other pinned to a Plate, on which lay Rafters, and covered with Bark. I understand a great Flood last Winter overflowed the chief Part of the Ground where the Town stands; and some were now about moving their Houses to higher Ground.
I now felt free to leave, so I said goodbye to everyone at the end of the meeting, and we got ready to head home. But some of the more active men told us that when we were ready to leave, people would want to come and shake hands with us; and that’s exactly what those who usually attend the meeting did. From a feeling I couldn’t quite explain, I also went over to some who didn’t usually come to the meeting and said goodbye to them too. The Moravian and his Indian interpreter were respectful as we parted ways. This town is located on the bank of the Susquehannah and has about forty houses, mostly clustered together; some are around thirty feet long and eighteen feet wide, with others being bigger or smaller; most are made of split planks, with one end set into the ground and the other attached to a plate, which supports the rafters covered with bark. I heard that a major flood last winter inundated most of the land where the town is located, and some people were planning to move their houses to higher ground.
We expected only two Indians to be our Company; but, when we were ready to go, we found many of them were going to Bethlehem with Skins and Furs, who chose to go in Company with us: So they loaded two Canoes,[Pg 117] which they desired us to go in, telling us, that the Waters were so raised with the Rains, that the Horses should be taken by such as were better acquainted with the Fording-places: So we, with several Indians, went in the Canoes, and others went on Horses, there being seven besides ours. And we meeting with the Horsemen once on the Way by Appointment, and that near Night, a little below a Branch called Tankhannah, we lodged there; and some of the young Men going out a little before Dusk with their Guns, brought in a Deer.
We only expected two Indians to join us, but when we were ready to leave, we found many of them were heading to Bethlehem with skins and furs and wanted to travel with us. So they loaded two canoes, [Pg 117] which they asked us to take, telling us that the waters were so high from the rain that the horses should be handled by those who were more familiar with the fording spots. So we, along with several Indians, took the canoes while others rode horses—there were seven horses besides ours. We met the horsemen along the way as planned, not far from nightfall, just below a branch called Tankhannah, where we set up camp. Some of the young men went out a bit before dusk with their guns and brought back a deer.
On the twenty-second Day, through Diligence, we reached Wioming before Night, and understood the Indians were mostly gone from this Place: Here we went up a small Creek into the Woods with our Canoes, and, pitching our Tent, carried out our Baggage; and before Dark our Horses came to us.
On the twenty-second day, through hard work, we arrived at Wyoming before nightfall and learned that most of the Indians had left this area. We paddled up a small creek into the woods with our canoes, set up our tent, unloaded our baggage, and before dark, our horses arrived.
On the twenty-third Day in the Morning their Horses were loaded, and we prepared our Baggage, and so set forward, being in all fourteen; and with diligent Travelling, were favoured to get near half-way to Fort-Allen. The Land on this Road from Wioming to our Frontier being mostly poor, and good Grass scarce, they chose a Piece of low Ground to lodge on, as the best for grazing; and I, having sweated much in Travelling, and being weary, slept sound; I perceived in the Night that I had taken Cold, of which I was favoured to get better soon.
On the morning of the twenty-third day, we loaded our horses and packed our bags, setting off with a total of fourteen people. With diligent travel, we were fortunate to make it nearly halfway to Fort-Allen. The land along this route from Wioming to our frontier was mostly poor and lacked good grass, so we chose a low area to camp, which was best for grazing. I had sweated a lot during our travels and was tired, so I slept deeply. I noticed during the night that I had caught a cold, but I was lucky to recover quickly.
On the twenty-fourth Day we passed Fort-Allen, and lodged near it in the Woods.
On the twenty-fourth day, we passed Fort-Allen and stayed nearby in the woods.
Having forded the westerly Branch of Delaware three Times, we thereby had a shorter Way, and missed going over the Top of the Blue Mountains, called the second Ridge. In the second Time fording, where the River cuts through the Mountain, the Waters being rapid, and pretty deep, and my Companion's Mare being a tall, tractable Animal, he sundry Times drove her back through the River, and they loaded her with the Burthens of some small Horses, which they thought not sufficient to come through with their Loads.
Having crossed the western branch of Delaware three times, we took a shorter route and avoided climbing over the top of the Blue Mountains, known as the second ridge. During the second crossing, where the river cuts through the mountain, the waters were swift and fairly deep. My companion’s mare, being a tall and manageable animal, was led back through the river several times, and they loaded her up with the burdens of some smaller horses, which they believed wouldn’t be able to make it through with their loads.
The Troubles westward, and the Difficulty for Indians to pass through our Frontier, I apprehend, was one[Pg 118] Reason why so many came; as expecting that our being in Company would prevent the outside Inhabitants from being surprised.
The problems to the west and the challenges for Indians to cross our borders, I believe, were one[Pg 118] reason why so many came; they thought that being with us would stop outsiders from surprising them.
On the twenty-fifth Day we reached Bethlehem, taking Care on the Way to keep foremost, and to acquaint People on and near the Road who these Indians were: This we found very needful; for the Frontier Inhabitants were often alarmed at the Report of English being killed by Indians westward.
On the twenty-fifth day, we arrived in Bethlehem, making sure to inform people along the way about who these Indians were. We found this very necessary because the people living on the frontier were often scared by reports of English people being killed by Indians to the west.
Amongst our Company were some whom I did not remember to have seen at Meeting, and some of these, at first, were very reserved; but, we being several Days together, and behaving friendly toward them, and making them suitable Returns for the Services they did us, they became more free and social.
Among our group, there were some people I didn't remember seeing at the gathering, and some of them were pretty reserved at first. However, after spending several days together, being friendly towards them, and showing our appreciation for the help they provided, they became more open and sociable.
On the twenty-sixth Day and first of the Week, having carefully endeavoured to settle all Affairs with the Indians relative to our Journey, we took Leave of them, and I thought they generally parted with us affectionately; so we, getting to Richland, had a very comfortable Meeting amongst our Friends: Here I parted with my kind Friend and Companion, Benjamin Parvin; and, accompanied by my Friend, Samuel Foulk, we rode to John Cadwallader's, from whence I reached Home the next Day, where I found my Family middling well; and they, and my Friends, all along appeared glad to see me return from a Journey which they apprehended dangerous: But my Mind, while I was out, had been so employed in striving for a perfect Resignation, and I had so often been confirmed in a Belief, that whatever the Lord might be pleased to allot for me, would work for Good, I was careful lest I should admit any Degree of Selfishness in being glad over much, and laboured to improve by those Trials in such a Manner as my gracious Father and Protector intends for me. Between the English Inhabitants and Wehaloosing we had only a narrow Path, which in many Places is much grown up with Bushes, and interrupted by abundance of Trees lying across it; these, together with the Mountains, Swamps, and rough Stones, make it a difficult Road to travel; and the more[Pg 119] so, for that Rattle-snakes abound there, of which we killed four: People, who have never been in such Places, have but an imperfect Idea of them; but I was not only taught Patience, but also made thankful to God, who thus led me about and instructed me, that I might have a quick and lively Feeling of the Afflictions of my Fellow-creatures, whose Situation in Life is difficult.
On the twenty-sixth day and the first of the week, after carefully working to settle all matters with the Indians regarding our journey, we said our goodbyes. I felt they generally parted from us warmly. Upon arriving at Richland, we had a very pleasant gathering with our friends. Here, I said goodbye to my kind friend and companion, Benjamin Parvin; then, with my friend Samuel Foulk, we rode to John Cadwallader's. I reached home the next day, where I found my family doing fairly well. They and my friends all seemed happy to see me back from a journey they thought might be risky. However, while I was away, my mind was focused on striving for complete acceptance, and I was frequently reassured in my belief that whatever the Lord had in store for me would ultimately be for good. I was careful not to let any selfishness creep in by being overly glad, and I worked to learn from those challenges in the way my gracious Father and Protector intends for me. Between the English settlers and Wehaloosing, we had only a narrow path, which in many places is overgrown with bushes and obstructed by many fallen trees. These obstacles, along with the mountains, swamps, and rough stones, make it a tough journey; and even more so because there are plenty of rattlesnakes in the area, of which we killed four. People who have never been in these places have only a vague idea of them. But I not only learned patience, but I also became grateful to God, who guided me and taught me so that I could have a quick and vivid sense of the struggles of my fellow beings, whose circumstances in life are tough.
CHAPTER IX
His religious Conversation with a Company met to see the Tricks of a Juggler—His Account of John Smith's Advice, and of the Proceedings of a Committee, at the Yearly-meeting in 1764—Contemplations on the Nature of true Wisdom, occasioned by hearing of the Cruelty of the Indians to their Captives—His visiting the Families of Friends at Mount-Holly, Mansfield, and Burlington, in 1764, and the Meetings on the Sea-Coast, from Cape-May, toward Squan, in 1765—His Visit to the lower Counties on Delaware, and the eastern Shore of Maryland, in 1766, in Company with John Sleeper; with some Account of Joseph Nichols and his Followers; and Observations on the different State of the first Settlers in Pennsylvania, who depended on their own Labour, and those of the southern Provinces, who kept Negroes—His visiting the northern Parts of New-Jersey the same Year, and the western Parts of Maryland and Pennsylvania in 1767, and afterwards other Parts of Pennsylvania, and the Families of Friends at Mount-Holly; and again, several Parts of Maryland in 1768—Farther Considerations on keeping Slaves; and his Concern for having formerly, as an Executor, been Party to the Sale of one; and what he did in Consequence of it—Thoughts on Friends exercising Offices in civil Government
His religious discussions with a group gathered to watch a juggler's performance—His account of John Smith's advice and the actions of a committee during the yearly meeting in 1764—Reflections on the nature of true wisdom, inspired by learning about the cruelty of the Indians toward their captives—His visits to the families of Friends in Mount-Holly, Mansfield, and Burlington, in 1764, as well as the meetings along the coast, from Cape-May to Squan, in 1765—His visit to the lower counties of Delaware and the eastern shore of Maryland, in 1766, accompanied by John Sleeper; including some details about Joseph Nichols and his followers; and observations on the different situations of the first settlers in Pennsylvania, who relied on their own labor, compared to those in the southern provinces, who owned slaves—His visit to the northern parts of New-Jersey that same year, and the western parts of Maryland and Pennsylvania in 1767, and later to other areas of Pennsylvania, and the families of Friends in Mount-Holly; and again, various parts of Maryland in 1768—Further thoughts on owning slaves; his regret for having previously been involved in the sale of one as an executor; and the actions he took as a result—Thoughts on Friends holding positions in civil government
The latter Part of the Summer, 1763, there came a Man to Mount-Holly, who had before published, by a printed Advertisement, that, at a certain Publick-house, he would shew many wonderful Operations, which he therein enumerated.
The latter part of the summer, 1763, a man came to Mount-Holly, who had previously announced, through a printed advertisement, that at a certain pub, he would demonstrate many amazing tricks, which he listed there.
This Man, at the Time appointed, did, by slight of Hand, sundry Things; which, to those gathered, appeared strange.
This man, at the scheduled time, performed various tricks; which, to those present, seemed unusual.
The next Day, I, hearing of it, and understanding that the Shew was to be continued the next Night, and the People to meet about Sun-set, felt an Exercise on that Account: So I went to the Publick-house in the Evening, and told the Man of the House that I had an Inclination[Pg 121] to spend a Part of the Evening there; with which he signified that he was content. Then, sitting down by the Door, I spake to the People as they came together, concerning this Shew; and, more coming and sitting down with us, the Seats of the Door were mostly filled; and I had Conversation with them in the Fear of the Lord, and laboured to convince them that, thus assembling to see those Tricks or Slights of Hand, and bestowing their Money to support Men, who, in that Capacity, were of no Use in the World, was contrary to the Nature of the Christian Religion.
The next day, I heard about it and learned that the show was going to continue the next night, with people gathering around sunset. This stirred something in me, so I went to the pub in the evening and told the owner that I wanted to spend part of the evening there. He was fine with that. Then, as I sat by the door, I spoke with the people as they arrived about the show. As more people came and sat with us, the seats by the door filled up, and I had conversations with them in the fear of the Lord, trying to convince them that gathering to watch those tricks and spending their money to support men who, in that role, contributed nothing useful to the world, was against the nature of Christian religion.
There was one of the Company, who, for a Time, endeavoured, by Arguments, to shew the Reasonableness of their Proceedings herein; but, after considering some Texts of Scripture, and calmly debating the Matter, he gave up the Point. So, having spent about an Hour amongst them, and feeling my Mind easy, I departed.
There was someone from the Company who, for a while, tried to use arguments to show the reasonableness of their actions here; but after looking at some Bible verses and discussing the issue calmly, he gave up his argument. After spending about an hour with them and feeling at peace, I left.
At our Yearly-meeting at Philadelphia, on the twenty-fifth Day of the ninth Month, 1764, John Smith, of Marlborough, aged upwards of eighty Years, a faithful Minister, though not eloquent, stood up in our Meeting of Ministers and Elders, and, appearing to be under a great Exercise of Spirit, informed Friends in Substance as follows: to wit, "That he had been a Member of the Society upwards of sixty Years, and well remembered, that in those early Times Friends were a plain lowly-minded People; and that there was much Tenderness and Contrition in their Meetings.—That, at twenty Years from that Time, the Society, increasing in Wealth, and in some Degree conforming to the Fashions of the World, true Humility was less apparent, and their Meetings, in general, not so lively and edifying.—That, at the End of forty Years, many of them were grown very rich; that wearing of fine costly Garments, and using of silver (and other) Watches, became customary with them, their Sons and their Daughters, and many of the Society made a specious Appearance in the World; which Marks of outward Wealth and Greatness appeared on some in our Meetings of Ministers and Elders; and as these Things[Pg 122] became more prevalent, so the powerful Overshadowings of the Holy Ghost were less manifest in the Society.—That there had been a continued Increase of these Ways of Life even until now; and that the Weakness which hath now overspread the Society, and the Barrenness manifest amongst us, are Matter of much Sorrow." He then mentioned the Uncertainty of his attending these Meetings in future, expecting his Dissolution was now near; and, having tenderly expressed his Concern for us, signified that he had seen in the true Light that the Lord would bring back his People from these Things into which they were thus degenerated; but that his faithful Servants must first go through great and heavy Exercises therein.
At our yearly meeting in Philadelphia, on the twenty-fifth day of the ninth month, 1764, John Smith, from Marlborough, who was over eighty years old and a devoted minister despite not being very eloquent, stood up during our meeting of ministers and elders. Seeming to be deeply moved, he shared with friends the following: "I have been a member of this society for over sixty years and I remember that in those early days, we were a humble and down-to-earth people; there was a lot of tenderness and repentance in our meetings. Twenty years later, as the society grew wealthier and began to adopt some of the world's fashions, true humility became less visible, and our meetings were generally not as lively or spiritually enriching. Forty years later, many among us had become quite wealthy; the wearing of fine clothes and the use of silver (and other) watches became common among us, as did these habits for our sons and daughters. Many in our society put on a show of outward wealth and status, and these signs of material prosperity grew noticeable in our meetings of ministers and elders. As these trends became more prevalent, the powerful presence of the Holy Spirit was less visible in the society. This trend of living has continued up to today, and the weakness we've seen spreading among us, and the spiritual barrenness we face, are sources of great sorrow." He then noted that he might not be able to attend these meetings in the future, as he expected his end was near. After expressing his deep concern for us, he indicated that he had seen in truth that the Lord would bring His people back from the things into which they had fallen, but that His faithful servants would first have to endure great and difficult trials.
On the twenty-ninth Day, the Committee, appointed by the Yearly-meeting to visit the Quarterly and Monthly-meetings, now gave an Account in Writing of their Proceedings in that Service; in which they signified, that, in the Course of it, they had been apprehensive that some Persons holding Offices in Government, inconsistent with our Principles, and others, who kept Slaves, remaining active Members in our Meetings of Discipline, had been one Means of Weakness more and more prevailing in the Management thereof in some Places. After this Report was read, an Exercise revived on my Mind, which, at Times, had attended me several Years, and inward Cries to the Lord were raised in me, that the Fear of Man might not prevent me from doing what he required of me; and standing up, I spake in Substance as follows: "I have felt a Tenderness in my Mind, towards Persons, in two Circumstances mentioned in that Report; that is, toward such active Members as keep Slaves, and such as hold Offices in civil Government; and have desired, that Friends, in all their Conduct, may be kindly affectioned one toward another. Many Friends, who keep Slaves, are under some Exercise on that Account; and, at Times, think about trying them with Freedom; but find many Things in their Way: And the Way of Living, and annual Expences of some of them, are such, that it seems impracticable for them to set their Slaves free, without[Pg 123] changing their own Way of Life. It has been my Lot to be often abroad; and I have observed in some Places, at Quarterly and Yearly-meetings, and at some Houses where travelling Friends and their Horses are often entertained, that the yearly Expence of Individuals therein is very considerable: And Friends, in some Places, crouding much on Persons in these Circumstances for Entertainment, hath often rested as a Burthen on my Mind for some Years past; and I now express it in the Fear of the Lord, greatly desiring that Friends now present may duly consider it."
On the twenty-ninth day, the Committee, appointed by the Yearly Meeting to visit the Quarterly and Monthly Meetings, provided a written account of their activities in that service. They indicated that, during this process, they had grown concerned that some people in government positions, which contradict our principles, and others who own slaves, remaining active members in our Discipline Meetings, were contributing to a growing weakness in their management in certain areas. After this report was read, a feeling resurfaced in my mind that had been with me for several years, prompting inner cries to the Lord that the fear of man wouldn’t stop me from doing what He asked of me. I stood up and spoke essentially as follows: "I have a sense of compassion towards individuals in two situations mentioned in that report; that is, towards those active members who own slaves and those who hold positions in civil government. I wish that friends would treat each other with kindness in all their actions. Many friends who own slaves feel some burden about this and occasionally think about trying to free them but encounter numerous obstacles. Their way of living and annual expenses make it seem impossible for them to set their slaves free without changing their own lifestyle. I have often been out and about and observed in certain places, at Quarterly and Yearly Meetings, and at homes where visiting friends and their horses are regularly accommodated, that the annual expenses for individuals there can be quite significant. Friends in some places press hard on people in these situations for hospitality, which has often weighed heavily on my mind for several years now, and I express this with a sense of reverence for the Lord, hoping that those present may take it seriously."
In the Fall of this Year, having hired a Man to work, I perceived, in Conversation, that he had been a Soldier in the late War on this Continent; and, in the Evening, giving a Narrative of his Captivity amongst the Indians, he informed me that he saw two of his Fellow-captives tortured to Death in a very cruel Manner.
In the fall of this year, after hiring a guy to work, I realized during our conversation that he had been a soldier in the recent war on this continent. In the evening, while recounting his experience of being held captive by the Indians, he told me that he witnessed two of his fellow captives being tortured to death in a very brutal way.
This Relation affected me with Sadness, under which I went to Bed; and, the next Morning, soon after I awoke, a fresh and living Sense of divine Love was spread over my Mind; in which I had a renewed Prospect of the Nature of that Wisdom from above, which leads to a right Use of all Gifts, both spiritual and temporal, and gives Content therein: Under a Feeling thereof, I wrote as follows:
This account made me feel sad, and I went to bed with that feeling. The next morning, soon after I woke up, I felt a fresh and vibrant sense of divine love fill my mind. In that state, I gained a new understanding of the kind of wisdom that comes from above, which guides the right use of all gifts, both spiritual and material, and provides satisfaction in them. Feeling this way, I wrote the following:
"Hath he, who gave me a Being attended with many Wants unknown to Brute-creatures, given me a Capacity superior to theirs; and shewn me, that a moderate Application to Business is proper to my present Condition; and that this, attended with his Blessing, may supply all outward Wants, while they remain within the Bounds he hath fixed; and no imaginary Wants, proceeding from an evil Spirit, have any Place in me? Attend then, O my Soul! to this pure Wisdom, as thy sure Conductor through the manifold Dangers in this World.
"Has he, who gave me a life filled with many needs unknown to animals, given me a capacity greater than theirs? And shown me that a reasonable approach to work is suitable for my current situation? That this, along with his blessings, can meet all my external needs, as long as they stay within the limits he has set? And that no fake desires, coming from a bad influence, have a place in me? Listen then, O my Soul! to this clear wisdom, as your reliable guide through the many dangers in this world."
"Doth Pride lead to Vanity? Doth Vanity form imaginary Wants? Do these Wants prompt Men to exert their Power in requiring that of others, which they themselves would rather be excused from, were the same required of them?[Pg 124]
"Does Pride lead to Vanity? Does Vanity create imaginary Wants? Do these Wants drive people to demand from others what they would prefer to be exempt from if the same were asked of them?[Pg 124]"
"Do these Proceedings beget hard Thoughts? Do hard Thoughts, when ripe, become Malice? Does Malice, when ripe, become revengeful; and, in the End, inflict terrible Pains on their Fellow-creatures, and spread Desolation in the World?
"Do these events lead to difficult thoughts? Do difficult thoughts, when fully formed, turn into malice? Does malice, when fully formed, turn into revenge; and, in the end, cause terrible pain to others and spread destruction in the world?"
"Doth Mankind, walking in Uprightness, delight in each other's Happiness? And do these Creatures, capable of this Attainment, by giving way to an evil Spirit, employ their Wit and Strength to afflict and destroy one another?
"Does humanity, standing tall, take pleasure in each other's happiness? And do these beings, capable of such achievement, allow an evil spirit to lead them in using their intelligence and power to hurt and destroy one another?"
"Remember then, O my Soul! the Quietude of those in whom Christ governs, and in all thy Proceedings feel after it.
"Remember this, O my Soul! the peace of those who let Christ lead, and in everything you do, seek that peace."
"Doth he condescend to bless thee with his Presence? To move and influence to Action? To dwell in thee, and walk in thee? Remember then thy Station, as a Being sacred to God; accept of the Strength freely offered thee; and take heed that no Weakness, in conforming to expensive, unwise, and hard-hearted, Customs, gendering to Discord and Strife, be given way to. Doth he claim my Body as his Temple, and graciously grant that I may be sacred to him? O! that I may prize this Favour; and that my whole Life may be conformable to this Character!
"Does he stoop to bless you with his presence? To inspire and drive you to action? To reside in you and walk with you? Remember your position as someone sacred to God; accept the strength freely offered to you; and be careful not to let any weakness, from following costly, foolish, and unkind customs that lead to discord and conflict, take hold. Does he claim my body as his temple and graciously allow me to be sacred to him? Oh! That I might cherish this privilege and that my whole life may reflect this identity!"
"Remember, O my Soul! that the Prince of Peace is thy Lord: That he communicates his unmixed Wisdom to his Family; that they, living in perfect Simplicity, may give no just Cause of Offence to any Creature, but may walk as he walked."
"Remember, O my Soul! that the Prince of Peace is your Lord: That he shares his pure Wisdom with his Family; so that they, living in complete Simplicity, may not give any valid Reason for Offense to any Being, but may walk as he walked."
Having felt an Openness in my Heart toward visiting Families in our own Meeting, and especially in the Town of Mount-Holly, the Place of my Abode, I mentioned it in our Monthly-meeting the Fore-part of the Winter, 1764; which being agreed to, and several Friends of our Meeting being united in the Exercise, we proceeded therein; and, through divine Favour, were helped in the Work, so that it appeared to me as a fresh reviving of godly Care amongst Friends: And, the latter Part of the same Winter, I joined my Friend William Jones, in a Visit to Friends Families in Mansfield; in which[Pg 125] Labour I had Cause to admire the Goodness of the Lord towards us.
Feeling a sense of openness in my heart about visiting families in our meeting, especially in the town of Mount Holly, where I lived, I brought it up at our monthly meeting early in the winter of 1764. It was agreed upon, and several friends in our meeting joined in this effort. With divine help, we were able to continue the work, and it felt like a renewed sense of godly care among friends. Later that winter, I joined my friend William Jones to visit friends' families in Mansfield; during this effort[Pg 125], I had plenty of reasons to appreciate the Lord's goodness towards us.
Having felt my Mind drawn toward a Visit to Friends along the Sea-coast from Cape-May to near Squan; and also to visit some People in those Parts, amongst whom there is no settled Worship; I joined with my beloved Friend, Benjamin Jones, in a Visit there, having Friends Unity therein: And, setting off the twenty-fourth Day of the tenth Month, 1765, we had a prosperous and very satisfactory Journey; feeling, at Times, through the Goodness of the heavenly Shepherd, the Gospel to flow freely toward a poor People scattered in those Places: And soon after our Return, I joined my Friends, John Sleeper and Elizabeth Smith, in visiting Friends Families at Burlington, there being at this Time about fifty Families of our Society in that City; and we had Cause humbly to adore our heavenly Father, who baptized us into a Feeling of the State of the People, and strengthened us to labour in true Gospel-love amongst them.
I felt drawn to visit friends along the coast from Cape May to near Squan, and to see some people in those areas where there isn't any established worship. I teamed up with my dear friend, Ben Jones, for this visit, with the support of our friends. We set off on the twenty-fourth day of the tenth month, 1765, and had a successful and very fulfilling journey; at times, thanks to the goodness of the heavenly shepherd, we experienced the Gospel flowing freely to a struggling community in those places. Soon after we returned, I joined my friends, John Sleeper and Liz Smith, in visiting friends' families in Burlington, where there were about fifty families from our society in that city at the time. We had every reason to humbly praise our heavenly Father, who opened our hearts to understand the needs of the people and empowered us to work in genuine Gospel love among them.
An Exercise having, at Times, for several Years attended me, in regard to paying a religious Visit to Friends on the eastern Shore of Maryland: Such was the Nature of this Exercise, that I believed the Lord moved me to travel on Foot amongst them, that, by so travelling, I might have a more lively Feeling of the Condition of the oppressed Slaves, set an Example of Lowliness before the Eyes of their Masters, and be more out of the Way of Temptation to unprofitable Converse.
An ongoing feeling that sometimes lasted for several years inspired me to make a religious visit to my friends on the eastern Shore of Maryland. This feeling was so strong that I believed the Lord wanted me to walk among them. By doing so, I hoped to better understand the situation of the oppressed slaves, set an example of humility for their masters, and stay away from the temptation of pointless conversation.
The Time now drawing near in which I believed it my Duty to lay my Concern before our Monthly-meeting, I perceived, in Conversation with my beloved Friend, John Sleeper, that he was under a Concern to travel the same Way, and also to travel on Foot in the Form of a Servant amongst them, as he expressed it. This he told me before he knew aught of my Exercise.
The time was approaching when I felt it was my responsibility to share my concerns with our monthly meeting. In a conversation with my dear friend, John Sleeper, I realized that he also felt compelled to take the same path and to journey on foot in the role of a servant among them, as he put it. He mentioned this before he was aware of my own feelings.
We, being thus drawn the same Way, laid our Exercise and the Nature of it before Friends; and, obtaining Certificates, we set off the sixth Day of the fifth Month, 1766; and were at Meetings with Friends at Wilmington,[Pg 126] Duck-Creek, Little-Creek, and Motherkill; my Heart being sundry Times tendered under the divine Influence, and enlarged in Love toward the People amongst whom we travelled.
We felt compelled to follow the same path, so we shared our experience and its nature with our friends. After getting their endorsements, we set off on the sixth day of the fifth month in 1766. We attended meetings with friends in Wilmington,[Pg 126] Duck-Creek, Little-Creek, and Motherkill. My heart was often softened by the divine influence and filled with love for the people we encountered during our travels.
From Motherkill, we crossed the Country about thirty-five Miles to Friends at Tuckahoe in Maryland, and had a Meeting there and at Marshy-Creek.
From Motherkill, we traveled about thirty-five miles across the country to visit friends at Tuckahoe in Maryland, where we had a meeting there and at Marshy-Creek.
At these, our three last Meetings, were a considerable Number of People, Followers of one Joseph Nichols, a Preacher; who, I understand, is not in outward Fellowship with any religious Society of People, but professeth nearly the same Principles as our Society doth, and often travels up and down appointing Meetings, to which many People come. I heard some Friends speaking of some of their Neighbours, who had been irreligious People, that were now his Followers, and were become sober well-behaved Men and Women.
At our last three meetings, there were a significant number of people, followers of a preacher named Joseph Nichols; I’ve heard that he isn’t officially part of any religious group, but he shares many of the same beliefs as ours. He often travels around setting up meetings that many people attend. I overheard some friends talking about neighbors who used to be irreligious but have now become his followers, and they’ve turned into sober, well-behaved men and women.
Some Irregularities, I hear, have been amongst the People at several of his Meetings; but, from the whole of what I have perceived, I believe the Man and some of his Followers are honestly disposed, but that skilful Fathers are wanting amongst them: From hence we went to Choptank and Third-Haven; and thence to Queen Anne's. The Weather having some Days past been hot and dry, and we, to attend Meetings pursuant to Appointment, having travelled pretty steadily, and had hard Labour in Meetings, I grew weakly, at which I was, for a Time, discouraged; but, looking over our Journey, and thinking how the Lord had supported our Minds and Bodies, so that we got forward much faster than I expected before we came out, I now saw that I had been in Danger of too strongly desiring to get soon through the Journey, and that this bodily Weakness, now attending me, was a Kindness to me; and then, in Contrition of Spirit, I became very thankful to my gracious Father, for this Manifestation of his Love; and, in humble Submission to his Will, my Trust was renewed in him.
Some irregularities, I've heard, have occurred among the people at several of his meetings; but from everything I've observed, I believe the man and some of his followers are genuinely well-intentioned, though they lack experienced leaders. From there, we went to Choptank and Third-Haven; and then to Queen Anne's. The weather had been hot and dry for a few days, and since we were traveling steadily to attend meetings as planned and had worked hard in those meetings, I started to feel weak, which discouraged me for a while. However, reflecting on our journey and how the Lord had sustained our minds and bodies, allowing us to progress much faster than I had anticipated before we left, I realized I had been in danger of wanting to rush through the journey. This physical weakness I was experiencing turned out to be a kindness to me; and then, with a humble spirit, I became very grateful to my loving Father for this sign of His love. In submitting to His will, my trust in Him was renewed.
On this Part of our Journey, I had many Thoughts on the different Circumstances of Friends, who inhabit Pennsylvania and Jersey, from those who dwell in[Pg 127] Maryland, Virginia, and Carolina. Pennsylvania and New-Jersey were settled by many Friends, who were convinced of our Principles in England in Times of Suffering, and, coming over, bought Lands of the Natives, and applied themselves to Husbandry in a peaceable Way; and many of their Children were taught to labour for their Living.
On this part of our journey, I had a lot of thoughts about the different circumstances of friends who live in Pennsylvania and Jersey, compared to those who reside in[Pg 127] Maryland, Virginia, and Carolina. Pennsylvania and New Jersey were settled by many friends who embraced our principles in England during times of suffering. They came over, purchased land from the natives, and engaged in farming in a peaceful manner; many of their children were taught to work for their living.
Few Friends, I believe, came from England to settle in any of these southern Provinces; but, by the faithful Labours of travelling Friends in early Times, there were considerable Convincements amongst the Inhabitants of these Parts. Here I remembered my reading of the warlike Disposition of many of the first Settlers in those Provinces, and of their numerous Engagements with the Natives, in which much Blood was shed, even in the Infancy of those Colonies. These People, inhabiting those Places, being grounded in Customs contrary to the pure Truth, when some of them were affected with the powerful preaching of the Word of Life, and joined in Fellowship with our Society, they had a great Work to go through. It is observable, in the History of the Reformation from Popery, that it had a gradual Progress from Age to Age: The Uprightness of the first Reformers, in attending to the Light and Understanding given them, opened the Way for sincere-hearted People to proceed farther afterward; and thus, each one truly fearing God, and labouring in those Works of Righteousness appointed for him in his Day, findeth Acceptance with him: Though, through the Darkness of the Times, and the Corruption of Manners and Customs, some upright Men have had little more for their Day's Work than to attend to the righteous Principle in their Minds, as it related to their own Conduct in Life, without pointing out to others the whole Extent of that, which the same Principle would lead succeeding Ages into. Thus, for Instance, amongst an imperious warlike People, supported by oppressed Slaves, some of these Masters, I suppose, are awakened to feel and see their Error; and. through sincere Repentance, cease from Oppression, and become like Fathers to their Servants; shewing, by their Example, a Pattern of Humility in living, and Moderation[Pg 128] in governing, for the Instruction and Admonition of their oppressing Neighbours; those, without carrying the Reformation farther, I believe, have found Acceptance with the Lord. Such was the Beginning; and those who succeeded them, and have faithfully attended to the Nature and Spirit of the Reformation, have seen the Necessity of proceeding forward, and not only to instruct others, by their Example, in governing well, but also to use Means to prevent their Successors from having so much Power to oppress others.
Few Friends, I believe, came from England to settle in any of these southern provinces; however, through the dedicated efforts of traveling Friends in early times, there were significant conversions among the inhabitants in these areas. I recalled my reading about the aggressive nature of many of the early settlers in those provinces and their numerous conflicts with the natives, during which much blood was shed, even in the early days of those colonies. The people living in those places, rooted in customs contrary to the pure truth, when some were moved by the powerful preaching of the Word of Life and joined our fellowship, had a significant journey ahead of them. It is noteworthy, in the history of the Reformation from Popery, that it progressed gradually from age to age: The integrity of the first reformers, as they followed the light and understanding given to them, paved the way for sincere-hearted individuals to advance further later on; and thus, each person truly fearing God, and working in the righteous tasks set for them in their day, finds acceptance with Him. Though, due to the challenges of the times and the corruption of customs and manners, some upright individuals have had little more for their daily work than to focus on the righteous principle in their minds, relating it to their own life conduct, without fully revealing to others the broader scope of what the same principle would guide future generations towards. For example, among a commanding and warlike people, supported by oppressed slaves, some of these masters, I assume, are awakened to recognize their mistakes; through genuine repentance, they cease from oppression and treat their servants like family, demonstrating by their example a model of humility in living and moderation[Pg 128] in governing, for the instruction and admonition of their oppressive neighbors; those who, without extending the reformation further, I believe, have found acceptance with the Lord. Such was the beginning; and those who followed them, and have faithfully engaged with the nature and spirit of the Reformation, have recognized the need to move forward—not only to guide others through their example of good governance but also to take steps to prevent their successors from having as much power to oppress others.
Here I was renewedly confirmed in my Mind, that the Lord (whose tender Mercies are over all his Works, and whose Ear is open to the Cries and Groans of the Oppressed) is graciously moving on the Hearts of People, to draw them off from the Desire of Wealth, and bring them into such an humble, lowly, Way of Living, that they may see their Way clearly, to repair to the Standard of true Righteousness; and not only break the Yoke of Oppression, but know him to be their Strength and Support in a Time of outward Affliction.
Here I was once again reminded that the Lord (whose compassion extends to all His creations, and whose ears are attentive to the cries and suffering of the oppressed) is lovingly working in the hearts of people to steer them away from the desire for wealth and guide them towards a humble, modest way of living. This way, they can see clearly how to align themselves with the principles of true righteousness; not only breaking the chains of oppression but also recognizing Him as their strength and support during times of hardship.
We, passing on, crossed Chester-River; and had a Meeting there, and at Cecil and Sassafras. Through my bodily Weakness, joined with a heavy Exercise of Mind, it was to me an humbling Dispensation, and I had a very lively Feeling of the State of the Oppressed; yet I often thought, that what I suffered was little, compared with the Sufferings of the blessed Jesus, and many of his faithful Followers; and may say, with Thankfulness, I was made content.
We moved on and crossed Chester-River; and had a gathering there, and at Cecil and Sassafras. Due to my physical weakness, combined with a deep mental struggle, it was a humbling experience for me, and I felt very deeply for the state of the oppressed; yet I often thought that what I was going through was minor compared to the sufferings of the blessed Jesus and many of his devoted followers; and I can say, with gratitude, that I found contentment.
From Sassafras we went pretty directly Home, where we found our Families well; and, for several Weeks after our Return, I had often to look over our Journey: And though it appeared to me as a small Service, and that some faithful Messengers will yet have more bitter Cups to drink in those southern Provinces, for Christ's Sake, than we had; yet I found Peace in that I had been helped to walk in Sincerity, according to the Understanding and Strength given me.
From Sassafras, we headed straight home, where we found our families safe and sound. For several weeks after we got back, I often reflected on our journey. While it seemed to me like a small service, and I knew some devoted messengers would have to face even tougher challenges in those southern provinces for the sake of Christ than we did, I found peace in knowing that I had been guided to walk in sincerity, according to the understanding and strength I was given.
On the thirteenth Day of the eleventh Month, 1766, with the Unity of Friends at our Monthly-meeting, in[Pg 129] Company with my beloved Friend, Benjamin Jones, I set out on a Visit to Friends in the upper Part of this Province, having had Drawings of Love in my Heart that Way a considerable Time: We travelled as far as Hardwick; and I had inward Peace in my Labours of Love amongst them.
On the thirteenth day of the eleventh month, 1766, at our monthly meeting with the Unity of Friends, in[Pg 129] Company with my dear friend, Ben Jones, I set out to visit Friends in the northern part of this province, feeling a strong pull of love in my heart for some time. We traveled as far as Hardwick, and I felt a deep sense of peace in my efforts to spread love among them.
Through the humbling Dispensations of divine Providence, my Mind hath been brought into a farther Feeling of the Difficulties of Friends and their Servants south-westward; and being often engaged in Spirit on their Account, I believed it my Duty to walk into some Parts of the western Shore of Maryland, on a religious Visit; and, having obtained a Certificate from Friends of our Monthly-meeting, I took my Leave of my Family under the heart-tendering Operation of Truth; and, on the twentieth Day of the fourth Month, 1767, I rode to the Ferry opposite to Philadelphia, and from thence walked to William Horne's, at Derby, that Evening; and next Day pursued my journey alone, and reached Concord week-day Meeting.
Through the humbling guidance of divine Providence, I've gained a deeper understanding of the challenges faced by Friends and their Servants in the southwest. Often feeling compelled in spirit on their behalf, I thought it was my duty to visit some areas along the western shore of Maryland for a religious trip. After receiving a Certificate from the Friends at our Monthly meeting, I said goodbye to my family, feeling the heartfelt influence of Truth. On the twentieth day of the fourth month, 1767, I rode to the ferry opposite Philadelphia, and from there, I walked to William Horne’s at Derby that evening. The next day, I continued my journey alone and arrived at the Concord weekday meeting.
Discouragements and a Weight of Distress had, at Times, attended me in this lonesome Walk; through which Afflictions I was mercifully preserved: And now, sitting down with Friends, my Mind was turned toward the Lord, to wait for his holy Leadings; who, in infinite Love, was pleased to soften my Heart into an humble Contrition, and did renewedly strengthen me to go forward; so that to me it was a Time of heavenly Refreshment in a silent Meeting.
Discouragements and heavy distress had, at times, followed me on this lonely journey; through these challenges, I was shown mercy and kept safe. Now, sitting down with friends, my mind was focused on the Lord, waiting for his guidance. In infinite love, he softened my heart into humble repentance and renewed my strength to move forward. It became a time of heavenly refreshment in a silent gathering.
The next Day I came to New-Garden week-day Meeting, in which I sat with Bowedness of Spirit; and, being baptized into a Feeling of the State of some present, the Lord gave us a heart-tendering Season; to his Name be the Praise.
The next day I came to New-Garden weekday meeting, where I sat with humility in my spirit. Feeling connected to the state of some present, we experienced a deeply touching moment; praise be to his name.
I passed on, and was at Nottingham Monthly-meeting; and at a Meeting at Little-Britain on First-day: And in the Afternoon several Friends came to the House where I lodged, and we had a little Afternoon-meeting; and, through the humbling Power of Truth, I had to admire the Loving-kindness of the Lord manifested to us![Pg 130]
I moved on and attended the Nottingham Monthly meeting, and then a meeting at Little-Britain on Sunday. In the afternoon, several friends came to the place where I was staying, and we had a small afternoon meeting. Through the humbling power of Truth, I couldn't help but admire the Lord's loving kindness shown to us![Pg 130]
On the twenty-sixth Day, I crossed Susquehannah; and coming amongst People in outward Ease and Greatness, chiefly on the Labour of Slaves, my Heart was much affected; and, in awful Retiredness, my Mind was gathered inward to the Lord, being humbly engaged that in true Resignation I might receive Instruction from him, respecting my Duty amongst this People.
On the twenty-sixth day, I crossed Susquehannah; and as I came among people living in apparent comfort and wealth, mostly thanks to the hard work of slaves, my heart was deeply moved. In a state of quiet reflection, I turned inward to the Lord, earnestly seeking guidance on my responsibilities towards these people.
Though travelling on Foot was wearisome to my Body; yet thus travelling was agreeable to the State of my Mind.
Though walking was tiring for my body, it was enjoyable for my state of mind.
I went gently on, being weakly; and was covered with Sorrow and Heaviness, on Account of the spreading prevailing Spirit of this World, introducing Customs grievous and oppressive on one Hand, and cherishing Pride and Wantonness on the other. In this lonely Walk, and State of Abasement and Humiliation, the State of the Church in these Parts was opened before me; and I may truly say with the Prophet, "I was bowed down at the hearing of it; I was dismayed at the seeing of it." Under this Exercise, I attended the Quarterly-meeting at Gunpowder; and, in Bowedness of Spirit, I had to open, with much Plainness, what I felt respecting Friends living in Fullness, on the Labours of the poor oppressed Negroes; and that Promise of the Most High was now revived: "I will gather all Nations and Tongues; and they shall come and see my Glory."—Here the Sufferings of Christ, and his tasting Death for every Man, and the Travels, Sufferings, and Martyrdoms, of the Apostles and primitive Christians, in labouring for the Conversion of the Gentiles, were livingly revived in me; and, according to the Measure of Strength afforded, I laboured in some Tenderness of Spirit, being deeply affected amongst them: And thus the Difference, between the present Treatment which these Gentiles, the Negroes, receive at our Hands, and the Labours of the primitive Christians for the Conversion of the Gentiles was pressed home, and the Power of Truth came over us; under a Feeling of which, my Mind was united to a tender-hearted People in those Parts; and the Meeting concluded in a Sense of God's Goodness toward his humble dependent Children.[Pg 131]
I moved on slowly, feeling weak, and was overwhelmed with sorrow and heaviness because of the widespread spirit of this world, which brought about harsh and oppressive customs on one hand while promoting pride and indulgence on the other. During this lonely journey, in a state of humiliation, I was shown the condition of the Church in this area; and I can truly say, like the Prophet, "I was crushed by what I heard; I was alarmed by what I saw." While grappling with these feelings, I attended the quarterly meeting at Gunpowder; and with a humble spirit, I needed to express, very plainly, what I felt about how Friends were living in comfort while ignoring the struggles of the impoverished Negroes. This also reminded me of the promise from the Most High: "I will gather all Nations and Tongues; and they shall come and see my Glory." Here, the sufferings of Christ, His sacrifice for every person, and the hardships, sufferings, and martyrdoms of the Apostles and early Christians as they worked to convert the Gentiles were powerfully awakened in me. According to the strength I was given, I worked with a gentle spirit, feeling deeply moved among them: thus, I emphasized the stark contrast between the treatment that these Gentiles, the Negroes, receive from us and the efforts of the early Christians for the conversion of the Gentiles. The power of truth enveloped us; in that atmosphere, my mind connected with a compassionate community in those areas, and the meeting ended with a sense of God's goodness towards His humble, dependent children.[Pg 131]
The next Day was a general Meeting for Worship, much crouded; in which I was deeply engaged in inward Cries to the Lord for Help, that I might stand wholly resigned, and move only as he might be pleased to lead me: And I was mercifully helped to labour honestly and fervently amongst them, in which I found inward Peace; and the Sincere were comforted.
The next day was a big gathering for worship, and it was very crowded. I was deeply involved in silent prayers to the Lord for help, asking to be completely open and to only act as He would guide me. I was gratefully helped to work honestly and passionately among them, which brought me inner peace, and the sincere folks were comforted.
From hence I turned toward Pipe-Creek, and passed on to the Red-Lands; and had several Meetings amongst Friends in those Parts. My Heart was often tenderly affected, under a Sense of the Lord's Goodness, in sanctifying my Troubles and Exercises, turning them to my Comfort, and, I believe, to the Benefit of many others; for, I may say, with Thankfulness, that in this Visit, it appeared like a fresh tendering Visitation in most Places.
From there, I headed toward Pipe-Creek and then moved on to the Red-Lands; I had several meetings with Friends in those areas. My heart was often deeply touched by the Lord's goodness, as He used my troubles and challenges to bring me comfort and, I believe, to help many others; for I can say with gratitude that during this visit, it felt like a fresh, gentle visitation in most places.
I passed on to the western Quarterly-meeting in Pennsylvania; during the several Days of this Meeting, I was mercifully preserved in an inward feeling after the Mind of Truth, and my publick Labours tended to my Humiliation, with which I was content: And, after the Quarterly-meeting of Worship ended, I felt Drawings to go to the Women's Meeting of Business; which was very full: And here the Humility of Jesus Christ, as a Pattern for us to walk by, was livingly opened before me; and in treating on it my Heart was enlarged; and it was a baptizing Time. From hence I went on; and was at Meetings at Concord, Middletown, Providence, and Haddonfield, and so Home; where I found my Family well. A sense of the Lord's merciful Preservation, in this my Journey, excites reverent Thankfulness to him.
I moved on to the western Quarterly Meeting in Pennsylvania; during the several days of the meeting, I was thankfully kept in a deep sense of truth, and my public efforts led to my humility, which I accepted. After the Quarterly Meeting of Worship wrapped up, I felt drawn to attend the Women's Business Meeting, which was very well attended. Here, the humility of Jesus Christ, as a model for us to follow, became vibrantly clear to me; discussing it opened my heart, and it felt like a time of deep spiritual renewal. From there, I continued on and attended meetings in Concord, Middletown, Providence, and Haddonfield, and then returned home, where I found my family doing well. A sense of the Lord's merciful care during my journey fills me with deep gratitude.
On the second Day of the ninth Month, 1767, with the Unity of Friends, I set off on a Visit to Friends in the upper Part of Berks and Philadelphia Counties; was at eleven Meetings in about two Weeks; and have renewed Cause to bow in Reverence before the Lord, who, by the powerful Extendings of his humbling Goodness, opened my Way amongst Friends, and made the Meetings (I trust) profitable to us. And, the Winter following, I joined Friends on a Visit to Friends Families, in some[Pg 132] Part of our Meeting; in which Exercise, the pure Influence of divine Love made our Visits reviving.
On the second day of the ninth month, 1767, with the support of Friends, I set out to visit Friends in the upper part of Berks and Philadelphia Counties. I attended eleven meetings over about two weeks and once again have reason to bow in gratitude before the Lord, who, through the powerful extensions of His humbling goodness, opened my path among Friends and made the meetings (I hope) beneficial for us. Then, the following winter, I joined Friends on a visit to some families in our Meeting; during this experience, the pure influence of divine love made our visits uplifting.
On the fifth Day of the fifth Month, 1768, I left Home under the humbling Hand of the Lord, having obtained a Certificate, in order to visit some Meetings in Maryland; and to proceed without a Horse looked clearest to me. I was at the Quarterly-meetings at Philadelphia and Concord; and then went on to Chester-River; and, crossing the Bay with Friends, was at the Yearly-meeting at West-River; thence back to Chester-River; and, taking a few Meetings in my Way, proceeded Home. It was a Journey of much inward Waiting; and, as my Eye was to the Lord, Way was, several Times, opened to my humbling Admiration, when Things had appeared very difficult.
On the fifth day of the fifth month in 1768, I left home feeling humbled by the Lord's hand, having received a certificate to visit some meetings in Maryland. It seemed clearest to me to travel without a horse. I attended the quarterly meetings in Philadelphia and Concord; then I went on to Chester-River; after crossing the bay with friends, I was at the yearly meeting at West-River; from there, I returned to Chester-River; and, stopping at a few meetings on my way, I headed home. It was a journey filled with a lot of inner reflection; as my focus was on the Lord, paths were opened to my humble amazement when things seemed very challenging.
In my Return, I felt a Relief of Mind, very comfortable to me; having, through divine Help, laboured in much Plainness, both with Friends selected, and in the more publick Meetings; so that (I trust) the pure Witness, in many Minds, was reached.
In my return, I felt a great sense of relief, which was very comforting to me; having, with divine help, worked in much straightforwardness, both with chosen friends and in more public meetings; so that (I hope) the true witness was reached in many minds.
The eleventh Day of the sixth Month, 1769. Sundry Cases have happened, of late Years, within the Limits of our Monthly-meeting, respecting that of exercising pure Righteousness toward the Negroes; in which I have lived under a Labour of Heart, that Equity might be steadily kept to. On this Account, I have had some close Exercises amongst Friends; in which, I may thankfully say, I find Peace: And, as my Meditations have been on universal Love, my own Conduct in Time past became of late very grievous to me.
The eleventh day of the sixth month, 1769. Recently, there have been several situations within our Monthly Meeting regarding the fair treatment of Black individuals; this has weighed heavily on my heart, and I've been concerned about maintaining fairness. Because of this, I've had some deep discussions with Friends, and I’m grateful to say that I’ve found peace. As I've reflected on universal love, I've become very troubled by my own past behavior.
As Persons, setting Negroes free in our Province, are bound by Law to maintain them, in case they have Need of Relief, some, who scrupled keeping Slaves for Term of Life, in the Time of my Youth, were wont to detain their young Negroes in their Service till thirty Years of Age, without Wages, on that Account; and with this Custom I so far agreed, that I, being joined to another Friend, in executing the Will of a deceased Friend, once sold a Negro Lad till he might attain the Age of thirty Years, and applied the Money to the Use of the Estate.[Pg 133]
As individuals, when we set Black people free in our area, the law requires us to support them if they need help. Some people, who had concerns about owning slaves for life when I was young, would keep their young Black workers in their service without pay until they turned thirty. I somewhat agreed with this practice; in fact, when I partnered with a friend to carry out the will of another deceased friend, I once sold a young Black boy until he reached the age of thirty and used the money for the estate. [Pg 133]
With Abasement of Heart, I may now say, that sometimes, as I have sat in a Meeting, with my Heart exercised toward that awful Being, who respecteth not Persons nor Colours, and have looked upon this Lad, I have felt that all was not clear in my Mind respecting him; and as I have attended to this Exercise, and fervently sought the Lord, it hath appeared to me, that I should make some Restitution, but in what Way I saw not till lately; when, being under some Concern that I may be resigned to go on a Visit to some Part of the West-Indies, and under close Engagement of Spirit, seeking to the Lord for Counsel herein, that of my joining in the Sale aforesaid, came heavily upon me; and my Mind, for a Time, was covered with Darkness and Sorrow; and, under this sore Affliction, my Heart was softened to receive Instruction: And here I first saw, that, as I had been one of the two Executors, who had sold this Lad nine Years longer than is common for our own Children to serve, so I should now offer a Part of my Substance to redeem the last Half of that nine Years; but, as the Time was not yet come, I executed a Bond, binding me and my Executors to pay to the Man, he was sold to, what, to candid Men, might appear equitable for the last four Years and a Half of his Time, in case the said Youth should be living, and in a Condition likely to provide comfortably for himself.
With humility, I can now say that sometimes, while I've sat in a meeting with my heart focused on that awesome Being who doesn’t favor people based on status or race, and have looked at this young man, I've felt unsure about my thoughts regarding him. As I’ve reflected on this feeling and earnestly sought guidance from the Lord, it seemed to me that I needed to make some restitution, though I didn’t see how until recently. When I was feeling compelled to visit some part of the West Indies and was deeply engaged in seeking the Lord for direction, the thought of my involvement in the previous sale weighed heavily on me. For a time, I was overcome with darkness and sorrow, and during this painful experience, my heart softened to receive guidance. It was here that I first realized that since I had been one of the two executors who had sold this young man to serve for nine years longer than is typical for our own children, I should now offer part of my resources to free him from the last half of those nine years. However, since the time hadn’t come yet, I executed a bond, committing myself and my executors to pay the man he was sold to what reasonable people might find fair for the last four and a half years of his service, should he still be alive and capable of taking care of himself.
The ninth Day of the tenth Month, 1769. My Heart hath often been deeply afflicted under a Feeling I have had, that the Standard of pure Righteousness is not lifted up to the People by us, as a Society, in that Clearness which it might have been, had we been so faithful to the Teachings of Christ as we ought to have been: And, as my Mind hath been inward to the Lord, the Purity of Christ's Government hath been opened in my Understanding; and, under this Exercise, that of Friends being active in civil Society, in putting Laws in force which are not agreeable to the Purity of Righteousness, hath, for several Years, been an increasing Burthen upon me; having felt, in the Openings of universal Love, that where a People, convinced of the Truth of the inward Teachings of Christ, are active in putting Laws in Execution which[Pg 134] are not consistent with pure Wisdom, it hath a necessary Tendency to bring Dimness over their Minds: And, as my Heart hath been thus exercised, and a tender Sympathy in me toward my Fellow-members, I have, within a few Months past, in several Meetings for Discipline, expressed my Concern on this Subject.
The ninth day of the tenth month, 1769. My heart has often been deeply troubled by a sense that our Society is not presenting the standard of pure righteousness to the people with the clarity it could have if we had been more faithful to the teachings of Christ. As I have sought the Lord, I have gained a deeper understanding of the purity of Christ's governance. This has led to a growing burden over the past several years regarding Friends' involvement in civil society, enforcing laws that do not align with pure righteousness. I have felt, through the insights of universal love, that when a group convinced of the truth in Christ’s inward teachings actively enforces laws that are not in harmony with pure wisdom, it inevitably dims their understanding. As my heart has been exercised in this matter, I have developed a deep sympathy for my fellow members, and in the last few months, I have voiced my concerns about this issue in several meetings for discipline.
CHAPTER X
His preparing to visit Friends in England—His embarking at Chester, in Company with Samuel Emlen, in a Ship bound to London—His deep Exercise, in observing the Difficulties and Hardships the common Sailors are exposed to—Considerations on the Dangers to which Youth are exposed, in being trained to a sea-faring Life; and its Inconsistency with a pious Education—His Thoughts in a Storm at Sea: With many instructive Contemplations on the Voyage—And his Arrival at London
His preparations to visit friends in England—His departure from Chester, with Samuel Emlen, on a ship going to London—His deep thoughts on the challenges and hardships faced by ordinary sailors—Reflections on the dangers young people encounter when training for a life at sea, and how it clashes with a religious upbringing—His thoughts during a storm at sea, filled with many valuable lessons from the voyage—And his arrival in London
Having been some Time under a religious Concern to prepare for crossing the Seas, in order to visit Friends in the northern Parts of England, and more particularly Yorkshire; after weighty Consideration, I thought it expedient to inform Friends, at our Monthly-meeting at Burlington, of it; who, having Unity with me therein, gave me a Certificate; and I afterward communicated the same to our Quarterly-meeting, and they likewise certified their Concurrence therewith. Some Time after which, at the general Spring-meeting of Ministers and Elders, I thought it my Duty to acquaint them of the religious Exercise which attended my Mind; with which they likewise signified their Unity by a Certificate, dated the twenty-fourth Day of the third Month, 1772, directed to Friends in Great-Britain.
Having spent some time feeling a religious responsibility to prepare for crossing the seas to visit friends in the northern parts of England, especially Yorkshire, I decided it would be best to inform friends at our monthly meeting in Burlington. They agreed with me and provided a certificate. I then shared this with our quarterly meeting, and they also confirmed their support. Some time later, at the general spring meeting of ministers and elders, I felt it was my duty to share the religious intentions that were on my mind. They too expressed their agreement with a certificate dated the twenty-fourth day of the third month, 1772, directed to friends in Great-Britain.
In the fourth Month following, I thought the Time was come for me to make some Enquiry for a suitable Conveyance; being apprehensive that, as my Concern was principally toward the northern Parts of England, it would be most proper to go in a Vessel bound to Liverpool or Whitehaven: And, while I was at Philadelphia, deliberating on this Occasion, I was informed, that my beloved Friend, Samuel Emlen, jun., intending to go to London, and having taken a Passage for himself in the Cabbin of a Ship, called Mary and Elizabeth, of which[Pg 136] James Sparks was Master, and John Head, of the City of Philadelphia, one of the Owners; and I feeling a Draught in my Mind toward the Steerage of the same Ship, went first and opened to Samuel the Feeling I had concerning it.
In the fourth month after, I thought it was time for me to find a suitable ride, knowing that since I was mainly focused on the northern parts of England, it would make the most sense to travel on a ship headed to Liverpool or Whitehaven. While I was in Philadelphia, considering this, I learned that my dear friend, Samuel Emlen, jun., was planning to go to London and had booked a spot for himself in the cabin of a ship called Mary and Elizabeth, which was captained by James Sparks, and owned by John Head from the city of Philadelphia. Feeling a pull in my mind to go in the steerage of that same ship, I first approached Samuel to share my feelings about it.
My beloved Friend appeared glad that I had Thoughts of going in the Vessel with him, though my Prospect was toward the Steerage; and he, offering to go with me, we went on board, first in the Cabbin, a commodious Room, and then into the Steerage; where we sat down on a Chest, the Sailors being busy about us: Then the Owner of the Ship came, and sat down with us.
My dear friend seemed happy that I was thinking about going on the ship with him, even though I was looking towards the steerage. He offered to join me, so we went on board, starting in the cabin, a comfortable room, and then moved into the steerage, where we sat down on a trunk while the sailors worked around us. Then, the ship's owner came and sat down with us.
Here my Mind was turned toward Christ, the heavenly Counsellor; and I feeling, at this Time, my own Will subjected, my Heart was contrite before him.
Here, my mind was focused on Christ, the heavenly Counselor; and I, at that moment, felt my own will surrendered, my heart was remorseful before him.
A Motion was made, by the Owner, to go and sit in the Cabbin, as a Place more retired; but I felt easy to leave the Ship, and made no Agreement as to a Passage in her; but told the Owner, if I took a Passage in the Ship, I believed it would be in the Steerage; but did not say much as to my Exercise in that Case.
A motion was made by the owner to go sit in the cabin since it was a more private place; however, I felt okay about leaving the ship and didn’t make any arrangements for a passage on it. I told the owner that if I did take a passage on the ship, I thought it would be in the steerage, but I didn’t say much about my plans in that case.
I went to my Lodgings, and soon after went to Bed, and my Mind was under a deep Exercise before the Lord; whose helping Hand was manifested to me as I slept that Night, and his Love strengthened my Heart. In the Morning I went with two Friends on board the Vessel again; and, after a short Time spent therein, I went, with Samuel Emlen, to the House of the Owner; to whom, in the Hearing of Samuel only, I opened my Exercise, in relation to a Scruple with regard to a Passage in the Cabbin.
I went back to my place and soon went to bed, my mind deeply focused on the Lord. His helping hand was clear to me as I slept that night, and His love lifted my spirits. In the morning, I went back on board the ship with two friends, and after a little while, I went with Samuel Emlen to the owner's house. There, only in front of Samuel, I shared my concerns about a particular issue regarding a section in the cabin.
After this I agreed for a Passage in the Steerage; and, hearing in Town that Joseph White had a Desire to see me, I felt the Reviving of a Desire to see him, and went then to his House, and next Day Home; where I tarried two Nights; and then, early in the Morning, I parted with my Family, under a Sense of the humbling Hand of God upon me; and going to Philadelphia, had Opportunity with several of my beloved Friends; who appeared to be concerned for me, on Account of the unpleasant Situation of that Part of the Vessel where I was likely to lodge.[Pg 137]
After this, I arranged for a spot in the steerage. I heard in town that Joseph White wanted to see me, which made me want to see him too. So, I went to his house and the next day headed home, where I stayed for two nights. Then, early in the morning, I said goodbye to my family, feeling the humbling presence of God upon me. After that, I went to Philadelphia and had the chance to meet with several of my close friends, who seemed worried about me because of the uncomfortable situation in that part of the ship where I would be staying.[Pg 137]
Having stayed two Nights in Philadelphia, I went the next Day to Derby Monthly-meeting; where, through the Strength of divine Love, my Heart was enlarged toward the Youth then present; under which I was helped to labour in some Tenderness of Spirit. Then, lodging at William Horne's, I, with one Friend, went to Chester; where, meeting with Samuel Emlen, we went on board, the first Day of the fifth Month, 1772; and, as I sat down alone, on a Seat on the Deck, I felt a satisfactory Evidence that my Proceedings were not in my own Will, but under the Power of the Cross of Christ.
Having spent two nights in Philadelphia, I went the next day to the Derby Monthly Meeting, where, through the strength of divine love, my heart was opened toward the youth present. This allowed me to engage with them in a spirit of tenderness. Afterward, I stayed at William Horne's and, along with a friend, traveled to Chester. There, I met with Samuel Emlen, and on the first day of the fifth month in 1772, as I sat alone on a seat on the deck, I felt a confirmation that my actions were not driven by my own will, but by the power of the cross of Christ.
Seventh Day of the fifth Month. We have had rough Weather mostly since I came on board; and the Passengers, James Reynolds, John Till-Adams, Sarah Logan and her hired Maid, and John Bispham, were all sea-sick, more or less, at Times; from which Sickness, through the tender Mercies of my heavenly Father, I have been preserved; my Afflictions now being of another Kind.
Seventh Day of the fifth Month. The weather has been rough for most of my time on board, and the passengers, James Reynolds, John Till-Adams, Sarah Logan and her hired maid, and John Bispham, have all been seasick at various times. Thankfully, thanks to the kindness of my heavenly Father, I have avoided that sickness; my struggles now come from a different source.
There appeared an Openness in the Minds of the Master of the Ship and of the Cabbin-Passengers toward me: We were often together on the Deck, and sometimes in the Cabbin.
There was a sense of openness in the minds of the ship's captain and the cabin passengers toward me. We often spent time together on the deck, and sometimes in the cabin.
My Mind, through the merciful Help of the Lord, hath been preserved in a good Degree, watchful and inward; and I have, this Day, great Cause to be thankful, in that I remain to feel Quietness of Mind.
My mind, with the gracious help of the Lord, has been kept in a good place, alert and reflective; and today, I have many reasons to be thankful, as I continue to feel a sense of peace.
As my lodging in the Steerage, now near a Week, hath afforded me sundry Opportunities of seeing, hearing, and feeling, with respect to the Life and Spirit of many poor Sailors, an inward Exercise of Soul hath attended me, in regard to placing our Children and Youth where they may be likely to be exampled and instructed in the pure Fear of the Lord; and I, being much amongst the Seamen, have, from a Motion of Love, sundry Times taken Opportunities, with one of them at a Time alone, and in a free Conversation laboured to turn their Minds toward the Fear of the Lord: And this Day we had a Meeting in the Cabbin, where my Heart was contrite under a Feeling of divine Love.[Pg 138]
Since my stay in the steerage, which has lasted nearly a week, I’ve had many chances to observe, listen to, and experience the lives and spirits of numerous poor sailors. This has prompted a deep reflection within me about placing our children and youth where they can be guided and taught in the true fear of the Lord. Being around the seamen a lot, I have, motivated by love, taken many opportunities to speak with them one-on-one, engaging in open conversations to help shift their focus toward the fear of the Lord. Today, we held a meeting in the cabin, and my heart felt humbled by a sense of divine love.[Pg 138]
Now, concerning Lads being trained up as Seamen; I believe a Communication from one Part of the World to some other Parts of it, by Sea, is, at Times, consistent with the Will of our heavenly Father; and to educate some Youth in the Practice of sailing, I believe, may be right: But how lamentable is the present Corruption of the World! how impure are the Channels through which Trade hath a Conveyance! how great is that Danger, to which poor Lads are now exposed, when placed on shipboard to learn the Art of sailing!
Now, regarding young men being trained as sailors; I think that communicating from one part of the world to other parts by sea, at times, aligns with the will of our heavenly Father; and educating some youth in sailing may be a good idea. But how unfortunate is the current corruption of the world! How tainted are the avenues through which trade operates! What a significant danger these young men face when they are put on ships to learn the art of sailing!
O! that all may take Heed and beware of Covetousness! O that all may learn of Christ, who was meek and low of Heart! Then, in faithfully following him, he will teach us to be content with Food and Raiment, without respect to the Customs or Honours of this World.
O! that everyone may pay attention and be cautious of greed! O that everyone may learn from Christ, who was humble and gentle! Then, by faithfully following him, he will teach us to be content with food and clothing, regardless of the customs or honors of this world.
Men, thus redeemed, will feel a tender Concern for their Fellow-creatures, and a Desire that those in the lowest Stations may be assisted and encouraged; and, where Owners of Ships attain to the perfect Law of Liberty, and are Doers of the Word, these will be blessed in their Deeds.
Men, having been redeemed, will feel a caring concern for their fellow human beings and a desire to help and uplift those in the lowest positions; and when shipowners embrace the true law of freedom and act on it, they will be blessed in their actions.
Rising to work in the Night is not commonly pleasant in any case; but, in dark rainy Nights, it is very disagreeable, even though each Man were furnished with all Conveniences: But, if Men must go out at Midnight, to help manage the Ship in the Rain, and, having small Room to sleep and lay their Garments in, are often beset to furnish themselves for the Watch, their Garments or something relating to their Business being wanting and not easily found, when, from the Urgency occasioned by high Winds, they are hastened and called up suddenly, here is a Trial of Patience on the poor Sailors and the poor Lads their Companions.
Waking up to work at night is rarely enjoyable; however, during dark, rainy nights, it’s especially unpleasant, even if everyone has all the necessary equipment. But if people have to go out at midnight to help manage the ship in the rain, and there’s little space to sleep and store their clothes, they often struggle to get ready for their watch. Their clothes or something related to their duties may be missing and hard to find, especially when the urgency caused by strong winds forces them to get up quickly. This situation tests the patience of the poor sailors and their companions.
If, after they have been on Deck several Hours in the Night, and come down into the Steerage soaking wet, and are so close stowed that proper Convenience for change of Garment is not easily come at, but for Want of proper Room, their wet Garments are thrown in Heaps, and sometimes, through much crouding, are trodden under Foot in going to their Lodgings and getting out of[Pg 139] them, and they have great Difficulties, at Times, each one to find his own, here are Trials on the poor Sailors.
If they've been on deck for several hours at night and come down to the steerage soaking wet, crammed together so tightly that there's no good space to change clothes, their wet clothes just end up in piles. Sometimes, because it's so crowded, they get trampled on while trying to get to their sleeping areas or retrieve their things. This makes it really difficult for each sailor to find their own clothes, which creates a tough situation for them.
Now, as I have been with them in my Lodge, my Heart hath often yearned for them, and tender Desires have been raised in me, that all Owners and Masters of Vessels may dwell in the Love of God, and therein act uprightly; and, by seeking less for Gain, and looking carefully to their Ways, may earnestly labour to remove all Cause of Provocation from the poor Seamen, either to fret or use Excess of Strong-drink; for, indeed, the poor Creatures, at Times, in the Wet and Cold, seem to apply to Strong-drink to supply the Want of other Convenience.
Now, as I have spent time with them in my Lodge, I often feel a deep compassion for them, and I have a strong desire for all shipowners and captains to live in God’s love and act with integrity. By focusing less on profits and being more mindful of their actions, they can work hard to eliminate any reasons for the poor sailors to become frustrated or resort to excessive drinking. Indeed, during tough times, when they are wet and cold, these unfortunate souls often turn to alcohol to make up for what they lack.
Great Reformation in the World is wanting; and the Necessity of it, amongst these who do Business on great Waters, hath, at this Time, been abundantly opened before me.
Great change in the world is needed; and the need for it, among those who work on the open seas, has been clearly revealed to me at this time.
The eighth Day of the fifth Month. This Morning the Clouds gathered, the Wind blew strong from South-eastward, and before Noon increased to that Degree that Sailing appeared dangerous. The Seamen then bound up some of their Sails, and took down some; and, the Storm increasing, they put the Dead-lights, so called, into the Cabbin-Windows, and lighted a Lamp as at Night.
The eighth day of the fifth month. This morning, the clouds gathered, and the wind blew strongly from the southeast. By noon, it had picked up enough that sailing looked risky. The sailors then secured some of their sails and took down others. As the storm got worse, they put the deadlights, as they’re called, into the cabin windows and lit a lamp as if it were night.
The Wind now blew vehemently, and the Sea wrought to that Degree, that an awful Seriousness prevailed in the Cabbin, in which I spent, I believe, about seventeen Hours; for I believed the poor wet toiling Seamen had Need of all the Room in the crouded Steerage, and the Cabbin-Passengers had given me frequent Invitations.
The wind was now blowing fiercely, and the sea was so rough that a serious atmosphere filled the cabin, where I stayed for what I think was about seventeen hours; I figured the drenched, hardworking sailors needed all the space in the cramped steerage, and the cabin passengers had often invited me to join them.
They ceased now from Sailing, and put the Vessel in the Posture called, lying-to.
They stopped sailing and put the vessel in a position called lying-to.
My Mind, in this Tempest, through the gracious Assistance of the Lord, was preserved in a good Degree of Resignation; and I felt, at Times, a few Words in his Love to my Ship-mates, in regard to the All-sufficiency of him who formed the great Deep, and whose Care is so extensive, that a Sparrow falls not without his Notice; and thus, in a tender Frame of Mind, spake to them of the Necessity of our yielding, in true Obedience, to the[Pg 140] Instructions of our heavenly Father, who sometimes, through Adversities, intendeth our Refinement.
My mind, in this storm, with the gracious help of the Lord, remained fairly calm and accepting. At times, I felt inspired to share a few words of encouragement with my shipmates about the all-sufficiency of the one who created the vast ocean, and whose care is so thorough that not even a sparrow falls without his notice. In this gentle state of mind, I spoke to them about the importance of submitting, in true obedience, to the[Pg 140] guidance of our heavenly Father, who sometimes uses hardships to refine us.
About eleven at Night I went out on the Deck, when the Sea wrought exceedingly, and the high-foaming Waves, all round about, had in some Sort the Appearance of Fire, but did not give much, if any, Light.
About eleven at night, I went out on the deck, when the sea was choppy, and the high, frothy waves all around looked somewhat like fire, but didn’t really give off much light, if any.
The Sailor, then at the Helm, said he lately saw a Corposant at the Head of the Mast.
The sailor, now at the helm, said he recently saw a Corposant at the top of the mast.
About this Time I observed the Master of the Ship ordered the Carpenter to keep on the Deck; and, though he said little, I apprehended his Care was, that the Carpenter, with his axe, might be in Readiness, in case of any Extremity.
About this time, I noticed the captain of the ship telling the carpenter to stay on the deck. Although he didn’t say much, I sensed that he wanted the carpenter to be ready with his axe in case of an emergency.
Soon after this, the Vehemency of the Wind abated; and, before Morning, they again put the Ship under Sail.
Soon after this, the intensity of the wind died down; and by morning, they had set the ship sailing again.
The tenth Day of the Month, and first of the Week, it being fine Weather, we had a Meeting in the Cabbin, at which most of the Seamen were present: This Meeting to me was a strengthening Time.
The tenth day of the month and the first of the week, with great weather, we had a meeting in the cabin, where most of the crew were present. This meeting felt like a time of strengthening for me.
The thirteenth Day of the Month. As I continue to lodge in the Steerage, I feel an Openness this Morning, to express something farther of the State of my Mind, in Respect to poor Lads bound Apprentice to learn the Art of Sailing. As I believe Sailing is of some Use in the World, a Labour of Soul attends me, that the pure Counsel of Truth may be humbly waited for in this Case, by all concerned in the Business of the Seas.
The thirteenth day of the month. As I keep staying in the steerage, I feel inspired this morning to share more about my thoughts regarding young boys apprenticing to learn the art of sailing. Since I believe sailing is valuable in the world, I feel a deep responsibility for everyone involved in the business of the seas to seek honest and true guidance in this matter.
A pious Father, whose Mind is exercised for the everlasting Welfare of his Child, may not, with a peaceable Mind, place him out to an Employment amongst a People, whose common Course of Life is manifestly corrupt and prophane; so great is the present Defect amongst Seafaring Men, in regard to Piety and Virtue: And, through an abundant Traffic, and many Ships of War, so many People are employed on the Sea, that this Subject of placing Lads to the Employment appears very weighty.
A devout father, who is deeply concerned for his child's lifelong well-being, cannot calmly send him to work among people whose daily lives are clearly corrupt and immoral. The lack of piety and virtue among sailors today is alarming; with so much trade and numerous warships, a lot of people are working at sea, making the issue of placing young men in these jobs quite serious.
Prophane Examples are very corrupting, and very forcible. And as my Mind, Day after Day, and Night after Night, hath been affected with a sympathizing Tenderness toward poor Children, put to the Employment[Pg 141] of Sailors, I have sometimes had weighty Conversation with the Sailors in the Steerage, who were mostly respectful to me, and more and more so the longer I was with them: They mostly appeared to take kindly what I said to them; but their Minds have appeared to be so deeply impressed with that almost universal Depravity amongst Sailors, that the poor Creatures, in their Answers to me on this Subject, have revived in my Remembrance that of the degenerate Jews a little before the Captivity, as repeated by Jeremiah the Prophet, "There is no Hope."
Profane examples are very corrupting and quite powerful. And as my mind has been affected day after day, night after night, with a sympathetic concern for the poor children forced into the work of sailors, I have often had serious conversations with the sailors in the steerage, who were mostly respectful to me, and even more so the longer I spent time with them. They generally seemed to respond positively to what I said, but their minds appeared to be so deeply influenced by the nearly universal depravity among sailors that, in their responses to me on this topic, they reminded me of the degenerate Jews shortly before the Captivity, as mentioned by Jeremiah the Prophet: "There is no hope."
Now, under this Exercise, a Sense of the Desire of outward Gain prevailing amongst us hath felt grievous, and a strong Call to the professed Followers of Christ hath been raised in me, that all may take Heed, lest, through loving this present World, they be found in a continued Neglect of Duty, with respect to a faithful Labour for a Reformation.
Now, in this exercise, I've noticed a troubling sense of desire for material gain among us, and I feel a strong urge to remind those who follow Christ to pay attention. We must be careful not to let our love for this current world lead us to neglect our responsibilities in working faithfully for change.
Silence, as to every Motion proceeding from the Love of Money, and an humble Waiting upon God to know his Will concerning us, has now appeared necessary: He alone is able to strengthen us to dig deep, to remove all which lies between us and the safe Foundation, and so direct us in our outward Employments, that pure universal Love may shine forth in our Proceedings.
Silence, regarding every action driven by the love of money, and a humble waiting on God to understand His will for us, has now become essential: He alone can empower us to dig deep, to clear away everything that stands between us and a solid foundation, and to guide us in our outward tasks so that pure, universal love can shine through in what we do.
Desires arising from the Spirit of Truth are pure Desires; and when a Mind, divinely opened toward a young Generation, is made sensible of corrupting Examples, powerfully working, and extensively spreading amongst them, how moving is the Prospect!
Desires that come from the Spirit of Truth are pure desires; and when a mind, divinely opened to a young generation, becomes aware of corrupting examples that are powerfully influencing and widely spreading among them, it’s a really moving sight!
The sixteenth Day of the Month. Wind for several Days past often high, what the Sailors call squally, rough Sea and frequent Rains. This last Night a very trying Night to the poor Seamen: The Water, chief Part of the Night, running over the main Deck, and sometimes Breaking-waves came on the Quarter-deck. The latter Part of the Night, as I lay in Bed, my Mind was humbled under the Power of divine Love; and Resignedness to the great Creator of the Earth and Seas, renewedly wrought in me; whose fatherly Care over his Children[Pg 142] felt precious to my Soul: And Desires were now renewed in me, to embrace every Opportunity of being inwardly acquainted with the Hardships and Difficulties of my Fellow-creatures, and to labour in his Love for the spreading of pure universal Righteousness on the Earth. The Opportunities were frequent of hearing Conversation amongst the Sailors, in respect to the Voyages to Africa, and the Manner of bringing the deeply-oppressed Slaves into our Islands. The Thoughts of their Condition, frequently in Chains and Fetters on board the Vessels, with Hearts loaded with Grief, under the Apprehensions of miserable Slavery; my Mind was frequently opened to meditate on these Things.
The sixteenth day of the month. The wind has been high for several days, what sailors refer to as squally, with a rough sea and frequent rain. Last night was particularly tough for the poor sailors: for most of the night, water was running over the main deck, and at times, breaking waves crashed onto the quarter-deck. During the latter part of the night, while lying in bed, I felt humbled by the power of divine love; I was filled with a deep sense of acceptance towards the great Creator of the earth and seas, whose fatherly care for His children felt precious to my soul. I was inspired to seize every opportunity to connect with the hardships and challenges faced by my fellow beings, and to strive in His love for promoting pure and universal righteousness on earth. I often heard conversations among the sailors about voyages to Africa and how the severely oppressed slaves were brought to our islands. The thought of their condition, frequently in chains and restraints on board the ships, with hearts burdened by grief and the fear of dreadful slavery, weighed heavily on my mind, prompting me to meditate on these matters.
On the seventeenth Day of the Month, and first of the Week, we had a Meeting in the Cabbin; to which the Seamen generally came. My Spirit was contrite before the Lord; whose Love, at this Time, affected my Heart.
On the seventeenth day of the month and the first of the week, we had a meeting in the cabin, which most of the sailors attended. I felt humbled before the Lord, whose love deeply touched my heart at that moment.
This Afternoon I felt a tender Sympathy of Soul with my poor Wife and Family left behind; in which State, my Heart was enlarged in Desires that they may walk in that humble Obedience wherein the everlasting Father may be their Guide and Support, through all the Difficulties in this World; and a Sense of that gracious Assistance, through which my Mind hath been strengthened to take up the Cross and leave them, to travel in the Love of Truth, hath begotten Thankfulness in my Heart to our great Helper.
This afternoon, I felt a deep empathy for my poor wife and family left behind. In that moment, my heart swelled with hopes that they may stay in that humble obedience where the everlasting Father can guide and support them through all the challenges of this world. I felt grateful for the gracious help that has strengthened my mind to take up the cross and leave them behind to pursue the love of truth, filling my heart with thankfulness to our great helper.
On the twenty-fourth Day of the Month, and first of the Week, a clear pleasant Morning: And, as I sat on Deck, I felt a Reviving in my Nature; which, through much rainy Weather and high Winds, being shut up in a close unhealthy Air, was weakened.
On the twenty-fourth day of the month, and the first of the week, it was a clear and pleasant morning. As I sat on deck, I felt a renewal in my spirit; after so much rainy weather and strong winds, being stuck in a stuffy and unhealthy atmosphere had worn me down.
Several Nights of late I felt Breathing difficult; so that a little after the rising of the second Watch (which is about Midnight) I got up, and stood, I believe, near an Hour, with my Face near the Hatchway, to get the fresh Air at the small Vacancy under the Hatch-door; which is commonly shut down, partly to keep out Rain, and sometimes to keep the Breaking-waves from dashing into the Steerage.[Pg 143]
Several nights lately, I've found it hard to breathe, so shortly after the start of the second watch (around midnight), I got up and stood for about an hour with my face near the hatchway to get some fresh air from the small opening under the hatch door, which is usually kept closed to block out the rain and sometimes to stop the waves from crashing into the steerage.[Pg 143]
I may, with Thankfulness to the Father of Mercies, acknowledge, that, in my present weak State, my Mind hath been supported to bear the Affliction with Patience; and have looked at the present Dispensation as a Kindness from the great Father of Mankind, who, in this my floating Pilgrimage, is in some Degree bringing me to feel that, which many thousands of my Fellow-creatures often suffer in a greater Degree.
I can, with gratitude to the Father of Mercies, recognize that in my current weakened state, my mind has been supported to endure the hardship with patience; and I see this current situation as a kindness from the great Father of Mankind, who, during this uncertain journey, is helping me to understand what many thousands of my fellow beings often endure much more severely.
My Appetite failing, the Trial hath been the heavier; and I have felt tender Breathings in my Soul after God, the Fountain of Comfort, whose inward Help hath supplied, at Times, the Want of outward Convenience: And strong Desires have attended me, that his Family, who are acquainted with the Movings of his holy Spirit, may be so redeemed from the Love of Money, and from that Spirit in which Men seek Honour one of another, that in all Business, by Sea or Land, we may constantly keep in View the coming of his Kingdom on Earth, as it is in Heaven; and, by faithfully following this safe Guide, shew forth Examples, tending to lead out of that under which the Creation groans!
My appetite has diminished, making this trial even harder; I've felt deep longings in my soul for God, the source of comfort, whose inner support has occasionally made up for the lack of external resources. I have strong desires that his family, who understand the workings of his holy spirit, may be freed from the love of money and from the attitude where people seek honor from one another, so that in all endeavors, whether by sea or land, we can always focus on the coming of his kingdom on Earth as it is in heaven. By faithfully following this reliable guide, we can set examples that help lead others out of the struggles that the creation endures!
This Day we had a Meeting in the Cabbin; in which I was favoured in some Degree to experience the fulfilling of that Saying of the Prophet, "The Lord hath been a Strength to the Poor, a Strength to the Needy in their Distress;" for which, my Heart is bowed in Thankfulness before him!
This day we had a meeting in the cabin, where I was fortunate to experience the truth of the saying from the Prophet, "The Lord has been a strength to the poor, a strength to the needy in their distress;" for this, my heart is filled with gratitude before Him!
The twenty-eighth Day of the Month.—Wet Weather of late, small Winds inclining to Calms: Our Seamen have cast a Lead, I suppose about one hundred Fathoms, but find no Bottom: Foggy Weather this Morning.
The twenty-eighth Day of the Month.—It's been wet lately, with light winds leaning towards calm. Our sailors have dropped the lead line, I guess about one hundred fathoms, but they can't find any bottom. It was foggy this morning.
Through the Kindness of the great Preserver of Men my Mind remains quiet; and a Degree of Exercise, from Day to Day, attends me, that the pure peaceable Government of Christ may spread and prevail amongst Mankind.
Through the kindness of the great Preserver of Humanity, my mind stays calm; and I receive a level of daily exercise so that the pure, peaceful governance of Christ can spread and flourish among people.
The leading on of a young Generation in that pure Way in which the Wisdom of this World hath no Place; where Parents and Tutors, humbly waiting for the heavenly Counsellor, may example them in the Truth, as it is in[Pg 144] Jesus;—this, for several Days, hath been the Exercise of my Mind. O! how safe, how quiet, is that State, where the Soul stands in pure Obedience to the Voice of Christ, and a watchful Care is maintained not to follow the Voice of the Stranger!
The guidance of a young generation in that pure way where worldly wisdom has no place; where parents and mentors, humbly seeking divine guidance, can exemplify the truth as it is in[Pg 144] Jesus—this has been on my mind for several days. Oh! How safe and peaceful is that state, where the soul remains in pure obedience to the voice of Christ, and where there is a constant effort to not follow the voice of the stranger!
Here Christ is felt to be our Shepherd, and, under his Leading, People are brought to a Stability; and, where he doth not lead forward, we are bound, in the Bonds of pure Love, to stand still and wait upon him. In the Love of Money, and in the Wisdom of this World, Business is proposed; then the Urgency of Affairs pushes forward; nor can the Mind in this State, discern the good and perfect Will of God concerning us.
Here, Christ is seen as our Shepherd, and with His guidance, people find stability. When He doesn’t lead us forward, we are called, out of pure love, to stand still and wait for Him. In the love of money and the wisdom of this world, business is presented; then, the urgency of matters pushes us along; in this state, the mind cannot recognize the good and perfect will of God for us.
The Love of God is manifested in graciously calling us to come out of that which stands in Confusion: But, if we bow not in the Name of Jesus; if we give not up those Prospects of Gain, which, in the Wisdom of this World, are open before us, but say, in our Hearts, I must needs go on, and, in going on, I hope to keep as near to the Purity of Truth as the Business before me will admit of; here the Mind remains entangled, and the Shining of the Light of Life into the Soul is obstructed.
The Love of God is shown in His kind invitation for us to step away from what confuses us. But if we don’t submit in the Name of Jesus; if we don’t let go of those opportunities for gain that the world offers, saying in our hearts, I have to keep pushing forward, hoping to stay as close to the Truth as possible while pursuing my goals; then the mind stays trapped, and the Light of Life struggles to shine into our souls.
In an entire Subjection of our Wills the Lord graciously opens a Way for his People, where all their Wants are bounded by his Wisdom; and here we experience the Substance of what Moses the Prophet figured out in the Water of Separation, as a Purification from Sin.
In complete surrender of our wills, the Lord graciously creates a path for His people, where all their needs are guided by His wisdom; and here we experience the essence of what Moses the Prophet represented in the Water of Separation, as a cleansing from sin.
Esau is mentioned as a Child red all over, like a hairy Garment: In Esau is represented the natural Will of Man. In preparing the Water of Separation, a red Heifer, without Blemish, on which there had been no Yoke, was to be slain, and her Blood sprinkled by the Priest seven Times toward the Tabernacle of the Congregation; then her Skin, her Flesh, and all pertaining to her, were to be burnt without the Camp; and of her Ashes the Water was prepared. Thus the crucifying the old Man, or natural Will, is represented; and hence comes a Separation from that carnal Mind, which is Death.
Esau is described as a child that’s all red, like a hairy garment. In Esau, we see the natural will of man. To prepare the Water of Separation, a red heifer, without any blemishes and which had never been yoked, was to be sacrificed, and her blood sprinkled by the priest seven times toward the Tabernacle of the Congregation. Then her skin, flesh, and everything related to her were to be burned outside the camp, and from her ashes, the water was prepared. This represents the act of crucifying the old man or natural will, leading to a separation from that carnal mind, which is death.
"He who toucheth the dead Body of a Man, and purifieth not himself with the Water of Separation, he[Pg 145] defileth the Tabernacle of the Lord; he is unclean." Numb. xix. 13.
"He who touches the dead body of a person and does not purify himself with the Water of Separation, he[Pg 145] defiles the Tabernacle of the Lord; he is unclean." Numb. xix. 13.
If any, through the Love of Gain, go forth into Business, wherein they dwell as amongst the Tombs, and touch the Bodies of those who are dead; if these, through the infinite Love of God feel the Power of the Cross of Christ to crucify them to the World, and therein learn humbly to follow the divine Leader;—here is the Judgment of this World;—here the Prince of this World is cast out.
If anyone, driven by their desire for profit, enters the business world, they live among the tombs and touch the dead; if they, through the endless love of God, experience the power of Christ's cross to detach them from worldly things and learn to humbly follow their divine leader—this is the judgment of this world; this is where the prince of this world is cast out.
The Water of Separation is felt; and, though we have been amongst the Slain, and, through the Desire of Gain, have touched the dead Body of a Man, yet, in the purifying Love of Christ, we are washed in the Water of Separation; are brought off from that Business, from that Gain, and from that Fellowship, which was not agreeable to his holy Will: And I have felt a renewed Confirmation, in the Time of this Voyage, that the Lord, in his infinite Love, is calling to his visited Children, so to give up all outward Possessions and Means of getting Treasures, that his holy Spirit may have free Course in their Hearts, and direct them in all their Proceedings.
The Water of Separation is experienced; and, even though we have been among the Dead, and, driven by the Desire for Gain, have touched the lifeless Body of a Person, still, through the cleansing Love of Christ, we are washed in the Water of Separation; we are removed from that Work, from that Gain, and from that Fellowship, which was not in line with his holy Will: And I have felt a renewed Confirmation during this Voyage, that the Lord, in his endless Love, is calling to his gathered Children, to let go of all outward Possessions and Ways of accumulating Wealth, so that his holy Spirit may work freely in their Hearts, and guide them in all their Actions.
To feel the Substance pointed at in this Figure, Man must know Death, as to his own Will.
To understand the substance represented in this figure, a person must come to terms with death in relation to their own will.
"No Man can see God, and live." This was spoken by the Almighty to Moses the Prophet, and opened by our blessed Redeemer.
"No one can see God and survive." This was said by the Almighty to Moses the Prophet, and confirmed by our blessed Redeemer.
As Death comes on our own Wills, and a new Life is formed in us, the Heart is purified and prepared to understand clearly. "Blessed are the Pure in Heart; for they shall see God." In Purity of Heart the Mind is divinely opened to behold the Nature of universal Righteousness, or the Righteousness of the Kingdom of God. "No Man hath seen the Father, save he that is of God; he hath seen the Father."
As Death approaches through our own choices, and new Life begins within us, the Heart is cleansed and ready to understand clearly. "Blessed are the Pure in Heart; for they shall see God." In Purity of Heart, the Mind is divinely opened to perceive the Nature of universal Righteousness, or the Righteousness of the Kingdom of God. "No one has seen the Father except the one who is from God; only he has seen the Father."
The natural Mind is active about the Things of this Life; and, in this natural Activity, Business is proposed, and a Will in us to go forward in it. As long as this natural Will remains unsubjected, so long there remains an Obstruction against the Clearness of divine Light operating in us; but when we love God with all our Heart,[Pg 146] and with all our Strength, then in this Love, we love our Neighbours as ourselves; and a Tenderness of Heart is felt toward all People for whom Christ died, even such who, as to outward Circumstances, may be to us as the Jews were to the Samaritans. Who is my Neighbour? See this Question answered by our Saviour, Luke x. 30.
The natural mind is focused on the things of this life; in this natural activity, business is proposed, and we have a will to move forward with it. As long as this natural will remains ungoverned, it blocks the clarity of divine light working within us. But when we love God with all our heart,[Pg 146] and with all our strength, then in this love, we also love our neighbors as ourselves; and we feel a tenderness in our hearts toward all people for whom Christ died, even those who, in terms of outward circumstances, may seem to us like the Jews were to the Samaritans. Who is my neighbor? See this question answered by our Savior in Luke x. 30.
In this Love we can say, that Jesus is the Lord; and the Reformation in our Souls is manifested in a full Reformation of our Lives, wherein all Things are new, and all Things are of God; 2 Cor. v. 18. in this the Desire of Gain is subjected.
In this love, we can say that Jesus is the Lord; and the transformation of our souls is shown in a complete transformation of our lives, where everything is new, and everything comes from God; 2 Cor. v. 18. In this, the desire for gain is put in its place.
When Employment is honestly followed in the Light of Truth, and People become diligent in Business, "fervent in Spirit, serving the Lord;" Rom. xii. 11. here the Name is opened: "This is the Name by which he shall be called, THE LORD OUR RIGHTEOUSNESS." Jerem. xxiii. 6. O! how precious is this Name! it is like Ointment poured out. The chaste Virgins are in Love with the Redeemer; and, for the promoting his peaceable Kingdom in the World, are content to endure Hardness, like good Soldiers; and are so separated in Spirit from the Desire of Riches, that in their Employments they become extensively careful to give none Offence, neither to Jews nor Heathen, nor the Church of Christ.
When work is genuinely pursued in the light of truth and people are dedicated to their tasks, "passionate in spirit, serving the Lord;" Rom. xii. 11. here the name is revealed: "This is the name by which he shall be called, THE LORD OUR RIGHTEOUSNESS." Jerem. xxiii. 6. Oh! how precious is this name! It’s like perfume poured out. The pure-hearted are in love with the Redeemer, and for the sake of advancing his peaceful kingdom in the world, they are willing to endure hardship, like good soldiers; and they are so spiritually separated from the desire for wealth that in their work, they are extremely careful not to offend anyone, neither Jews nor Gentiles, nor the church of Christ.
On the thirty-first Day of the Month, and first of the Week, we had a Meeting in the Cabbin, with near all the Ship's Company; the Whole being near thirty. In this Meeting, the Lord, in Mercy, favoured us with the Extendings of his Love.
On the thirty-first day of the month, and the first of the week, we had a meeting in the cabin, with almost all the ship's crew; the whole group being nearly thirty. In this meeting, the Lord, in His mercy, blessed us with an outpouring of His love.
The second Day of the sixth Month. Last Evening the Seamen found Bottom at about seventy Fathoms.
The second day of the sixth month. Last night, the sailors found the bottom at around seventy fathoms.
This Morning, fair Wind, and pleasant. As I sat on Deck, my Heart was overcome with the Love of Christ, and melted into Contrition before him; and, in this State, the Prospect of that Work, to which I have felt my Mind drawn when in my native Land, being in some Degree opened before me, I felt like a little Child: and my Cries were put up to my heavenly Father for Preservation, that, in a humble Dependence on him, my Soul might be[Pg 147] strengthened in his Love, and kept inwardly waiting for his Counsel.
This morning, there was a nice breeze and it felt pleasant. As I sat on deck, my heart was filled with the love of Christ and I felt deep remorse before Him; in this state, the vision of the work I’ve been drawn to back in my home country started to unfold before me. I felt like a little child: I cried out to my heavenly Father for protection, so that, relying humbly on Him, my soul might be[Pg 147] strengthened in His love and kept patiently waiting for His guidance.
This Afternoon we saw that Part of England called the Lizard.
This afternoon we saw that part of England called the Lizard.
Some Dunghill-fowls yet remained of those the Passengers took for their Sea-store; I believe about fourteen perished in the Storms at Sea, by the Waves breaking over the Quarter-deck; and a considerable Number with Sickness, at different Times. I observed the Cocks crew, coming down the Delaware, and while we were near the Land; but afterward I think I did not hear one of them crow till we came near the Land in England, when they again crowed a few Times.
Some chickens were still alive from those the passengers brought for their food at sea; I think about fourteen died in the storms at sea from the waves crashing over the quarter-deck, and a significant number fell ill at various times. I noticed the roosters crowing while we were coming down the Delaware and when we were close to land; but after that, I don't think I heard any of them crow until we got near the land in England, when they crowed a few times again.
In observing their dull Appearance at Sea, and the pining Sickness of some of them, I often remembered the Fountain of Goodness, who gave Being to all Creatures, and whose Love extends to that of caring for the Sparrows; and believe, where the Love of God is verily perfected, and the true Spirit of Government watchfully attended to, a Tenderness toward all Creatures made subject to us will be experienced, and a Care felt in us, that we do not lessen that Sweetness of Life, in the animal Creation, which the great Creator intends for them in our Government.
In watching their dull appearance at sea and the sickness some of them were experiencing, I often thought of the Fountain of Goodness, who gave life to all creatures and whose love even extends to caring for the sparrows. I believe that where God's love is truly perfected and the true spirit of governance is carefully upheld, we will feel a tenderness toward all creatures that are entrusted to us. We will also have a sense of responsibility to ensure that we don't diminish the sweetness of life in the animal kingdom, which the great Creator intends for them under our care.
The fourth Day of the Month. About Noon a Pilot came off from Dover; where my beloved Friend, Samuel Emlen, went on Shore, and thence to London; but I felt easy in staying in the Ship.
The fourth day of the month. Around noon, a pilot came out from Dover; where my dear friend, Samuel Emlen, went ashore and then headed to London; but I felt comfortable staying on the ship.
The seventh Day of the Month, and first of the Week. Clear Morning; we lay at Anchor for the Tide, and had a Parting-meeting with the Ship's Company; in which my Heart was enlarged in a fervent Concern for them, that they may come to experience Salvation through Christ. We had a Head-Wind up the Thames; lay sometimes at Anchor; saw many Ships passing, and some at Anchor near; and had large Opportunity of feeling the Spirit in which the poor bewildered Sailors too generally live.—That lamentable Degeneracy, which so much prevails on the People employed on the Seas, so affected my Heart, that I cannot easily convey the Feeling I have had to another.
The seventh day of the month and the first of the week. It was a clear morning; we anchored for the tide and had a farewell meeting with the ship's crew, during which my heart was filled with a deep concern for them, hoping they would come to know salvation through Christ. We faced a headwind up the Thames, sometimes anchoring, watching many ships pass by and some nearby at anchor, giving us a great opportunity to feel the spirit in which the struggling sailors generally live. That heartbreaking decline in the people working at sea deeply moved me, making it hard for me to express the feelings I've had to anyone else.
CHAPTER XI
His attending the Yearly-meeting in London; and, after it, proceeding towards Yorkshire, visiting several Quarterly and other Meetings in the Counties of Hertford, Warwick, Oxford, Nottingham, York, and Westmoreland; and thence again into Yorkshire, and to the City of York; with some instructive Thoughts and Observations, and Letters on divers Subjects—His hearing of the Decease of William Hunt; and some Account of him—His Sickness at York; and End of his Pilgrimage there
He attended the Yearly Meeting in London; then traveled to Yorkshire, visiting several Quarterly and other Meetings in the Counties of Hertford, Warwick, Oxford, Nottingham, York, and Westmoreland; and then back to Yorkshire, and to the City of York; accompanied by some insightful thoughts, observations, and letters on various subjects — He learned about the passing of William Hunt; and some details about him — His illness in York; and the conclusion of his journey there
On the eighth Day of the sixth Month, 1772, we landed at London; and I went straightway to the Yearly-meeting of Ministers and Elders, which had been gathered (I suppose) about half an Hour.
On the eighth day of the sixth month, 1772, we arrived in London; and I went directly to the Yearly Meeting of Ministers and Elders, which had been in session (I think) for about half an hour.
In this Meeting my Mind was humbly contrite: In the Afternoon the Meeting of Business opened; which, by Adjournments, held near a Week. In these Meetings I often felt a living Concern for the Establishment of Friends in the pure Life of Truth; and my Heart was enlarged in the Meeting of Ministers, Meeting of Business, and in several Meetings of publick Worship; and I felt my Mind united in true Love to the faithful Labourers now gathered at this Yearly-meeting.
In this meeting, my mind was humbly remorseful. In the afternoon, the business session began, which, due to several breaks, lasted almost a week. During these meetings, I often felt a genuine concern for the establishment of Friends in the pure life of truth, and my heart was opened in the meetings of ministers, the business session, and in several public worship meetings. I felt my mind connected in true love with the dedicated workers gathered at this yearly meeting.
On the fifteenth Day of the Month, I left London, and went to a Quarterly-meeting at Hertford.
On the fifteenth day of the month, I left London and went to a quarterly meeting in Hertford.
The first Day of the seventh Month. I have been at Quarterly-meetings at Sherrington, Northampton, Banbury, and Shipston; and had sundry Meetings between: My Mind hath been bowed under a Sense of divine Goodness manifested amongst us; my Heart hath been often enlarged in true Love, both amongst Ministers and Elders, and in publick Meetings; that through the Lord's Goodness, I believe it hath been a fresh Visitation to many, in particular to the Youth.
The first day of the seventh month. I've attended quarterly meetings at Sherrington, Northampton, Banbury, and Shipston, and several meetings in between. I’ve felt deeply moved by a sense of divine goodness shown to us; my heart has often been filled with genuine love, both among ministers and elders, and in public meetings. Through the Lord’s goodness, I believe this has been a new visitation for many, especially the youth.
The seventeenth Day of the Month. Was this Day[Pg 149] at Birmingham: Have been at Meetings at Coventry, Warwick, in Oxfordshire, and sundry other Places; have felt the humbling Hand of the Lord upon me; and through his tender Mercies find Peace in the Labours I have gone through.
The seventeenth day of the month. This day[Pg 149] in Birmingham: I attended meetings in Coventry, Warwick, Oxfordshire, and several other places; I felt the humbling presence of the Lord upon me; and through His gentle mercy, I find peace in the work I have done.
The twenty-sixth Day of the Month. I have continued travelling northward, visiting Meetings: Was this Day at Nottingham; which, in the Forenoon especially, was, through divine Love, a Heart-tendering Season: Next Day had a Meeting in a Friend's House with Friends Children and some Friends; this, through the strengthening Arm of the Lord, was a Time to be thankfully remembered.
The twenty-sixth day of the month. I have continued traveling north, visiting meetings. Today, I was at Nottingham; which, especially in the morning, was a heartwarming time thanks to divine love. The next day, I had a meeting at a friend's house with their children and some other friends; this was a time to be gratefully remembered, strengthened by the power of the Lord.
The second Day of the eighth Month, and first of the Week. Was this Day at Sheffield, a large inland Town: Have been at sundry Meetings last Week; and feel inward Thankfulness for that divine Support, which hath been graciously extended to me.
The second day of the eighth month and the first of the week. On this day at Sheffield, a big inland town: I attended several meetings last week and feel a deep sense of gratitude for the divine support that has been graciously given to me.
The ninth Day of the Month, and first of the Week, was at Rushworth: Have lately passed through some painful Labour; but have been comforted, under a Sense of that divine Visitation, which I feel extended toward many young People.
The ninth day of the month and the first of the week was at Rushworth: I have recently gone through some difficult times, but I have found comfort in the feeling of a divine presence that seems to be reaching out to many young people.
The sixteenth Day of the Month, and first of the Week, I was at Settle: It hath of late been a Time of inward Poverty; under which my Mind hath been preserved in a watchful tender State, feeling for the Mind of the holy Leader, and I find Peace in the Labours I have passed through.
The sixteenth day of the month, and the first of the week, I was at Settle: Recently, it has been a time of inner struggle; during which my mind has remained in a careful, gentle state, attuned to the spirit of the holy Leader, and I find peace in the efforts I have gone through.
I have felt great Distress of Mind, since I came on this Island, on Account of the Members of our Society being mixed with the World in various Sorts of Business and Traffick, carried on in impure Channels. Great is the Trade to Africa for Slaves! and, in loading these Ships, abundance of People are employed in the Factories; amongst whom are many of our Society. Friends, in early Times, refused, on a religious Principle, to make, or trade in, Superfluities; of which we have many large Testimonies on Record; but, for Want of Faithfulness, some gave way; even some, whose Examples were of[Pg 150] Note in our Society; and from thence others took more Liberty. Members of our Society worked in Superfluities, and bought and sold them; and thus Dimness of Sight came over many: At length, Friends got into the Use of some Superfluities in Dress, and in the Furniture of their Houses; and this hath spread from less to more, till Superfluity of some Kinds is common amongst us.
I have felt a lot of mental distress since I arrived on this Island because the members of our Society are involved with the world in various types of business and trade that operate in unethical ways. The trade for Africa in slaves is significant! In loading these ships, many people are engaged in the factories, including many from our Society. Friends, in the past, refused on religious grounds to create or trade in unnecessary goods; we have recorded many strong testimonies about this. However, due to a lack of faithfulness, some members slipped up, even those whose examples were of[Pg 150] Note in our Society, which encouraged others to take more liberties. Members of our Society began working in unnecessary goods and buying and selling them, leading to a loss of clarity for many. Eventually, Friends started using some unnecessary items in their clothing and home furnishings, and this has grown from small instances to the point where unnecessary goods of various kinds are now common among us.
In this declining State, many look at the Example one of another, and too much neglect the pure Feeling of Truth. Of late Years, a deep Exercise hath attended my Mind, that Friends may dig deep, may carefully cast forth the loose Matter, and get down to the Rock, the sure Foundation, and there hearken to that divine Voice which gives a clear and certain Sound; and I have felt in that which doth not deceive, that if Friends, who have known the Truth, keep in that Tenderness of Heart, where all Views of outward Gain are given up, and their Trust is only on the Lord, he will graciously lead some to be Patterns of deep Self-denial in Things relating to Trade and Handicraft-labour; and that some, who have plenty of the Treasures of this World, will example in a plain frugal Life, and pay Wages, to such as they may hire, more liberally than is now customary in some Places.
In this declining state, many people look to each other for examples and neglect the pure feeling of truth. Recently, I’ve been deeply reflecting on how friends can dig deep, carefully clear away the loose debris, and get down to the solid rock—the true foundation. It’s there that they can listen to that divine voice, which offers a clear and certain sound. I’ve sensed that if friends who know the truth maintain a tender heart, letting go of all desires for outward gain and placing their trust solely in the Lord, He will graciously lead some to be examples of deep self-denial regarding business and craftsmanship. Additionally, some who possess plenty of worldly treasures will set an example of a simple and frugal life, paying their hired workers more generously than is common in certain places today.
The twenty-third Day of the Month. Was this Day at Preston-Patrick, and had a comfortable Meeting. I have, several Times, been entertained at the Houses of Friends, who had sundry Things about them which had the Appearance of outward Greatness; and, as I have kept inward, Way hath opened for Conversation with such in private, in which Divine Goodness hath favoured us together with heart-tendering Times.
The twenty-third day of the month. I was in Preston-Patrick today and had a nice meeting. Several times, I've been welcomed at the homes of friends who had various things that seemed to signify wealth. However, as I stayed true to my beliefs, I've found that it opened the door for private conversations with them, during which we've shared some really meaningful moments together.
I rested a few Days, in Body and Mind, with our Friend Jane Crosfield; who was once in America: Was, on the sixth Day of the Week, at Kendal in Westmoreland; and at Greyrig Meeting the thirtieth Day of the Month, and first of the Week.
I took a few days to relax, both physically and mentally, with our friend Jane Crosfield; who used to be in America: On the sixth day of the week, I was at Kendal in Westmoreland; and at Greyrig Meeting on the thirtieth day of the month, which was the first day of the week.
I have known Poverty of late, and been graciously supported to keep in the Patience; and am thankful, under a Sense of the Goodness of the Lord toward those that are of a contrite Spirit.[Pg 151]
I have experienced poverty recently, and I've been kindly supported to remain patient; I am grateful for the goodness of the Lord toward those who have a humble spirit.[Pg 151]
The sixth Day of the ninth Month, and first of the Week. Was this Day at Counterside, a large Meeting-house, and very full; and, through the Opening of pure Love, it was a strengthening Time to me, and (I believe) to many more.
The sixth day of the ninth month, and the first of the week. This day was at Counterside, a large meeting house that was very crowded; and, through the outpouring of pure love, it was a strengthening time for me, and (I believe) for many others.
The thirteenth Day of the Month. Was this Day at Richmond, a small Meeting; but, the Town's People coming in, the House was crowded: It was a Time of heavy Labour; and (I believe) was a profitable Meeting.
The thirteenth day of the month. On this day at Richmond, we had a small gathering; however, as more locals arrived, the place became crowded. It was a time of hard work, and I think it ended up being a valuable meeting.
At this Place I heard that my Kinsman William Hunt, from North-Carolina, who was on a religious Visit to Friends in England, departed this Life on the ninth Day of the ninth Month, Instant, of the Small-pox, at Newcastle.—He appeared in the Ministry when a Youth; and his Labours therein were of good Savour. He travelled much in that Work in America. I once heard him say, in publick Testimony, that his Concern was (in that Visit) to be devoted to the Service of Christ so fully, that he might not spend one Minute in pleasing himself: Which Words, joined with his Example, were a Means of stirring up the pure Mind in me.
At this place, I heard that my relative Will Hunt, from North Carolina, who was on a religious visit to friends in England, passed away on the ninth day of the ninth month, this month, from smallpox, in Newcastle. He started sharing his message when he was young, and his contributions were well-regarded. He traveled a lot in that role throughout America. I once heard him say, in public testimony, that his goal during that visit was to be completely devoted to serving Christ, so he wouldn’t spend even a minute trying to please himself. Those words, along with his example, inspired me to awaken my pure thoughts.
On this Visit to England I have felt some Instructions sealed on my Mind, which I am concerned to leave in Writing, for the Use of such as are called to the Station of a Minister of Christ.
On this visit to England, I have felt some guidance impressed on my mind that I’m eager to leave in writing for those called to the role of a Minister of Christ.
Christ being the Prince of Peace, and we being no more than Ministers, I find it necessary for us, not only to feel a Concern in our first going forth, but to experience the renewing thereof, in the Appointment of Meetings.
Christ is the Prince of Peace, and we are just Ministers. I believe it's important for us not only to feel a sense of purpose when we first set out but also to experience a renewal of that purpose when we organize Meetings.
I felt a Concern, in America, to prepare for this Voyage; and, being, through the Mercy of God, brought safe here, my Heart was like a Vessel that wanted Vent; and for several Weeks, at first, when my Mouth was opened in Meetings, it often felt like the raising of a Gate in a Water-course, where a Weight of Water lay upon it; and in these Labours there appeared a fresh Visitation to many, especially the Youth; but sometimes, after this, I felt empty and poor, and yet felt a Necessity to appoint Meetings.
I felt a concern, in America, to get ready for this journey; and, thanks to God’s mercy, being safely brought here, my heart was like a vessel that needed to breathe. For several weeks, at first, when I spoke in meetings, it often felt like opening a gate in a waterway with a heavy flow pushing against it. In these efforts, there seemed to be a fresh experience for many, especially the youth; but sometimes, after this, I felt empty and poor, yet I still felt the need to set up meetings.
In this State I was exercised to abide in the pure Life[Pg 152] of Truth, and in all my Labours to watch diligently against the Motions of Self in my own Mind.
In this state, I was focused on living the pure life of truth, and in all my efforts, I had to carefully guard against the impulses of my own mind.
I have frequently felt a Necessity to stand up, when the Spring of the Ministry was low; and to speak from the Necessity, in that which subjecteth the Will of the Creature; and herein I was united with the suffering Seed, and found inward Sweetness with these mortifying Labours.
I often felt the need to rise up when the spirit of the Ministry was weak; and to speak from that necessity, in a way that influences the Will of the individual; and in this, I connected with the suffering community and found inner peace through these challenging efforts.
As I have been preserved in a watchful Attention to the divine Leader, under these Dispensations, Enlargement at Times hath followed, and the Power of Truth hath risen higher, in some Meetings, than I ever knew it before through me.
As I have remained focused on the divine Leader, during these times, there have been moments of expansion, and the Power of Truth has risen higher, in some meetings, than I have ever experienced before through me.
Thus I have been more and more instructed, as to the Necessity of depending, not upon a Concern which I felt in America, to come on a Visit to England, but upon the fresh Instructions of Christ, the Prince of Peace, from Day to Day.
Thus I have been increasingly taught about the importance of relying not on a feeling I had in America to visit England, but on the daily guidance of Christ, the Prince of Peace.
Now, of late, I felt a Stop in the Appointment of Meetings, not wholly, but in Part; and I do not feel Liberty to appoint them so quick one after another as I have heretofore.
Now, lately, I've noticed a pause in scheduling meetings, not completely, but partially; and I don't feel free to set them up as quickly one after the other as I used to.
The Work of the Ministry being a Work of divine Love, I feel that the Openings thereof are to be waited for, in all our Appointments.
The work of the ministry is a work of divine love, so I believe we should wait for openings in all our appointments.
O! how deep is divine Wisdom! Christ puts forth his Ministers, and goeth before them: And O! how great is the Danger of departing from the pure Feeling of that which leadeth safely!
O! how profound is divine Wisdom! Christ sends out His ministers and leads the way: And O! how serious is the danger of straying from the true feeling that guides us safely!
Christ knoweth the State of the People; and, in the pure Feeling of the Gospel-Ministry, their States are opened to his Servants.
Christ knows the condition of the people; and, in the genuine spirit of the Gospel ministry, their conditions are revealed to His servants.
Christ knoweth when the Fruit-bearing Branches themselves have Need of purging.
Christ knows when the fruit-bearing branches need to be pruned.
O! that these Lessons may be remembered by me! and that all who appoint Meetings may proceed in the pure Feeling of Duty.
O! I hope I remember these lessons! and that everyone who organizes meetings does so with a genuine sense of duty.
I have sometimes felt a Necessity to stand up; but that Spirit which is of the World hath so much prevailed in many, and the pure Life of Truth been so pressed[Pg 153] down, that I have gone forward, not as one travelling in a Road cast up and well prepared, but as a Man walking through a Miry place, in which are Stones here and there, safe to step on, but so situated, that, one Step being taken, Time is necessary to see where to step next.
I have sometimes felt the need to stand up; however, the worldly spirit has dominated many, and the pure life of truth has been so suppressed[Pg 153] that I have moved forward, not like someone traveling on a smooth and well-prepared path, but like a person walking through a muddy area, where there are stones here and there that are safe to step on, but positioned in such a way that after taking one step, it takes time to figure out where to step next.
Now I find that, in the pure Obedience, the Mind learns Contentment, in appearing weak and foolish to that Wisdom which is of the World; and in these lowly Labours, they who stand in a low Place, rightly exercised under the Cross, will find Nourishment.
Now I see that through true obedience, the mind learns to be content, even when it seems weak and foolish to the worldly wisdom. In these humble tasks, those who occupy a low position, rightly engaged under hardship, will find nourishment.
The Gift is pure; and, while the Eye is single in attending thereto, the Understanding is preserved clear: Self is kept out. We rejoice in filling up that which remains of the Afflictions of Christ, for his Body's Sake, which is the Church.
The Gift is pure; and as long as the Eye is focused on it, the Understanding remains clear: Self is kept at bay. We find joy in completing what is lacking in Christ's Afflictions, for the sake of his Body, which is the Church.
The natural Man loveth Eloquence, and many love to hear eloquent Orations; and, if there is not a careful Attention to the Gift, Men who have once laboured in the pure Gospel-ministry, growing weary of Suffering, and ashamed of appearing weak, may kindle a Fire, compass themselves about with Sparks, and walk in the Light; not of Christ who is under Suffering; but of that Fire which they, going from the Gift, have kindled; and that in Hearers, which is gone from the meek suffering State, into the worldly Wisdom, may be warmed with this Fire, and speak highly of these Labours. That which is of God gathers to God; and that which is of the World is owned by the World.
The natural person loves eloquence, and many enjoy hearing eloquent speeches. If there isn't careful attention to this gift, people who have once dedicated themselves to genuine Gospel ministry, growing tired of suffering and ashamed of appearing weak, may start a fire, surround themselves with sparks, and walk in a light; not the light of Christ who is suffering, but the fire they’ve kindled by straying from the gift. Those who have moved from a humble, suffering state to worldly wisdom may find warmth in this fire and talk highly about these efforts. What comes from God draws people to Him; what comes from the world is accepted by the world.
In this Journey a Labour hath attended my Mind, that the Ministers amongst us may be preserved in the meek feeling Life of Truth, where we may have no Desire but to follow Christ and be with him; that, when he is under Suffering, we may suffer with him, and never desire to rise up in Dominion, but as he, by the Virtue of his own Spirit, may raise us.
In this journey, I've been thinking about how important it is for our ministers to remain humble and connected to the true essence of faith. Our only desire should be to follow Christ and stay close to him; that when he faces suffering, we also share in that pain, and we should never seek power or dominance, but rather let him lift us up through the strength of his Spirit.
A few Days after writing these Considerations, our dear Friend, in the Course of his religious Visits, came to the City of York, and attended most of the Sittings of the Quarterly-meeting there; but, before it was over, was[Pg 154] taken ill of the Small-pox. Our Friend, Thomas Priestman, and others who attended him, preserved the following Minutes of his Expressions in the Time of his Sickness and of his Decease.
A few days after writing these thoughts, our dear friend, during his religious visits, arrived in the city of York and attended most of the sessions of the quarterly meeting there. However, before it concluded, he[Pg 154] fell ill with smallpox. Our friend, Thomas Priestman, and others who cared for him recorded the following notes of his thoughts during his illness and before his passing.
First-day, the twenty-seventh of the ninth Month, 1772. His Disorder appeared to be the Small-pox.
First day, the twenty-seventh of September, 1772. His illness seemed to be smallpox.
Second-day. He said he felt the Disorder to affect his Head, so that he could think little, and but as a Child.
Second day. He said he felt the Disorder impacting his Head, making it hard for him to think clearly, almost like a Child.
Third-day he uttered the following Prayer.—O Lord my God! the amazing Horrors of Darkness were gathered around me and covered me all over, and I saw no Way to go forth; I felt the Depth and Extent of the Misery of my Fellow-creatures separated from the divine Harmony, and it was heavier than I could bear, and I was crushed down under it; I lifted up my Hand, I stretched out my Arm, but there was none to help me; I looked round about and was amazed; in the Depths of Misery, O Lord! I remembered that thou art omnipotent, that I had called thee Father, and I felt that I loved thee, and I was made quiet in thy Will, and I waited for Deliverance from thee; thou hadst Pity upon me when no Man could help me: I saw that Meekness under Suffering was shewed to us in the most affecting Example of thy Son, and thou taughtest me to follow him, and I said, "Thy Will, O Father! be done."
On the third day, he said the following prayer: "O Lord my God! The terrifying darkness surrounded me and engulfed me completely, and I saw no way to escape. I felt the depth and extent of the misery of my fellow beings separated from divine harmony, and it was more than I could bear; I was overwhelmed by it. I raised my hand and stretched out my arm, but there was no one to help me. I looked around in amazement; in the depths of misery, O Lord! I remembered that you are all-powerful, that I had called you Father, and I felt that I loved you. I found peace in your will, and I waited for deliverance from you; you had compassion on me when no one else could help. I saw that humility in suffering was shown to us through the most profound example of your Son, and you taught me to follow him, and I said, 'Your will, O Father! be done.'"
Fourth-day-morning, being asked how he felt himself, he meekly answered, I do not know that I have slept this Night, I feel the Disorder making its Progress, but my Mind is mercifully preserved in Stillness and Peace: Sometime after he said he was sensible the Pains of Death must be hard to bear; but, if he escaped them now, he must sometime pass through them, and he did not know that he could be better prepared, but had no Will in it. He said he had settled his outward Affairs to his Mind, had taken Leave of his Wife and Family as never to return, leaving them to the divine Protection; adding, and though I feel them near to me at this Time, yet I freely give them up, having a Hope that they will be provided for. And a little after said, This Trial is made[Pg 155] easier than I could have thought, my Will being wholly taken away; for if I were anxious for the Event, it would have been harder; but I am not, and my Mind enjoys a perfect Calm.
On the morning of the fourth day, when asked how he was feeling, he quietly responded, "I don't think I've slept at all last night. I can feel the sickness getting worse, but my mind is thankfully calm and at peace." After a while, he mentioned that he was aware the pain of death would be difficult to endure; however, if he avoided it now, he would eventually have to face it, and he wasn't sure if he could be better prepared, but he didn't really care about that. He said he had arranged his affairs to his satisfaction, had said goodbye to his wife and family as if he wouldn't be returning, trusting them to divine protection. He added, "Even though I feel them close to me right now, I willingly let them go, hoping they will be taken care of." A little later, he said, "This trial is much easier than I expected, as I have completely let go of my will. If I were worried about the outcome, it would have been harder, but I'm not, and my mind is perfectly calm."
In the Night a young Woman having given him something to drink, he said, My Child, thou seemest very kind to me, a poor Creature, the Lord will reward thee for it. A While after he cried out with great Earnestness of Spirit, O my Father! my Father! and soon after he said, O my Father! my Father! how comfortable art thou to my Soul in this trying Season! Being asked if he could take a little Nourishment; after some Pause he replied, my Child, I cannot tell what to say to it; I seem nearly arrived where my Soul shall have Rest from all its Troubles. After giving in something to be inserted in his Journal, he said, I believe the Lord will now excuse me from Exercises of this Kind; and I see no Work but one, which is to be the last wrought by me in this World; the Messenger will come that will release me from all these Troubles; but it must be in the Lord's Time, which I am waiting for. He said he had laboured to do whatever was required, according to the Ability received, in the Remembrance of which he had Peace; and, though the Disorder was strong at Times, and would like a Whirlwind come over his Mind, yet it had hitherto been kept steady, and centered in everlasting Love; adding, and if that be mercifully continued, I ask nor desire no more. Another Time he said, he had long had a view of visiting this Nation, and, sometime before he came, had a Dream, in which he saw himself in the northern Parts of it, and that the Spring of the Gospel was opened in him much as in the Beginning of Friends, such as George Fox and William Dewsberry, and he saw the different States of the People, as clear as he had ever seen Flowers in a Garden; but in his going along he was suddenly stopt, though he could not see for what End; but, looking towards Home, fell into a Flood of Tears which waked him.
In the night, a young woman gave him something to drink. He said, “My child, you seem very kind to me, a poor creature. The Lord will reward you for it.” A little while later, he cried out earnestly, “O my Father! my Father!” Soon after, he said, “O my Father! my Father! how comforting you are to my soul in this difficult time!” When asked if he could eat a little something, he paused and replied, “My child, I can’t say what to make of it; I feel like I’m almost where my soul will find rest from all its troubles.” After giving something to include in his journal, he said, “I believe the Lord will excuse me from these kinds of tasks now; I only see one task left for me in this world. The messenger will come to release me from all these troubles, but it must be in the Lord’s timing, which I am waiting for.” He mentioned that he had worked hard to do whatever was needed, according to the ability he received, and in that remembrance, he found peace. Although the disorder was intense at times, like a whirlwind sweeping over his mind, he had managed to remain steady and centered in everlasting love; adding, “And if that continues mercifully, I ask for nothing more.” At another time, he shared that he had long wanted to visit this nation and, some time before he arrived, he had a dream where he saw himself in the northern parts of it, and the spring of the Gospel was opened in him much like it had been at the beginning of the Friends, such as George Fox and William Dewsberry. He clearly observed the different states of the people, just as he had seen flowers in a garden. However, as he was moving along, he was suddenly stopped, though he couldn’t see why. Looking towards home, he fell into a flood of tears that woke him.
At another Time he said, My Draught seemed strongest towards the North, and I mentioned, in my own Monthly-meeting,[Pg 156] that attending the Quarterly-meeting at York, and being there, looked like Home to me.
At another time, he said, "My pull seemed strongest towards the North," and I mentioned in my own monthly meeting,[Pg 156] that attending the quarterly meeting in York felt like home to me.
Fifth-day-night, having repeatedly consented to take Medicine with a View to settle his Stomach, but without Effect, the Friend, then waiting on him, said, through Distress, What shall I do now? He answered with great Composure, Rejoice evermore, and in every Thing give Thanks; but added a little after, this is sometimes hard to come at.
Fifth-day night, after agreeing several times to take medicine to settle his stomach but with no success, his friend, who was with him, said in distress, "What should I do now?" He replied calmly, "Always be joyful, and thank God in everything;" but he added a little later, "This can sometimes be hard to achieve."
Sixth-day-morning, he broke forth early in Supplication on this wise: O Lord! it was thy Power that enabled me to forsake Sin in my Youth, and I have felt thy Bruises for Disobedience; but, as I bowed under them, thou didst heal me, continuing a Father and a Friend: I feel thy Power now, and I beg that, in the approaching trying Moment, thou wilt keep my Heart stedfast unto thee.——Upon his giving Directions to a Friend concerning some little Things, she said, I will take Care, but hope thou wilt live to order them thyself. He replied, My Hope is in Christ; and, though I may seem a little better, a Change in the Disorder may soon happen, and my little Strength be dissolved; and, if it so happen, I shall be gathered to my everlasting Rest. On her saying she did not doubt that, but could not help mourning to see so many faithful Servants removed at so low a Time, he said, All Good cometh from the Lord, whose Power is the same, and can work as he sees best. The same Day he had given Directions about wrapping his Corpse, perceiving a Friend to weep, he said, I would rather thou wouldst guard against weeping for me, my Sister; I sorrow not, though I have had some painful Conflicts; but now they seem over, and Matters well settled, and I look at the Face of my dear Redeemer; for sweet is his Voice, and his Countenance is comely.
On the morning of the sixth day, he began his prayers early, saying: O Lord! It was your power that helped me turn away from sin in my youth, and I have felt the consequences of my disobedience; but while I endured them, you healed me, remaining a Father and a Friend. I feel your power now, and I ask that, in the coming difficult moment, you will keep my heart steadfast towards you.——As he gave a friend instructions about some small matters, she said, I will take care of it, but I hope you will live to handle them yourself. He replied, My hope is in Christ; and, although I may seem a bit better, the condition could change at any moment, and my little strength could disappear; and if that happens, I will be gathered to my everlasting rest. When she expressed her sorrow about so many faithful servants being taken away at such a low point, he said, All good comes from the Lord, whose power remains the same and can work as He sees fit. That same day, he made arrangements for wrapping his body, and noticing a friend in tears, he said, I would prefer that you refrain from weeping for me, my sister; I do not grieve, even though I have faced some painful struggles; but now they seem to be over, and things are well settled, and I look upon the face of my dear Redeemer; for his voice is sweet, and his appearance is lovely.
First-day, fourth of the tenth Month, being very weak, and in general difficult to be understood, he uttered a few Words in Commemoration of the Lord's Goodness, and added, How tenderly have I been waited on in this Time of Affliction! in which I may say, in JOB'S Words, Tedious Days and wearisome Nights are appointed unto[Pg 157] me: And how many are spending their Time and Money in Vanity and Superfluities, while thousands and tens of thousands want the Necessaries of Life, who might be relieved by them, and their Distresses, at such a Time as this, in some degree softened, by the administering suitable Things!
First day, fourth of the tenth month, feeling very weak and generally hard to understand, he spoke a few words to remember the Lord's goodness and added, How tenderly I’ve been cared for during this time of suffering! I can say, in Job's words, Tedious days and wearisome nights are set before[Pg 157] me: And how many people are wasting their time and money on useless things, while thousands and tens of thousands lack the necessities of life, who could be helped by them, and whose suffering, at a time like this, might be eased by providing what they need!
Second-day-morning, the Apothecary, who appeared very anxious to assist him, being present, he queried about the Probability of such a Load of Matter being thrown off his weak Body; and, the Apothecary making some Remarks implying he thought it might, he spoke with an audible Voice on this wise:—My Dependance is on the Lord Jesus, who, I trust, will forgive my Sins, which is all I hope for; and, if it be his Will to raise up this Body again, I am content; and, if to die, I am resigned; and, if thou canst not be easy without trying to assist Nature, I submit. After which his Throat was so much affected, that it was very difficult for him to speak so as to be understood; and he frequently wrote when he wanted any Thing. About the second Hour, on Fourth-day Morning, he asked for Pen and Ink, and, at several Times, with much Difficulty, wrote thus: I believe my being here is in the Wisdom of Christ; I know not as to Life or Death.
On the morning of the second day, the Apothecary, who seemed very eager to help him, was present. He asked about the likelihood of his weak body handling such a burden, and when the Apothecary made some comments suggesting he thought it was possible, he said clearly: “My trust is in the Lord Jesus, who I believe will forgive my sins, which is all I'm hoping for. If it's His will to raise this body again, I'm content; if not, I accept that too. And if you feel you can't be at ease without trying to help nature, I agree to that.” After that, his throat was greatly affected, making it very hard for him to speak understandably, so he often wrote when he needed something. Around the second hour on the morning of the fourth day, he asked for pen and ink, and with great difficulty wrote several times: “I believe my presence here is part of Christ's wisdom; I don't know about life or death.”
About a Quarter before six, the same Morning, he seemed to fall into an easy Sleep, which continued about Half an Hour; when, seeming to awake, he breathed a few Times with more Difficulty, and expired, without Sigh, Groan, or Struggle!
About a quarter to six that same morning, he appeared to drift into a peaceful sleep that lasted about half an hour. Then, as if waking up, he began to breathe a bit more heavily and passed away quietly, without a sigh, groan, or struggle!
End of the Journal
Journal Closure
THE LAST EPISTLE & OTHER WRITINGS OF JOHN WOOLMAN
THE INTRODUCTION
My Mind hath often been affected with Sorrow, on Account of the prevailing of that Spirit, which leads from an humble waiting on the inward Teaching of Christ, to pursue Ways of Living, attended with unnecessary Labour, and which draws forth the Minds of many People to seek after outward Power, and to strive for Riches, which frequently introduce Oppression, and bring forth Wars and grievous Calamities.
My mind has often felt sorrowful because of the prevailing attitude that shifts away from humbly waiting for Christ's inner guidance, pushing people to chase after lifestyles filled with unnecessary work. This mindset often leads many to seek external power and strive for wealth, which frequently results in oppression and brings about wars and severe suffering.
It is with Reverence that I acknowledge the Mercies of our Heavenly Father, who, in Infinite Love, did visit me in my Youth, and wrought a Belief in me, that through true Obedience a State of inward Purity may be known in this Life, in which we may love Mankind in the same Love with which our Redeemer loveth us, and therein learn Resignation to endure Hardships, for the real Good of others.
I humbly recognize the kindness of our Heavenly Father, who, out of infinite love, reached out to me in my youth and instilled in me the belief that through genuine obedience, we can experience a state of inner purity in this life. In this state, we can love humanity with the same love that our Redeemer has for us, and through this, we learn to accept hardships for the real benefit of others.
While the Eye is single, the whole Body is full of Light, Mat. vi. 22. but for want of this, selfish Desires, and an imaginary Superiority, darken the Mind; hence Injustice frequently proceeds; and where this is the Case, to convince the Judgment, is the most effectual Remedy.
When the Eye is focused, the whole Body is full of Light, Mat. vi. 22. But without this focus, selfish desires and a false sense of superiority cloud the Mind; as a result, injustice often arises; and when this happens, convincing the Judgment is the most effective remedy.
Where violent Measures are pursued in opposing Injustice, the Passions, and Resentments, of the Injured, frequently operate in the Prosecution of their Designs; and after Conflicts productive of very great Calamities, the Minds of contending Parties often remain as little acquainted with the pure Principle of Divine Love, as they were before; but where People walk in that pure Light in which all their Works are wrought in God, John iii. 21. and under Oppression persevere in the meek Spirit, and abide firm in the Cause of Truth, without actively complying with oppressive Demands, through those the Lord hath often manifested his Power, in opening[Pg 162] the Understandings of others, to the promoting Righteousness in the Earth.
Where violent actions are taken to fight against injustice, the emotions and anger of those who have been wronged often drive their efforts. After conflicts that lead to significant suffering, the minds of the opposing parties often remain as disconnected from the true principle of divine love as they were before. However, when people walk in that pure light where all their works are done in God, John iii. 21, and maintain a gentle spirit under oppression, standing firm in the cause of truth without giving in to oppressive demands, it is through them that the Lord has frequently shown his power, opening[Pg 162] the understanding of others to promote righteousness on Earth.
A Time, I believe, is coming, wherein this Divine Work will so spread and prevail, that Nation shall not lift up Sword against Nation, nor learn War any more, Isaiah ii. 4. And as we, through the tender Mercies of God, do feel that this precious Work is begun, I am concerned to encourage my Brethren and Sisters in a Holy Care and Diligence, that each of us may so live, under the sanctifying Power of Truth, as to be redeemed from all unnecessary Cares; that our Eye being single to him, no Customs, however prevalent, which are contrary to the Wisdom from above, may hinder us from faithfully following his Holy Leadings, in whatsoever he may graciously appoint for us.
A time is coming, I believe, when this Divine Work will spread so much and succeed that nation will no longer raise a sword against nation, nor will they learn war anymore, Isaiah ii. 4. And since we, through the tender mercies of God, feel that this precious work has begun, I want to encourage my brothers and sisters to have a sincere care and diligence so that each of us can live under the sanctifying power of truth, free from unnecessary worries; that with our focus solely on Him, no customs, no matter how common, that go against the wisdom from above, will stop us from faithfully following His holy guidance in whatever He may graciously have planned for us.
CONSIDERATIONS ON PURE WISDOM AND HUMAN POLICY
To have our Trust settled in the Lord, and not to seek after, nor desire outward Treasures, any further than his Holy Spirit leads us therein, is a happy State, as saith the Prophet, Blessed is the Man that trusteth in the Lord, and whose Hope the Lord is.
To place our trust in the Lord and not to seek or desire material wealth beyond what His Holy Spirit guides us towards is a fortunate state, as the Prophet says, Blessed is the man who trusts in the Lord, and whose hope is the Lord.
Pure Wisdom leads People into Lowliness of Mind, in which they learn Resignation to the Divine Will, and Contentment in suffering for his Cause, when they cannot keep a clear Conscience without suffering.
Pure Wisdom guides people into a humble mindset, where they learn to accept the Divine Will and find peace in suffering for His cause when they can't maintain a clear conscience without enduring hardship.
In this pure Wisdom the Mind is attentive to the Root, and original Spring of Motions and Desires; and as we know the Lord to be our Refuge, and find no Safety but in humbly walking before him, we feel an Holy Engagement, that every Desire which leads therefrom may be brought to Judgment.
In this pure Wisdom, the Mind focuses on the Source and original Spring of Actions and Desires; and as we recognize the Lord as our Refuge, finding no Safety except in humbly walking before Him, we experience a Holy Commitment, that every Desire that leads away from this may be examined in Judgment.
While we proceed in this precious Way, and find ardent Longings for a full Deliverance from every thing which defiles, all Prospects of Gain, that are not consistent with the Wisdom from above, are considered as Snares, and an inward Concern is felt, that we may live under the Cross, and faithfully attend to that Holy Spirit, which is sufficient to preserve out of them.
While we continue on this valuable path and feel strong desires for complete freedom from everything that taints us, any opportunities for gain that don't align with true wisdom are seen as traps. There's a deep concern within us to live humbly and to pay attention to that Holy Spirit, which is enough to keep us safe from these pitfalls.
When I have considered that Saying of Christ, Mat. vi. 19, Lay not up for yourselves Treasures upon Earth, his Omnipotence hath often occurred to my Mind.
When I think about that saying of Christ, Mat. vi. 19, Don’t store up treasures on Earth, his all-powerful nature often comes to my mind.
While we believe that he is every where present with his People, and that perfect Goodness, Wisdom and[Pg 164] Power are united in him, how comfortable is the Consideration.
While we believe that he is present everywhere with his people, and that perfect goodness, wisdom, and [Pg 164] power are united in him, how comforting is that thought.
Our Wants may be great, but his Power is greater. We may be oppressed and despised, but he is able to turn our patient Sufferings into Profit to ourselves, and to the Advancement of his Work on Earth. His People, who feel the Power of his Cross, to crucify all that is selfish in them, who are engaged in outward Concerns, from a Convincement that it is their Duty, and resign themselves, and their Treasures, to him; these feel that it is dangerous to give way to that in us, which craves Riches and Greatness in this World.
Our desires may be strong, but his power is even stronger. We might feel oppressed and looked down upon, but he can turn our patient sufferings into something beneficial for us and help advance his work on Earth. His followers, who experience the power of his cross and strive to overcome their selfishness, engage in worldly matters because they believe it's their duty and willingly surrender themselves and their possessions to him. They realize it's risky to give in to our desire for wealth and prominence in this world.
As the Heart truly contrite, earnestly desires to know Christ, and the Fellowship of his Sufferings, Phil. iii. 10. so far as the Lord for gracious Ends may lead into them; as such feel that it is their Interest to put their Trust in God, and to seek no Gain but that which he, by his Holy Spirit, leads into; so, on the contrary, they who do not reverently wait for this Divine Teacher, and are not humbly concerned, according to their Measure, to fill up that which is behind of the Afflictions of Christ, Col. i. 24. in patiently suffering for the promoting Righteousness in the Earth; but have an Eye toward the Power of Men, and the outward Advantage of Wealth, these are often attentive to those Employments which appear profitable, even though the Gains arise from such Trade and Business which proceeds from the Workings of that Spirit, which is estranged from the self-denying Life of an humble contrite Christian.
As a truly repentant heart earnestly desires to know Christ and understand his sufferings, Phil. iii. 10, it recognizes that it’s in its best interest to trust in God and seek only the gains that He, through His Holy Spirit, guides them toward. On the other hand, those who do not patiently wait for this Divine Teacher and aren’t genuinely concerned, according to their ability, to fill up what’s lacking in Christ’s afflictions, Col. i. 24, by suffering patiently to promote righteousness in the world, tend to focus on human power and the benefits of wealth. These individuals often pursue careers that seem profitable, even when the gains come from trades and businesses driven by a spirit that is disconnected from the self-denying life of a humble, repentant Christian.
While I write on this Subject, I feel my Mind tenderly affected toward those honestly disposed People, who have been brought up in Employments attended with those Difficulties.
While I'm writing about this topic, I feel a deep sympathy for those sincere people who have been raised in jobs that come with those challenges.
To such I may say, in the feeling of our Heavenly Father's Love, and number myself with you, O that our Eyes may be single to the Lord! May we reverently wait on him for Strength, to lay aside all unnecessary Expence of every Kind, and learn Contentment, in a plain simple Life.
To them, I can express, feeling our Heavenly Father's love, and join you in this, oh that our focus may be solely on the Lord! May we patiently seek His strength to let go of all unnecessary expenses of any kind, and learn to be content with a simple life.
May we, in Lowliness, submit to the Leadings of his[Pg 165] Spirit, and enter upon any outward Employ which he graciously points out to us, and then whatever Difficulties arise, in Consequence of our Faithfulness, I trust they will work for our Good.
May we, with humility, follow the guidance of his[Pg 165] Spirit and take on any outward task that he kindly shows us. Then, whatever challenges come up as a result of our commitment, I believe they will ultimately benefit us.
Small Treasure to a resigned Mind is sufficient. How happy is it to be content with a little, to live in Humility, and feel that in us, which breathes out this Language, Abba! Father.
Small treasure is enough for a resigned mind. How happy it is to be content with a little, to live in humility, and to feel within us that which expresses this sentiment: Abba! Father.
If that, called the Wisdom of this World, had no Resemblance of true Wisdom, the Name of Wisdom, I suppose, had not been given to it.
If what is called the Wisdom of this World didn't resemble true Wisdom, I guess it wouldn't be called Wisdom.
As wasting outward Substance, to gratify vain Desires, on one hand; so Slothfulness and Neglect, on the other, do often involve Men and their Families in Trouble, and reduce them to Want and Distress; to shun both these opposite Vices, is good in itself, and hath a Resemblance of Wisdom; but while People thus provident, have it principally in View to get Riches, and Power, and the Friendship of this World, and do not humbly wait for the Spirit of Truth to lead them into Purity; these, through an anxious Care to obtain the End desired, reach forth for Gain in worldly Wisdom, and, in regard to their inward State, fall into divers Temptations and Snares. And though such may think of applying Wealth to good Purposes, and to use their Power to prevent Oppression, yet Wealth and Power is often applied otherwise; nor can we depart from the Leadings of our Holy Shepherd, without going into Confusion.
As wasting resources to satisfy pointless desires can lead to trouble, so can laziness and neglect often put people and their families in difficult situations, leaving them in need and distress. Avoiding both of these opposing vices is inherently good and seems wise. However, when people are mainly focused on accumulating wealth, power, and worldly friendships, and do not humbly wait for the Spirit of Truth to guide them toward purity, they become overly anxious to achieve their goals. In their pursuit of worldly wisdom for gain, they may fall into various temptations and traps regarding their inner state. Even if they plan to use their wealth for good and their power to prevent oppression, wealth and power are often used in other ways. We cannot stray from the guidance of our Holy Shepherd without falling into confusion.
Great Wealth is frequently attended with Power, which nothing but Divine Love can qualify the Mind to use rightly; and as to the Humility, and Uprightness of our Children after us, how great is the Uncertainty! If, in acquiring Wealth, we take hold on the Wisdom which is from beneath, and depart from the Leadings of Truth, and Example our Children herein, we have great Cause to apprehend, that Wealth may be a Snare to them; and prove an Injury to others, over whom their Wealth may give them Power.
Great wealth often comes with power, which only Divine Love can teach us to handle properly. As for the humility and integrity of our children after us, the uncertainty is significant! If we pursue wealth by following worldly wisdom and ignore the guidance of truth, setting a poor example for our children, we have good reason to worry that wealth might trap them and harm others who may fall under their power.
To be redeemed from that Wisdom which is from beneath, and walk in the Light of the Lord, is a precious[Pg 166] Situation; thus his People are brought to put their Trust in him; and in this humble Confidence in his Wisdom, Goodness and Power, the Righteous find a Refuge in Adversities, superior to the greatest outward Helps, and a Comfort more certain than any worldly Advantages can afford.
To be freed from that wisdom which is low and walk in the Light of the Lord is a precious[Pg 166] situation; this way, his people come to trust in him. In this humble confidence in his wisdom, goodness, and power, the righteous find a refuge in tough times, greater than the strongest external support, and a comfort more reliable than any worldly advantages can provide.
ON LABOUR
Having from my Childhood been used to Bodily Labour for a Living, I may express my Experience therein.
Having worked physically for a living since childhood, I can share my experiences with it.
Right Exercise affords an innocent Pleasure in the Time of it, and prepares us to enjoy the Sweetness of Rest; but from the Extremes each Way, arise Inconveniences.
Right exercise provides a simple pleasure in the moment and prepares us to appreciate the comfort of rest; however, extremes in either direction lead to problems.
Moderate Exercise opens the Pores, gives the Blood a lively Circulation, and the better enables us to judge rightly respecting that Portion of Labour which is the true Medium.
Moderate exercise opens the pores, gets the blood flowing, and helps us better judge the right amount of labor that is the true middle ground.
The Fowls of the Air sow not, nor gather into Barns, yet our Heavenly Father feedeth them, Mat. vi. 26. nor do I believe that Infinite Goodness and Power would have allotted Labour to us, had he not seen that Labour was proper for us in this Life.
The birds in the sky don’t plant seeds or gather into barns, yet our Heavenly Father feeds them, Mat. vi. 26. I also don’t think that Infinite Goodness and Power would have assigned us work if He hadn’t known that work was meant for us in this life.
The original Design, and true Medium of Labour, is a Subject that, to me, appears worthy of our serious Consideration.
The original design and true means of labor is a topic that seems important for us to think about seriously.
Idle Men are often a Burden to themselves, neglect the Duty they owe to their Families, and become burdensome to others also.
Idle men often become a burden to themselves, neglect their responsibilities to their families, and also become a burden to others.
As outward Labour, directed by the Wisdom from above, tends to our Health, and adds to our Happiness in this Life; so, on the contrary, entering upon it in a selfish Spirit, and pursuing it too long, or too hard, hath a contrary Effect.
As external work, guided by wisdom from above, contributes to our health and increases our happiness in this life; on the other hand, approaching it with a selfish attitude and pursuing it for too long or too intensely has the opposite effect.
I have observed, that too much Labour not only makes the Understanding dull, but so intrudes upon the Harmony of the Body, that after ceasing from our Toil, we have another to pass through, before we can be so composed as to enjoy the Sweetness of Rest.
I’ve noticed that too much work not only makes the mind dull but also disrupts the body's balance, so that after we stop working, we go through another struggle before we can feel calm enough to enjoy the pleasure of rest.
From too much Labour in the Heat, frequently proceeds immoderate Sweats, which do often, I believe, open the Way for Disorders, and impair our Constitutions.
From too much work in the heat, excessive sweating often happens, which I believe can lead to health issues and weaken our bodies.
When we go beyond the true Medium, and feel Weariness[Pg 168] approaching, but think Business may suffer if we cease, at such a Time spirituous Liquors are frequently taken, with a View to support Nature under these Fatigues.
When we push past our actual limits and start to feel tired[Pg 168], we often think that our work might suffer if we take a break. During these times, people often turn to alcoholic drinks to help them cope with the exhaustion.
I have found that too much Labour in the Summer heats the Blood, that taking strong Drink to support the Body under such Labour, increaseth that Heat, and though a Person may be so far temperate as not to manifest the least Disorder, yet the Mind, in such a Circumstance, doth not retain that Calmness and Serenity which we should endeavour to live in.
I have found that working too hard in the summer heats up the blood, and that drinking strong alcohol to support the body during such work increases that heat. While a person may be temperate enough not to show any obvious disorder, the mind in such circumstances does not maintain the calmness and serenity we should strive to live in.
Thus toiling in the Heat, and drinking strong Liquor, makes Men more resolute, and less considerate, and tends very much to disqualify from successfully following him who is meek and low of Heart.
So working hard in the heat and drinking strong alcohol makes people more determined and less thoughtful, which really undermines their ability to successfully follow someone who is humble and gentle.
As laying out Business, more than is consistent with pure Wisdom, is an Evil, so this Evil frequently leads into more. Too much Business leads to Hurry. In the Hurry and Toil too much strong Drink is often used, and hereby many proceed to Noise and Wantonness, and some, though more considerate, do often suffer Loss, as to a true Composedness of Mind.
As running a business, more than what aligns with true wisdom, is a problem, this problem often leads to more issues. Too much business results in rushing. In the chaos and hard work, people often turn to excessive drinking, which leads many to loudness and reckless behavior. Some, although more thoughtful, often experience a loss of true mental peace.
I feel sincere Desires in my Heart that no Rent, nor Interest, might be laid so high as to be a Snare to Tenants. That no Desires of Gain may draw any too far in Business. That no Cares to support Customs, which have not their Foundation in pure Wisdom, may have Place in our Minds, but that we may build on the sure Foundation, and feel our Holy Shepherd to lead us, who alone is able to preserve us, and bring forth from every Thing which defiles.
I genuinely wish that no rent or interest is set so high that it becomes a trap for tenants. I hope that the desire for profit doesn’t push anyone too far in their business dealings. I pray that no worries about maintaining traditions, which don’t rest on true wisdom, take up space in our minds. Instead, let us build on a solid foundation and feel our Holy Shepherd guiding us, as He alone can keep us safe and cleanse us from everything that defiles.
Having several Times, in my Travels, had Opportunity to observe the Labour and Manner of Life of great Numbers of Slaves, it appears to me that the true Medium is lamentably neglected by many, who assign them their Portion of Labour.
Having had several opportunities to observe the work and way of life of many slaves during my travels, it seems to me that the right balance is sadly overlooked by many who assign them their share of labor.
Without saying much at this Time, concerning buying and selling Men for Term of Life, who have as just a Right to Liberty as we have; nor about the great Miseries, and Effusion of Blood, consequent to promoting the[Pg 169] Slave-trade, and to speak as favourably as may be, with regard to continuing those in Bondage who are amongst us, we cannot say there is no Partiality in it; for whatever Tenderness may be manifested by Individuals in their Life-time towards them, yet for People to be transmitted from a Man to his Posterity, in the helpless Condition of Slaves, appears inconsistent with the Nature of the Gospel Spirit. From such Proceedings it often follows, that Persons in the Decline of Life, are deprived of Monies equitably due to them, and committed to the Care, and subjected to the absolute Power of young unexperienced Men, who know but little about the Weakness of old Age, nor understand the Language of declining Life.
Without going into too much detail right now about buying and selling people for life, who have as much right to freedom as we do; or the great suffering and loss of life that come from supporting the slave trade; and to be as fair as possible regarding those still in bondage among us, we can't ignore the unfairness in this situation. Regardless of how much kindness individuals may show them during their lives, allowing people to be passed down from one generation to the next in the helpless state of slaves seems inconsistent with the spirit of the Gospel. As a result of this behavior, it often happens that older individuals are denied the money that is rightfully theirs and are put under the care of inexperienced young people who know little about the frailty of old age and don't understand the struggles of a declining life.
Where Parents give their Estates to their Children, and then depend on them for a Maintainance, they sometimes meet with great Inconveniences; but if the Power of Possession, thus obtained, doth often reverse the Obligations of Gratitude and filial Duty, and makes manifest, that Youth are often ignorant of the Language of old Age, how hard is the Case of ancient Negroes, who, deprived of the Wages equitably due to them, are left to young People, who have been used to look upon them as their Inferiors.
Where parents give their estates to their children and then rely on them for support, they sometimes encounter significant challenges. However, the power of possession often alters the obligations of gratitude and filial duty, revealing that young people frequently do not understand the perspective of older individuals. This makes the situation particularly difficult for elderly Black people, who, deprived of the fair wages they deserve, are left at the mercy of young people who have been conditioned to see them as their inferiors.
For Men to behold the Fruits of their Labour withheld from them, and possessed by others, and in old Age find themselves destitute of those comfortable Accommodations, and that tender Regard which their Time of Life requires:
For men to see the results of their hard work taken away from them and owned by others, and in old age find themselves lacking those comforts and the care that this stage of life needs:
When they feel Pains and Stiffness in their Joints and Limbs, Weakness of Appetite, and that a little Labour is wearisome, and still behold themselves in the neglected uncomfortable Condition of a Slave, and oftentimes to a young unsympathising Man:
When they experience pain and stiffness in their joints and limbs, a lack of appetite, and find that even a little work is tiring, while still seeing themselves in the neglected and uncomfortable state of a slave, and often to a young, indifferent man:
For Men to be thus treated from one Generation to another, who, besides their own Distresses, think on the Slavery entailed on their Posterity, and are grieved: What disagreeable Thoughts must they have of the professed Followers of Jesus! And how must their Groans ascend to that Almighty Being, who will be a Refuge for the Oppressed, Psalm ix. 9.
For men to be treated this way from one generation to the next, who, on top of their own struggles, think about the slavery passed down to their children, and feel pain: What negative thoughts must they have about the claimed followers of Jesus! And how their cries must reach that Almighty Being, who will be a Refuge for the Oppressed, Psalm ix. 9.
ON SCHOOLS
Suffer the little Children to come unto me, and forbid them not, for of such is the Kingdom of God, Mark x. 14.
Let the little children come to me, and don’t hinder them, because the Kingdom of God belongs to those like them, Mark x. 14.
To encourage Children to do Things with a View to get Praise of Men, to me appears an Obstruction to their being inwardly acquainted with the Spirit of Truth. For it is the Work of the Holy Spirit to direct the Mind of God, that in all our Proceedings we may have a single Eye to him. To give Alms in secret, to fast in secret, and labour to keep clear of that Disposition reproved by our Saviour, All their Works which they do is for to be seen of Men, Mat. xxiii. 5.
To encourage kids to do things just to get praise from others seems like a barrier to truly understanding the Spirit of Truth. It's the Holy Spirit's job to guide us so that in everything we do, we focus solely on Him. Giving to charity in secret, fasting in private, and striving to avoid the mindset criticized by our Savior, All their Works which they do is for to be seen of Men, Mat. xxiii. 5.
That Divine Light which enlightens all Men, I believe, does often shine in the Minds of Children very early, and to humbly wait for Wisdom, that our Conduct toward them may tend to forward their Acquaintance with it, and strengthen them in Obedience thereto, appears to me to be a Duty on all of us.
That divine light that enlightens everyone, I believe, often shines in the minds of children from a young age. It seems to me that we all have a duty to patiently guide them toward wisdom, helping them become familiar with it and strengthening their obedience to it.
By cherishing the Spirit of Pride, and the Love of Praise in them, I believe they may sometimes improve faster in Learning, than otherwise they would; but to take Measures to forward Children in Learning, which naturally tend to divert their Minds from true Humility, appears to me to savour of the Wisdom of this World.
By valuing the Spirit of Pride and the Love of Praise in them, I believe they might sometimes learn faster than they otherwise would. However, taking steps to push children in their learning that naturally lead them away from genuine humility seems to me to reflect the Wisdom of this World.
If Tutors are not acquainted with Sanctification of Spirit, nor experienced in an humble waiting for the Leadings of Truth, but follow the Maxims of the Wisdom of this World, such Children who are under their Tuition, appear to me to be in Danger of imbibing Thoughts, and Apprehensions, reverse to that Meekness, and Lowliness of Heart, which is necessary for all the true Followers of Christ.
If teachers are not familiar with the Sanctification of Spirit or experienced in patiently waiting for the guidance of Truth, but instead follow the ideas of worldly wisdom, the children they are teaching seem to me to be at risk of adopting thoughts and beliefs that go against the meekness and humility of heart that are essential for all true followers of Christ.
Children at an Age fit for Schools, are in a Time of Life which requires the patient Attention of pious People,[Pg 171] and if we commit them to the Tuition of such, whose Minds we believe are not rightly prepared to train them up in the Nurture and Admonition of the Lord, we are in Danger of not acting the Part of faithful Parents toward them; for our Heavenly Father doth not require us to do Evil, that Good may come of it; and it is needful that we deeply examine ourselves, lest we get entangled in the Wisdom of this World, and, through wrong Apprehensions, take such Methods in Education, as may prove a great Injury to the Minds of our Children.
Children who are of school age are at a stage in life that calls for the patient attention of caring individuals,[Pg 171] and if we entrust them to the guidance of those whom we believe are not truly equipped to raise them in the teachings and guidance of the Lord, we risk failing in our duty as responsible parents; for our Heavenly Father doesn’t ask us to do wrong so that good may come of it. It is essential that we reflect deeply on our actions, so we don’t get caught up in worldly wisdom and, due to misunderstandings, adopt educational practices that could significantly harm our children's minds.
It is a lovely Sight to behold innocent Children; and when they are sent to such Schools where their tender Minds are in imminent Danger of being led astray by Tutors, who do not live a self-denying Life, or by the Conversation of such Children who do not live in Innocence, it is a Case much to be lamented.
It’s a beautiful sight to see innocent children, but when they are sent to schools where their young minds are at serious risk of being misled by teachers who don’t practice self-discipline, or by the influence of other children who aren’t innocent, it’s truly a sad situation.
While a pious Tutor hath the Charge of no more Children than he can take due Care of, and keeps his Authority in the Truth, the good Spirit in which he leads and governs, works on the Minds of such who are not hardened, and his Labours not only tend to bring them forward in outward Learning, but to open their Understandings with respect to the true Christian Life; but where a Person hath Charge of too many, and his Thoughts and Time are so much employed in the outward Affairs of his School, that he does not so weightily attend to the Spirit and Conduct of each Individual, as to be enabled to administer rightly to all in due Season; through such Omission he not only suffers, as to the State of his own Mind, but the Minds of the Children are in Danger of suffering also.
While a devoted teacher has the responsibility for no more students than he can adequately care for, and maintains his authority in truth, the positive spirit in which he leads and guides influences the minds of those who are not hardened. His efforts not only help them progress in external knowledge but also help open their understanding of the true Christian life. However, when a person has too many students and spends so much of his time and energy on the external affairs of his school that he cannot properly focus on the spirit and behavior of each individual, he becomes unable to provide the right support to everyone at the right time. Due to this neglect, he not only suffers in his own state of mind but also puts the minds of the children at risk of suffering as well.
To watch the Spirit of Children, to nurture them in Gospel Love, and labour to help them against that which would mar the Beauty of their Minds, is a Debt we owe them; and a faithful Performance of our Duty, not only tends to their lasting Benefit, and our own Peace, but also to render their Company agreeable to us.
To watch over the Spirit of Children, to nurture them in Gospel Love, and work to protect them from anything that would harm the Beauty of their Minds is a responsibility we have to them; and faithfully fulfilling this duty not only benefits them in the long run and brings us peace, but also makes their company enjoyable for us.
Instruction, thus administered, reaches the pure Witness in the Minds of such Children who are not hardened, and begets Love in them toward those who thus lead them on;[Pg 172] but where too great a Number are committed to a Tutor, and he, through much Cumber, omits a careful Attention to the Minds of Children, there is Danger of Disorders gradually increasing amongst them, till the Effects thereof appear in their Conduct, too strong to be easily remedied.
Instruction, when given this way, connects with the pure Witness in the minds of children who are open and fosters love for those who guide them.[Pg 172] However, when too many children are assigned to one tutor and he, overwhelmed, neglects to pay close attention to their needs, there's a risk of growing issues among them, which can eventually show in their behavior, making it hard to fix.
A Care hath lived on my Mind, that more Time might be employed by Parents at Home, and by Tutors at School, in weightily attending to the Spirit and Inclinations of Children, and that we may so lead, instruct, and govern them, in this tender Part of Life, that nothing may be omitted in our Power, to help them on their Way to become the Children of our Father, who is in Heaven.
A worry has been on my mind that parents at home and teachers at school could spend more time seriously focusing on the feelings and interests of children. We should guide, teach, and support them during this important stage of their lives, making sure we do everything we can to help them grow into the children of our Father in Heaven.
Meditating on the Situation of Schools in our Provinces, my Mind hath, at Times, been affected with Sorrow, and under these Exercises it hath appeared to me, that if those who have large Estates, were faithful Stewards, and laid no Rent, nor Interest, nor other Demands, higher than is consistent with universal Love; and those in lower Circumstances would, under a moderate Employ, shun unnecessary Expence, even to the smallest Article; and all unite in humbly seeking to the Lord, he would graciously instruct us, and strengthen us, to relieve the Youth from various Snares, in which many of them are entangled.
Meditating on the Situation of Schools in our Provinces, I have sometimes felt sorrow, and during these reflections, it has occurred to me that if those with substantial wealth were responsible stewards and did not impose any rent, interest, or other demands that exceeded what aligns with universal love; and if those in less fortunate circumstances would avoid unnecessary expenses, even on the smallest items, under a reasonable workload; and if everyone came together to humbly seek the Lord, He would kindly guide us and empower us to help free the youth from the various traps many of them find themselves in.
ON THE RIGHT USE OF THE LORD'S OUTWARD GIFTS
As our Understandings are opened by the pure Light, we experience that, through an inward approaching to God, the Mind is strengthened in Obedience; and that by gratifying those Desires which are not of his begetting, those Approaches to him are obstructed, and the deceivable Spirit gains Strength.
As our understanding is illuminated by pure light, we find that by moving closer to God, our minds become stronger in obedience. However, if we indulge in desires that aren't created by Him, we block our paths to Him, allowing the deceptive spirit to gain power.
These Truths, being as it were engraven upon our Hearts, and our everlasting Interest in Christ evidently concerned herein, we become fervently engaged, that nothing may be nourished which tends to feed Pride or Self-love in us. Thus in pure Obedience, we are not only instructed in our Duty to God, but also in the Affairs which necessarily relate to this Life, and the Spirit of Truth which guides into all Truth, leavens the Mind with a pious Concern, that whatsoever we do in Word or Deed, may be done in his Name, Col. iii. 17.
These truths, engraved on our hearts, along with our lasting interest in Christ, motivate us to actively ensure that nothing fosters pride or self-love within us. Therefore, through genuine obedience, we not only learn our responsibilities to God but also understand the matters that relate to this life. The Spirit of Truth, which leads us into all truth, inspires us with a sincere concern so that whatever we do in word or deed may be done in his name, Col. iii. 17.
Hence such Buildings, Furniture, Food, and Raiment, as best answer our Necessities, and are the least likely to feed that selfish Spirit which is our Enemy, are the most acceptable to us.
Therefore, buildings, furniture, food, and clothing that best meet our needs and are least likely to encourage that selfish spirit which is our enemy are the most appreciated by us.
In this State the Mind is tender, and inwardly watchful, that the Love of Gain draw us not into any Business, which may weaken our Love to our Heavenly Father, or bring unnecessary Trouble to any of his Creatures.
In this state, the mind is sensitive and carefully observant, so that the desire for profit does not lead us into any activities that could weaken our love for our Heavenly Father or cause unnecessary trouble for any of His creations.
Thus the Way gradually opens to cease from that Spirit which craves Riches and Things fetched far, which so mixeth with the Customs of this World, and so intrudes upon the true Harmony of Life, that the right Medium of Labour is very much departed from. And as the Minds of People are settled in a steady Concern, not to hold nor possess any Thing but what may be held consistent with the Wisdom from above, they consider what[Pg 174] they possess as the Gift of God, and are inwardly exercised, that in all Parts of their Conduct they may act agreeable to the Nature of the peaceable Government of Christ.
Thus the Way gradually opens to let go of the Spirit that craves wealth and material things from afar, which mixes too much with the customs of this world and disrupts the true harmony of life, causing a significant departure from the right balance of work. As people’s minds become focused on not acquiring anything that isn’t in line with the wisdom from above, they view what[Pg 174] they have as a gift from God and are deeply committed to ensuring that in all aspects of their lives, they act in accordance with the nature of Christ's peaceful governance.
A little supports such a Life; and in a State truly resigned to the Lord, the Eye is single, to see what outward Employ he leads into, as a Means of our Subsistence, and a lively Care is maintained to hold to that without launching further.
A little is enough to support such a life; and in a state that is truly surrendered to the Lord, the focus is clear, to see what external work He leads us to as a means of our livelihood, and there is a genuine effort to stick to that without seeking anything more.
There is a Harmony in the several Parts of this Divine Work in the Hearts of People; he who leads them to cease from those gainful Employments, carried on in that Wisdom which is from beneath, delivers also from the Desire after worldly Greatness, and reconciles the Mind to a Life so plain, that a little doth suffice.
There is a harmony in the different aspects of this divine work within people's hearts; those who guide them to move away from those profitable activities driven by earthly wisdom also free them from the desire for worldly greatness and help the mind find contentment in such a simple life that even a little is enough.
Here the real Comforts of Life are not lessened. Moderate Exercise, in the Way of true Wisdom, is pleasant both to Mind and Body.
Here, the true comforts of life remain intact. A moderate amount of exercise, in the pursuit of genuine wisdom, is enjoyable for both the mind and body.
Food and Raiment sufficient, though in the greatest Simplicity, is accepted with Content and Gratitude.
Food and clothing, even in their simplest form, are accepted with contentment and gratitude.
The mutual Love, subsisting between the faithful Followers of Christ, is more pure than that Friendship which is not seasoned with Humility, how specious soever the Appearance.
The mutual love among the faithful followers of Christ is purer than that friendship which lacks humility, no matter how appealing it may seem.
Where People depart from pure Wisdom in one Case, it is often an Introduction to depart from it in many more; and thus a Spirit which seeks for outward Greatness, and leads into worldly Wisdom to attain it, and support it, gets Possession of the Mind.
Where people stray from true Wisdom in one instance, it often opens the door to straying in many others; and so a mindset that seeks external greatness, leading to worldly knowledge to achieve and maintain it, takes control of the mind.
In beholding the customary Departure from the true Medium of Labour, and that unnecessary Toil which many go through, in supporting outward Greatness, and procuring Delicacies.
In observing the usual departure from the genuine nature of work and the unnecessary effort that many exert to maintain external status and acquire luxuries.
In beholding how the true Calmness of Life is changed into Hurry, and that many, by eagerly pursuing outward Treasure, are in great Danger of withering as to the inward State of the Mind.
In seeing how the true peace of life turns into chaos, and that many, by desperately chasing after external wealth, are in serious danger of losing their inner well-being.
In meditating on the Works of this Spirit, and on the Desolations it makes amongst the Professors of Christianity, I may thankfully acknowledge, that I often feel pure Love beget Longings in my Heart, for the[Pg 175] Exaltation of the peaceable Kingdom of Christ, and an Engagement to labour according to the Gift bestowed on me, for the promoting an humble, plain, temperate Way of living. A Life where no unnecessary Care, nor Expences, may incumber our Minds, nor lessen our Ability to do Good; where no Desires after Riches, or Greatness, may lead into hard Dealing; where no Connections with worldly-minded Men, may abate our Love to God, nor weaken a true Zeal for Righteousness. A Life wherein we may diligently labour for Resignedness to do, and suffer, whatever our Heavenly Father may allot for us, in reconciling the World to himself.
While reflecting on the work of this Spirit and the desolation it causes among the followers of Christianity, I can gratefully say that I often feel pure love stir longings in my heart for the[Pg 175] upliftment of the peaceful Kingdom of Christ, and a commitment to work according to the gifts I've been given, to promote a humble, straightforward, and balanced way of living. A life free from unnecessary worries and expenses that burden our minds or reduce our ability to do good; where desires for wealth and status don’t lead to dishonest behavior; where associations with worldly people don’t dampen our love for God or weaken our true enthusiasm for righteousness. A life where we can actively strive for the willingness to do and endure whatever our Heavenly Father has planned for us, in bringing the world back to Himself.
When the Prophet Isaiah had uttered his Vision, and declared that a Time was coming wherein Swords should be beat into Plowshares, and Spears into pruning Hooks, and that Nation shall not lift up Sword against Nation, nor learn War any more; he immediately directs the Minds of People to the Divine Teacher, in this remarkable Language; O House of Jacob! come ye, and let us walk in the Light of the Lord, Isaiah ii. 5.
When the Prophet Isaiah shared his Vision and announced that a time would come when swords would be turned into plowshares and spears into pruning hooks, and that nation would not lift up sword against nation, nor learn war anymore; he immediately turns the people's attention to the Divine Teacher with these striking words: O House of Jacob! come, let us walk in the Light of the Lord, Isaiah ii. 5.
To wait for the Direction of this Light, in all temporal as well as spiritual Concerns, appears necessary; for if in any Case we enter lightly into temporal Affairs, without feeling this Spirit of Truth to open our Way therein, and through the Love of this World proceed on, and seek for Gain by that Business or Traffick, which is not of the Father, but of the World, 1 John ii. 16 we fail in our Testimony to the Purity and Peace of his Government, and get into that which is for Chastisement.
To wait for the guidance of this Light in both our everyday and spiritual matters seems essential. If we dive into worldly affairs without feeling the Spirit of Truth leading us, and let our love for this world drive us to pursue profit through activities that are not of the Father, but of the World, 1 John ii. 16, we compromise our witness to the purity and peace of His governance and end up in situations that call for correction.
This Matter hath lain heavy on my Mind, it being evident, that a Life less humble, less simple and plain, than that which Christ leads his Sheep into, does necessarily require a Support, which pure Wisdom does not provide for; hence there is no Probability of our being a peculiar People, so zealous of good Works, as to have no Fellowship with Works of Darkness, Titus ii. 14. Ephes. v. 11. while we have Wants to supply which have their Foundation in Custom, and do not come within the Meaning of those Expressions, your Heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these Things, Mat. vi. 32.[Pg 176]
This issue has weighed heavily on my mind, as it’s clear that a life less humble, simpler, and more straightforward than the one Christ leads his followers into requires support that pure wisdom doesn’t provide. Therefore, there’s little chance of us being a peculiar people, so zealous of good works, as to have no fellowship with works of darkness, Titus ii. 14. Ephes. v. 11. while we have needs to fulfill that are based in custom and don’t align with the meaning of those words, your Heavenly Father knows that you have need of all these things, Mat. vi. 32.[Pg 176]
These Things which he beholds necessary for his People, he fails not to give them in his own Way and Time; but as his Ways are above our Ways, and his Thoughts above our Thoughts, so imaginary Wants are different from these Things which he knoweth that we have need of.
These things that he sees as essential for his people, he makes sure to provide in his own way and time; but just as his ways are higher than our ways, and his thoughts higher than our thoughts, imaginary wants are different from the things that he knows we truly need.
As my Meditations have been on these Things, Compassion hath filled my Heart toward my Fellow Creatures, involved in Customs, grown up in the Wisdom of this World, which is Foolishness with God, 1 Cor. iii. 19. And O that the Youth may be so thoroughly experienced in an humble Walking before the Lord, that they may be his Children, and know him to be their Refuge, their safe unfailing Refuge, through the various Dangers attending this uncertain State of Being!
As I’ve reflected on these matters, compassion has filled my heart for my fellow beings, caught up in customs and shaped by the wisdom of this world, which is foolishness to God, 1 Cor. iii. 19. And I hope that young people can be so deeply rooted in a humble walk before the Lord that they may truly be His children and recognize Him as their refuge, their safe and unwavering refuge, amid the various dangers that come with this uncertain state of existence!
If those whose Minds are redeemed from the Love of Wealth, and who are content with a plain, simple Way of living, do yet find that to conduct the Affairs of a Family, without giving Countenance to unrighteous Proceedings, or having Fellowship with Works of Darkness, the most diligent Care is necessary.
If those who have freed themselves from the love of money and are happy with a simple, uncomplicated way of life still find that managing a family requires the utmost care without supporting unfair practices or engaging in immoral actions, it's clear that diligent effort is essential.
If Customs, distinguishable from universal Righteousness, and opposite to the true Self-denying Life, are now prevalent, and so mixed with Trade, and with almost every Employ, that it is only through humble waiting on the inward Guidance of Truth, that we may reasonably hope to walk safely, and support an uniform Testimony to the peaceable Government of Christ:
If customs, which are different from universal righteousness and contrary to the genuine self-denying life, are now widespread and so intertwined with trade and nearly every profession that the only way we can reasonably hope to navigate safely and maintain a consistent testimony to the peaceable governance of Christ is through patiently seeking the inner guidance of truth:
If this be the Case, how lamentably do they expose themselves to Temptations, who give way to the Love of Riches, conform to expensive Living, and reach forth for Gain, to support Customs, which our Holy Shepherd leads not into.
If this is the case, how sadly do they put themselves at risk of temptations, who surrender to the love of money, adapt to a lavish lifestyle, and strive for profit to maintain practices that our Holy Shepherd does not endorse.
CONSIDERATIONS ON THE TRUE HARMONY OF MANKIND, AND
How it is to be maintained.
By JOHN WOOLMAN
And the Remnant of Jacob shall be in the midst of many People, as the Dew from the Lord, as the Showers upon the Grass, that tarrieth not for Man, nor waiteth for the Sons of Men, Micah v. 7.
And the rest of the people of Jacob will be among many nations, like the dew from the Lord, like the rain on the grass, which doesn’t wait for anyone or rely on humans, Micah v. 7.
LONDON:
Re-printed by Mary Hinde.
LONDON:
Reprinted by Mary Hinde.
THE INTRODUCTION
As Mankind from one Parent are divided into many Families, and as Trading to Sea is greatly increased within a few Ages past; amidst this extended Commerce how necessary is it that the professed Followers of Christ keep sacred his Holy Name, and be employed about Trade and Traffick no farther than Justice and Equity evidently accompanies? That we may give no just Cause of Offence to any, however distant, or unable to plead their own Cause; and may continually keep in View the Spreading of the true and saving Knowledge of God, and his Son Jesus Christ, amongst our Fellow Creatures, which through his infinite Love some feel to be more precious than any other Treasure.[Pg 180]
As humanity is divided into many families from a single parent, and as trade by sea has greatly increased in recent ages, it is essential that the dedicated followers of Christ honor His holy name and engage in trade and commerce only when it is accompanied by justice and fairness. We should avoid giving anyone a valid reason to take offense, regardless of their distance or inability to defend themselves. We must also keep in mind the importance of spreading the true and life-saving knowledge of God and His Son, Jesus Christ, among our fellow beings, which, through His infinite love, some find more valuable than any other treasure.[Pg 180]
CONSIDERATIONS ON THE TRUE HARMONY OF MANKIND &c.
CHAPTER I
On serving the Lord in our outward Employments
On serving the Lord in our everyday work
Under the humbling Dispensations of the Father of Mercies, I have felt an inward Labour for the Good of my Fellow Creatures, and a Concern that the Holy Spirit, which alone can restore Mankind to a State of true Harmony, may with Singleness of Heart be waited for and followed.
Under the humbling guidance of the Father of Mercies, I have experienced a deep desire to help my fellow beings, and a concern that the Holy Spirit, which is the only force that can bring humanity back to a state of true harmony, may be sought and embraced with sincerity.
I trust there are many under that Visitation, which if faithfully attended to, will make them quick of Understanding in the Fear of the Lord, and qualify with Firmness to be true Patterns of the Christian Life, who in Living and Walking may hold forth an Invitation to others, to come out of the Entanglements of the Spirit of this World.
I believe there are many who, under that guidance, will develop a sharp understanding of the Lord and be strengthened to be true examples of the Christian life. By living and walking in this way, they can invite others to break free from the entanglements of the spirit of this world.
And that which I feel first to express is, a Care for those who are in Circumstances, which appear difficult, with respect to supporting their Families in a Way answerable to pure Wisdom, that they may not be discouraged, but remember that in humbly obeying the Leadings of Christ, he owneth us as his Friends, Ye are my Friends if ye do whatsoever I command you; and to be a Friend to Christ, is to be united to him, who hath all Power in Heaven and in Earth; and though a Woman may forget her sucking Child, yet will he not forget his faithful Ones.[Pg 182]
And what I want to express first is a concern for those who are in situations that seem tough when it comes to supporting their families in a way that's aligned with true wisdom. I hope they won’t feel discouraged but remember that by humbly following Christ’s guidance, he calls us his friends, You are my friends if you do whatever I command you; and being a friend of Christ means being connected to him, who has all power in heaven and on earth. Even if a woman may forget her nursing child, he will never forget his faithful ones.[Pg 182]
The Condition of many who dwell in Cities hath often affected me with a Brotherly Sympathy, attended with a Desire that Resignation may be laboured for; and where the Holy Leader directeth to a Country Life, or some Change of Employ, he may be faithfully followed; for, under the refining Hand of the Lord, I have seen that the Inhabitants of some Cities are greatly increased through some Branches of Business which the Holy Spirit doth not lead into, and that being entangled in these Things, tends to bring a Cloud over the Minds of People convinced of the Leadings of this Holy Leader, and obstructs the coming of the Kingdom of Christ on Earth as it is in Heaven.
The situation of many who live in cities has often moved me with a sense of brotherly compassion, coupled with a wish for patience to be cultivated; and where the Holy Leader guides toward a rural lifestyle or a change of work, that path should be followed faithfully. For, under the refining hand of the Lord, I've observed that the population of some cities has greatly grown due to certain types of businesses that the Holy Spirit does not endorse. Getting caught up in these matters tends to cloud the minds of those who are aware of this Holy Leader's guidance and hinders the arrival of the Kingdom of Christ on Earth as it is in Heaven.
Now if we indulge a Desire to imitate our Neighbours in those Things which harmonise not with the true Christian Walking, these Entanglements may hold fast to us, and some, who in an awakening Time, feel tender Scruples, with respect to their Manner of Life, may look on the Example of others more noted in the Church, who yet may not be refined from every Degree of Dross; and by looking on these Examples, and desiring to support their Families in a Way pleasant to the natural Mind, there may be Danger of the Worldly Wisdom gaining Strength in them, and of their Departure from that pure Feeling of Truth, which if faithfully attended to, would teach Contentment in the Divine Will, even in a very low Estate.
Now, if we give in to the urge to imitate our neighbors in ways that don’t align with true Christian living, these distractions might hold onto us. Some people, during a time of awakening, may have serious doubts about their lifestyle and might look at others in the Church who are more prominent, but who may not be free from flaws. By focusing on these examples and wanting to support their families in a way that feels natural, there’s a risk that worldly wisdom could gain influence over them, leading them away from that pure sense of truth which, if genuinely followed, would encourage contentment with God’s will, even in difficult circumstances.
One formerly speaking on the Profitableness of true Humility saith, "He that troubles not himself with anxious Thoughts for more than is necessary, lives little less than the Life of Angels, whilst by a Mind content with little, he imitates their want of nothing." Cave's Prim. Christi. Page 31.
One who used to discuss the value of true humility says, "He who doesn't burden himself with unnecessary worries lives almost like the angels, as a content mind with little mirrors their completeness." Cave's Prim. Christi. Page 31.
"It is not enough," says Tertullian, "that a Christian be chaste and modest, but he must appear to be so: A Virtue of which he should have so great a Store, that it should flow from his Mind upon his Habit, and break from the Retirements of his Conscience, into the Superficies of his Life." Same Book, Page 43.
"It’s not enough," says Tertullian, "for a Christian to be chaste and modest; they must also seem that way. They should have such a wealth of virtue that it spills over from their mind into their behavior and shines through their everyday life." Same Book, Page 43.
"The Garments we wear," says Clemens, "ought to[Pg 183] be mean and frugal—that is true Simplicity of Habit, which takes away what is vain and superfluous, that the best and most solid Garment, which is the farthest from Curiosity." Page 49.
"The clothes we wear," says Clemens, "should be simple and modest—that is true simplicity of lifestyle, which removes anything vain and unnecessary, leaving us with the best and most durable garment, which is free from curiosity." Page 49.
Though the Change from Day to Night, is by a Motion so gradual as scarcely to be perceived, yet when Night is come we behold it very different from the Day; and thus as People become wise in their own Eyes, and prudent in their own Sight, Customs rise up from the Spirit of this World, and spread by little, and little, till a Departure from the Simplicity that there is in Christ becomes as distinguishable as Light from Darkness, to such who are crucified to the World.
Though the transition from day to night happens so subtly that it’s hardly noticed, when night arrives, we see it's completely different from day; similarly, as people become wise in their own eyes and act wisely in their own judgment, customs emerge from the spirit of this world and gradually spread until a departure from the simplicity found in Christ becomes as obvious as light is from darkness to those who are detached from the world.
Our Holy Shepherd, to encourage his Flock in Firmness and Perseverance, reminds them of his Love for them; As the Father hath loved me, so have I loved you; continue ye in my Love. And in another Place graciously points out the Danger of departing therefrom, by going into unsuitable Employments; this he represents in the Similitude of Offence from that useful active Member, the Hand; and to fix the Instruction the deeper, names the right Hand; If thy right Hand offend thee, cut it off and cast it from thee—If thou feelest Offence in thy Employment, humbly follow him who leads into all Truth, and is a strong and faithful Friend to those who are resigned to him.
Our Holy Shepherd, to encourage his flock in strength and perseverance, reminds them of his love for them; As the Father has loved me, so have I loved you; remain in my love. And in another place, he graciously points out the danger of straying from it by getting involved in unsuitable activities; he illustrates this with the example of offense from the useful and active member, the hand; and to make the lesson resonate even more, he refers to the right hand; If your right hand causes you to stumble, cut it off and throw it away.—If you feel discomfort in your work, humbly follow him who leads into all truth and is a strong and faithful friend to those who surrender to him.
Again, he points out those Things which appearing pleasant to the natural Mind, are not best for us, in the Similitude of Offence from the Eye; If thy right Eye offend thee, pluck it out and cast it from thee. To pluck out the Eye, or cut off the Hand, is attended with sharp Pain; and how precious is the Instruction which our Redeemer thus opens to us, that we may not faint under the most painful Trial, but put our Trust in him, even in him who sent an Angel to feed Elijah in the Wilderness; who fed a Multitude with a few Barley Loaves, and is now as attentive to the Wants of his People as ever.
Again, he points out that things that seem appealing to our natural instincts aren’t necessarily good for us, similar to the idea of offensive things to the eye; If your right eye causes you to stumble, gouge it out and throw it away. Gouging out an eye or cutting off a hand comes with intense pain; how precious is the guidance our Redeemer provides, so we don’t give up during the most painful trials, but instead put our trust in Him—yes, in Him who sent an angel to feed Elijah in the wilderness, who fed a multitude with just a few barley loaves, and who is as attentive to the needs of His people as ever.
The Prophet Isaiah represents the unrighteous Doings of the Israelites toward the Poor, as the Fruits of an effeminate Life; As for my People, Children are their[Pg 184] Oppressors, and Women rule over them: What mean ye, that ye beat my People to pieces, and grind the Faces of the Poor? saith the Lord God. Then he mentions the Haughtiness of the Daughters of Sion, and enumerates many Ornaments, as Instances of their Vanity; to uphold which, the Poor were so hardly dealt with, that he sets forth their Poverty, their Leanness and Inability to help themselves, in the Similitude of a Man maimed by Violence, or beaten to pieces, and forced to endure the painful Operation of having his Face gradually worn away in the manner of grinding.
The Prophet Isaiah highlights the wrongdoings of the Israelites toward the Poor as a result of a weak lifestyle. As for my People, children are their[Pg 184] oppressors, and women dominate them: What do you mean by beating my People to pieces and grinding the Faces of the Poor? says the Lord God. He then talks about the arrogance of the Daughters of Sion and lists many ornaments as examples of their vanity; to maintain which, the Poor suffered so greatly that he portrays their poverty, their frailty, and their inability to help themselves as being like a man who has been severely injured or beaten down, forced to endure the painful process of having his face slowly ground away.
And I may here add, that at Times, when I have felt true Love open my Heart towards my Fellow Creatures, and being engaged in weighty Conversation in the Cause of Righteousness, the Instructions I have received under these Exercises, in Regard to the true Use of the outward Gifts of God, have made deep and lasting Impressions on my Mind.
And I should add that there have been times when I’ve felt genuine love open my heart toward my fellow human beings, and while engaging in significant conversations about what’s right, the lessons I’ve learned through these experiences regarding the true use of God’s gifts have made a deep and lasting impression on my mind.
I have here beheld, how the Desire to provide Wealth, and to uphold a delicate Life, hath grievously entangled many, and been like Snares to their Offspring; and tho' some have been affected with a Sense of their Difficulties, and appeared desirous, at Times, to be helped out of them; yet for want of abiding under the humbling Power of Truth, they have continued in these Entanglements; for in remaining conformable to this World, and giving Way to a delicate Life, this expensive Way of living, in Parents, and in Children, hath called for a large Supply, and in answering this Call the Faces of the Poor have been ground away, and made thin through hard Dealing.
I’ve seen how the desire to achieve wealth and maintain a comfortable lifestyle has seriously trapped many people, acting like snares for their children. Even though some have recognized their struggles and have seemed, at times, to want help getting out of them, they’ve remained stuck due to a lack of humility before the powerful truth. By staying compliant with this world and choosing a comfortable life, this costly way of living in both parents and children has demanded a lot of resources. In trying to meet this demand, the faces of the poor have become worn and thin from harsh treatment.
There is Balm, there is a Physician; and O what Longings do I feel! that we may embrace the Means appointed for our Healing, know that removed which now ministers Cause for the Cries of many People to ascend to Heaven against their Oppressors, and that we may see the true Harmony restored.
There is a balm, there is a healer; and oh, how I long for us to use the means provided for our healing, to have what now causes the cries of many people to rise to heaven against their oppressors removed, and to see true harmony restored.
Behold how good and how pleasant it is, for Brethren to dwell together in Unity. The Nature of this Unity is thus opened by the Apostle; If we walk in the Light, as Christ[Pg 185] is in the Light, we shall have Fellowship one with another, and the Blood of Christ will cleanse us from all Sin.
Look at how good and pleasant it is for brothers to live together in unity. The Apostle explains the nature of this unity: If we live in the light, just as Christ[Pg 185] is in the light, we will have fellowship with one another, and the blood of Christ will cleanse us from all sin.
The Land may be polluted with innocent Blood, which like the Blood of Abel may cry to the Almighty; but those who walk in the Light, as Christ is in the Light, they know the Lamb of God, who taketh away Sin.
The land may be tainted with innocent blood, which like Abel's blood may cry out to God; but those who walk in the light, just as Christ is in the light, know the Lamb of God who takes away sin.
Walking is a Phrase frequently used in Scripture, to represent our Journey thro' Life, and appears to comprehend the various Affairs and Transactions properly relating to our being in this World.
Walking is a term commonly found in Scripture, representing our journey through life, and it seems to cover the various activities and interactions that are relevant to our existence in this world.
Christ being the Light, dwells always in the Light; and if our walking be thus, and in every Affair and Concern we faithfully follow this Divine Leader, he preserves from giving just Cause for any to quarrel with us: And where this Foundation is laid, and mutually kept to, by Families conversant with each other, the Way is open for these Comforts in Society, which our Heavenly Father intends as a Part of our Happiness in this World; and then we may experience the Goodness, and Pleasantness of dwelling together in Unity; but where Ways of Living take place, which tend to Oppression, and in the Pursuit of Wealth, People do that to others which they know would not be acceptable to themselves, either in exercising an absolute Power over them, or otherwise laying on them unequitable Burdens; here a Fear lest that Measure should be meted to them, which they have measured to others, incites a Care to support that by Craft and cunning Devices which stands not on the firm Foundation of Righteousness: Thus the Harmony of Society is broken, and from hence Commotions and Wars do frequently arise in the World.
Christ, as the Light, always resides in the Light; and if we walk in this way, faithfully following this Divine Leader in every aspect and concern of our lives, He keeps us from giving anyone a reason to argue with us. When this foundation is established and maintained by families that interact with each other, it paves the way for the comforts in society that our Heavenly Father intends as part of our happiness in this world. Then we can truly experience the goodness and joy of living together in unity. However, when lifestyles emerge that lead to oppression and a relentless pursuit of wealth, people often treat others in ways they know would not be acceptable to themselves, whether by exercising absolute power over them or by imposing unfair burdens. This creates a fear of receiving the same treatment they have given to others, prompting them to support their actions through deceit and cunning, which aren't built on the solid ground of righteousness. As a result, the harmony of society is disrupted, leading to commotions and wars that frequently arise in the world.
Come out of Babylon my People, that ye be not Partakers of her Sins, and that ye receive not of her Plagues. Rev. xv. 3, 4. This Babel, or Babylon, was built in the Spirit of Self-exaltation: Let us build us a City and a Tower, whose Top may reach to Heaven, and let us make us a Name. Gen. xi. 4. In departing from an humble Trust in God, and following a selfish Spirit, People have Intentions to get the upperhand of their Fellow Creatures, privately meditate on Means to obtain their Ends, have a Language[Pg 186] in their Hearts which is hard to understand. In Babel the Language is confounded.
Come out of Babylon my People, so you don't share in her sins and don't suffer from her plagues. Rev. xv. 3, 4. This Babel, or Babylon, was created in a spirit of self-promotion: Let’s build a city and a tower that reaches to heaven, and let’s make a name for ourselves. Gen. xi. 4. By turning away from a humble trust in God and embracing a selfish spirit, people intend to dominate their fellow beings, secretly plot ways to achieve their goals, and have a mindset[Pg 186] that is hard to understand. In Babel, the language is confused.
This City is represented as a Place of Business, and those employed in it, as Merchants of the Earth: The Merchants of the Earth are waxed rich through the Abundance of her Delicacies. Rev. xviii. 3.
This city is shown as a business hub, and the people working there are seen as the merchants of the world: The merchants of the earth have grown rich from the abundance of her luxuries. Rev. xviii. 3.
And it is remarkable in this Call, that the Language from the Father of Mercies is, my People, Come out of Babylon my People. Thus his tender Mercies are toward us in an imperfect State; and as we faithfully attend to the Call, the Path of Righteousness is more and more opened; Cravings, which have not their Foundation in pure Wisdom, more and more cease; and in an inward Purity of Heart, we experience a Restoration of that which was lost at Babel, represented by the inspired Prophet in the returning of a pure Language. Zeph. iii. 9.
And it’s striking in this Call that the message from the Father of Mercies is, "my People, Come out of Babylon my People". His gentle Mercies are directed toward us even in an imperfect state; and as we faithfully respond to the Call, the Path of Righteousness becomes more and more clear; desires that aren’t rooted in true Wisdom gradually fade away; and with a sincere purity of heart, we find a restoration of what was lost at Babel, symbolized by the inspired Prophet as the returning of a pure Language. Zeph. iii. 9.
Happy for them who humbly attend to the Call, Come out of Babylon my People. For though in going forth we may meet with Trials, which for a Time may be painful, yet as we bow in true Humility, and continue in it, an Evidence is felt that God only is wise; and that in weaning us from all that is selfish he prepares the Way to a quiet Habitation, where all our Desires are bounded by his Wisdom. And an Exercise of Spirit attends me, that we who are convinced of the pure Leadings of Truth, may bow in the deepest Reverence, and so watchfully regard this Leader, that many who are grievously entangled in a Wilderness of vain Customs, may look upon us and be instructed. And O that such who have Plenty of this World's Goods, may be faithful in that with which they are entrusted! and Example others in the true Christian Walking.
Happy for those who humbly respond to the Call, Come out of Babylon my People. For although stepping out may bring challenges that are painful for a while, as we stay truly humble and continue in that state, we begin to feel that only God is wise; and that in freeing us from all that is selfish, He is preparing the way to a peaceful place, where all our desires are guided by His wisdom. I feel a deep responsibility that we, who are convinced of the pure guidance of Truth, may bow in the deepest respect, and watchfully follow this Leader, so that many who are caught in a tangle of empty traditions may look to us and be inspired. And oh, that those who have plenty of the world's goods may be trustworthy with what they have been given! Let them set an example for others in true Christian living.
Our blessed Saviour, speaking on Worldly Greatness, compares himself to one waiting and attending on a Company at Dinner; Whether is greater, he that sitteth at Meat or he that serveth? Is not he that sitteth at Meat? But I am amongst you as he that serveth. Luke xxii. 27.
Our blessed Savior, discussing worldly greatness, compares himself to someone waiting on a group at dinner; Who is greater, the one who sits at the table or the one who serves? Isn't it the one who sits at the table? But I am among you as one who serves. Luke 22:27.
Thus in a World greatly disordered, where Men aspiring to outward Greatness were wont to oppress others to support their Designs, he who was of the highest Descent,[Pg 187] being the Son of God, and greater than any amongst the greatest Families of Men, by his Example and Doctrines foreclosed his Followers from claiming any Shew of outward Greatness, from any supposed Superiority in themselves, or derived from their Ancestors.
Thus in a world that is highly chaotic, where people seeking outward greatness often oppressed others to achieve their goals, he who was of the highest descent,[Pg 187] being the Son of God and greater than any of the noble families, through his example and teachings prevented his followers from claiming any semblance of outward greatness, based on any supposed superiority in themselves or from their ancestors.
He who was greater than Earthly Princes, was not only meek and low of Heart, but his outward Appearance was plain and lowly, and free from every Stain of the Spirit of this World.
He who was greater than earthly rulers was not only gentle and humble, but his outward appearance was simple and modest, and free from any blemish of the spirit of this world.
Such was the Example of our blessed Redeemer, of whom the beloved Disciple said, He that saith he abideth in him, ought also to walk even as he walked.
Such was the example of our blessed Redeemer, of whom the beloved disciple said, Whoever claims to live in him must walk as Jesus did.
John Bradford, who suffered Martyrdom under Queen Mary, wrote a Letter to his Friends out of Prison, a short Time before he was burnt, in which are these Expressions; "Consider your Dignity as Children of God, and Temples of the Holy Ghost, and Members of Christ, be ashamed therefore to think, speak, or do any Thing unseemly, for God's Children, and the Members of Christ." Fox's Acts and Mon. Page 1177.
John Bradford, who was martyred under Queen Mary, wrote a letter to his friends from prison shortly before he was executed, in which he said: "Remember your dignity as children of God, temples of the Holy Spirit, and members of Christ. Therefore, be ashamed to think, say, or do anything inappropriate for God's children and the members of Christ." Fox's Acts and Mon. Page 1177.
CHAPTER II
On the Example of CHRIST
On the Example of Christ
As my Mind hath been brought into a Brotherly Feeling with the Poor, as to the Things of this Life, who are under Trials in regard to getting a Living in a Way answerable to the Purity of Truth; a Labour of Heart hath attended me, that their Way may not be made difficult through the Love of Money in those who are tried with plentiful Estates, but that they with Tenderness of Heart may sympathize with them.
As my mind has been aligned with the struggles of the poor in this life, who are facing challenges in making a living that reflects the truth; I have felt a deep concern that their path isn’t made harder by the love of money in those who have abundant wealth, but that those with wealth may empathize with them compassionately.
It was the Saying of our blessed Redeemer, Ye cannot serve God and Mammon. There is a deep Feeling of the Way of Purity, a Way in which the Wisdom of the World hath no Part, but is opened by the Spirit of Truth, and is called the Way of Holiness; a Way in which the Traveller is employed in watching unto Prayer; and the outward Gain we get in this Journey is considered as a Trust committed to us, by him who formed and supports the World; and is the rightful Director of the Use and Application of the Product of it.
It was the saying of our blessed Redeemer, You cannot serve God and money. There is a deep understanding of the path of purity, a path where the wisdom of the world has no part, but is revealed by the Spirit of Truth, and is called the Way of Holiness; a path where the traveler focuses on prayer, and the external rewards we gain on this journey are seen as a trust given to us by the one who created and sustains the world; and is the rightful guide for the use and application of its fruits.
Now except the Mind be preserved chaste, there is no Safety for us; but in an Estrangement from true Resignation, the Spirit of the World casts up a Way, in which Gain is many Times principally attended to, and in which there is a selfish Application of outward Treasures.
Now, unless the mind is kept pure, there’s no safety for us; however, when we stray from true resignation, the spirit of the world creates a path where profit often takes precedence, leading to a self-centered use of external riches.
How agreeable to the true Harmony of Society, is that Exhortation of the Apostle? Look not every Man on his own Things, but every Man also on the Things of others. Let this Mind be in you which was also in Christ Jesus.
How beneficial to the true harmony of society is that encouragement from the Apostle? Don’t just focus on your own interests, but also consider the interests of others. Have the same mindset as Christ Jesus.
A Person in outward Prosperity may have the Power of obtaining Riches, but the same Mind being in him which is in Christ Jesus, he may feel a Tenderness of Heart towards those of low Degree; and instead of setting[Pg 189] himself above them, may look upon it as an unmerited Favour, that his Way through Life is more easy than the Way of many others; may improve every Opportunity of leading forth out of those Customs which have entangled the Family; employ his Time in looking into the Wants of the poor Members, and hold forth such a perfect Example of Humiliation, that the pure Witness may be reached in many Minds; and the Way opened for a harmonious walking together.
A person who appears successful may have the ability to acquire wealth, but if they share the same mindset as Christ Jesus, they might feel compassion for those less fortunate. Instead of elevating themselves above others, they may recognize it as an undeserved blessing that their life is easier than many. They can take every chance to help break the cycle of struggles that have affected their family, spend their time addressing the needs of those who are poor, and set a strong example of humility, inspiring others' inner awareness. This can create a path for everyone to walk harmoniously together.
Jesus Christ, in promoting the Happiness of others, was not deficient in looking for the Helpless, who lay in Obscurity, nor did he save any Thing to render himself honourable amongst Men, which might have been of more Use to the weak Members in his Father's Family; of whose Compassion towards us I may now speak a little. He who was perfectly happy in himself, moved with infinite Love, took not upon him the Nature of Angels, but our imperfect Natures, and therein wrestled with the Temptations which attend us in this Life; and being the Son of him who is greater than Earthly Princes, yet became a Companion to poor, sincere-hearted Men; and though he gave the clearest Evidence that Divine Power attended him, yet the most unfavourable Constructions were framed by a self-righteous People; those Miracles represented as the Effect of a diabolical Power, and Endeavours used to render him hateful, as having his Mission from the Prince of Darkness; nor did their Envy cease till they took him like a Criminal, and brought him to Trial. Though some may affect to carry the Appearance of being unmoved at the Apprehension of Distress, our dear Redeemer, who was perfectly sincere, having the same human Nature which we have, and feeling, a little before he was apprehended, the Weight of that Work upon him, for which he came into the World, was sorrowful even unto Death; here the human Nature struggled to be excused from a Cup so bitter; but his Prayers centered in Resignation, Not my Will but thine be done. In this Conflict, so great was his Agony, that Sweat like Drops of Blood fell from him to the Ground.
Jesus Christ, in seeking the happiness of others, was never lacking in his attention to those who were helpless and overlooked. He didn’t hold back anything that could have brought him honor among people, knowing it could be of greater use to the weaker members of his Father’s family. I can speak a little about his compassion towards us. He, who was entirely happy within himself, moved by infinite love, did not take on the nature of angels, but our imperfect nature, and in doing so, faced the temptations that come with this life. Being the Son of someone greater than earthly princes, he chose to be a companion to poor, sincere-hearted people. Even though he showed clear evidence of divine power, a self-righteous group twisted it into unfounded accusations, interpreting his miracles as the work of a diabolical force and trying to make him look hateful, claiming he was sent by the Prince of Darkness. Their envy continued until they captured him like a criminal and brought him to trial. While some may pretend to be unmoved by distress, our dear Redeemer, perfectly sincere and sharing our human nature, felt the weight of the mission he came to fulfill just before he was apprehended; he was sorrowful even unto death. In that moment, his human nature struggled to avoid such a bitter fate, but his prayers focused on submission: Not my will but thine be done. In this struggle, he experienced such great agony that sweat like drops of blood fell from him to the ground.
Behold now, as foretold by the Prophet, he is in a[Pg 190] judicial Manner numbered with the Transgressors! Behold him as some poor Man of no Reputation, standing before the High Priest and Elders, and before Herod and Pilate, where Witnesses appear against him, and he mindful of the most gracious Design of his Coming, declineth to plead in his own Defence, but as a Sheep that is dumb before the Shearer, so under many Accusations, Revilings, and Buffetings, remained silent. And though he signified to Peter, that he had Access to Power sufficient to overthrow all their outward Forces; yet retaining a Resignation to suffer for the Sins of Mankind, he exerted not that Power, but permitted them to go on in their malicious Designs, and pronounce him to be worthy of Death, even him who was perfect in Goodness; thus in his Humiliation his Judgment was taken away, and he, like some vile Criminal, led as a Lamb to the Slaughter. Under these heavy Trials (tho' poor unstable Pilate was convinced of his Innocence, yet) the People generally looked upon him as a Deceiver, a Blasphemer, and the approaching Punishment as a just Judgment upon him; They esteemed him smitten of God and afflicted. So great had been the Surprize of his Disciples, at his being taken by armed Men, that they forsook him, and fled; thus they hid their Faces from him, he was despised, and by their Conduct it appeared as though they esteemed him not.
Look now, as the Prophet predicted, he is in a[Pg 190] legal setting numbered with the wrongdoers! See him as just a poor man without any Reputation, standing before the High Priest and Elders, and before Herod and Pilate, where witnesses come against him, and being mindful of the kind purpose of his Coming, he chooses not to defend himself, but like a Sheep that is silent before the Shearer, he remains quiet under many accusations, insults, and beatings. And though he told Peter that he had the power to overthrow all their forces, he chose to accept suffering for humanity’s sins, not using that power, but allowing them to continue their malicious plans and declare him worthy of death, even him who was perfect in goodness; thus in his humiliation his judgment was taken away, and he, like some terrible criminal, led like a Lamb to the Slaughter. Despite heavy trials (though poor, unstable Pilate was convinced of his innocence), the people largely saw him as a deceiver, a blasphemer, and viewed the impending punishment as a fair judgment against him; They judged him to be smitten by God and afflicted. The shock of his arrest by armed men was so great that his disciples forsook him, and fled; they turned their backs on him, he was despised, and by their actions, it seemed as though they valued him not.
But contrary to that Opinion, of his being smitten of God and afflicted, it was for our Sakes that he was put to Grief; he was wounded for our Transgressions; he was bruised for our Iniquities; and under the Weight of them manifesting the deepest Compassion for the Instruments of his Misery, laboured as their Advocate, and in the Deeps of Affliction, with an unconquerable Patience, cried out, Father, forgive them, they know not what they do!
But contrary to that opinion that he was punished by God and suffering, it was for our sake that he was put to grief; he was wounded for our transgressions; he was bruised for our iniquities; and while bearing the weight of them, showing deep compassion for those who caused his misery, he worked as their advocate, and in the depths of his suffering, with unbreakable patience, cried out, Father, forgive them, they don’t know what they’re doing!
Now this Mind being in us, which was in Christ Jesus, it removes from our Hearts the Desire of Superiority, Worldly Honour, or Greatness; a deep Attention is felt to the Divine Counsellor, and an ardent Engagement to promote, as far as we may be enabled, the Happiness of Mankind universally: This State, where every Motion from a selfish Spirit yieldeth to pure Love, I may, with[Pg 191] Gratitude to the Father of Mercies acknowledge, is often opened before me as a Pearl to dig after; attended with a living Concern, that amongst the many Nations and Families on the Earth, those who believe in the Messiah, that he was manifested to destroy the Works of the Devil, and thus to take away the Sins of the World, may experience the Will of our Heavenly Father, may be done on Earth as it is in Heaven. Strong are the Desires I often feel, that this Holy Profession may remain unpolluted, and the Believers in Christ may so abide in the pure inward Feeling of his Spirit, that the Wisdom from above may shine forth in their Living, as a Light by which others may be instrumentally helped on their Way, in the true harmonious Walking.
Now, with the mindset that Christ Jesus had in us, it takes away our desire for superiority, worldly honor, or greatness. We feel a deep focus on the Divine Counselor and a strong commitment to promote, as much as we can, the happiness of all humanity. This state, where every move away from selfishness is replaced by pure love, I can, with gratitude to the Father of Mercies, acknowledge is often revealed to me like a pearl to be sought after. There is a genuine concern that among the many nations and families on Earth, those who believe in the Messiah—who was manifested to destroy the works of the Devil and to take away the sins of the world—may experience the will of our Heavenly Father, so that it may be done on Earth as it is in Heaven. I frequently feel a strong desire that this holy profession remains untainted, and that believers in Christ stay rooted in the pure inner feeling of His Spirit, allowing the wisdom from above to shine in their lives as a light that helps others on their journey in true harmonious living.
CHAPTER III
On Merchandizing
On Merchandising
Where the Treasures of pure Love are opened, and we obediently follow him who is the Light of Life, the Mind becomes chaste; and a Care is felt, that the Unction from the Holy One may be our Leader in every Undertaking.
Where the treasures of true love are revealed, and we willingly follow Him who is the Light of Life, the mind becomes pure; and we feel a responsibility that the guidance from the Holy One may lead us in every endeavor.
In being crucified to the World, broken off from that Friendship which is Enmity with God, and dead to the Customs and Fashions which have not their Foundation in the Truth; the Way is prepared to Lowliness in outward Living, and to a Disintanglement from those Snares which attends the Love of Money; and where the faithful Friends of Christ are so situated that Merchandize appears to be their Duty, they feel a Restraint from proceeding farther than he owns their Proceeding; being convinced that we are not our own, but are bought with a Price, that none of us may live to ourselves, but to him who died for us, 2 Cor. v. 15. Thus they are taught, not only to keep to a moderate Advance and Uprightness in their Dealings; but to consider the Tendency of their Proceeding; to do nothing which they know would operate against the Cause of universal Righteousness; and to keep continually in View the Spreading of the peaceable Kingdom of Christ amongst Mankind.
In being disconnected from the world, breaking away from that friendship which opposes God, and being indifferent to customs and trends that don’t have their basis in truth, the path is cleared for humility in how we live outwardly and for a release from the traps that come with the love of money. Where devoted followers of Christ find themselves in situations where commerce seems necessary, they feel a limit on how far they can go, only proceeding as long as they recognize His approval of their actions, convinced that we are not our own, but are bought with a Price, that none of us may live to ourselves, but to him who died for us, 2 Cor. v. 15. They learn to maintain a moderate approach and honesty in their dealings, while also considering the implications of their actions, ensuring they do nothing that would undermine the cause of universal righteousness, and keeping the goal of expanding the peaceful kingdom of Christ among humanity always in sight.
The Prophet Isaiah spake of the gathered Church, in the Similitude of a City, where many being employed were all preserved in Purity; They shall call them the Holy People, the Redeemed of the Lord, and thou shalt be called sought out, a City not forsaken, Isa. lxiii. 10. And the Apostle, after mentioning the Mystery of Christ's Sufferings, exhorts, Be ye Holy in all Manner of Conversation, 1 Pet. i. 15. There is a Conversation necessary in Trade; and there is a Conversation so foreign from the Nature of Christ's Kingdom, that it is represented in the[Pg 193] Similitude of one Man pushing another with a warlike Weapon; There is that speaketh like the Piercings of a Sword, Prov. xii. 18. Now in all our Concerns it is necessary that the Leading of the Spirit of Christ be humbly waited for, and faithfully followed, as the only Means of being preserved chaste as an Holy People, who in all Things are circumspect, Exod. xxiii. 13, that nothing we do may carry the Appearance of Approbation of the Works of Wickedness, make the Unrighteous more at Ease in Unrighteousness, or occasion the Injuries committed against the Oppressed to be more lightly looked over.
The Prophet Isaiah spoke of the gathered Church, comparing it to a City, where many are engaged and all are kept in Purity; They shall call them the Holy People, the Redeemed of the Lord, and you shall be called sought out, a City not forsaken, Isa. lxiii. 10. And the Apostle, after discussing the Mystery of Christ's Sufferings, urges, Be ye Holy in all Manner of Conversation, 1 Pet. i. 15. There is a way of talking that is necessary in Trade; and there is a way of talking so contrary to the Nature of Christ's Kingdom that it is depicted as one Man pushing another with a weapon; There is that speaketh like the Piercings of a Sword, Prov. xii. 18. Now in all our dealings, it is crucial that we humbly wait for and faithfully follow the Leading of the Spirit of Christ, as the only way to remain pure as a Holy People, who in all Things are circumspect, Exod. xxiii. 13, so that nothing we do may seem to support the Works of Wickedness, make the Unrighteous more comfortable in their wrongdoing, or cause the Injuries against the Oppressed to be dismissed lightly.
Where Morality is kept to, and supported by the Inhabitants of a Country, there is a certain Reproach attends those Individuals amongst them, who manifestly deviate therefrom. But where Iniquity is committed openly, and the Authors of it are not brought to Justice, nor put to Shame, their Hands grow strong. Thus the general Corruption of the Jews shortly before their State was broke up by the Chaldeans, is described by their Boldness in Impiety; for as their Leaders were connected together in Wickedness they strengthened one another, and grew confident; Were they ashamed when they had committed Abominations? Nay, they were not at all ashamed, neither could they blush, Jer. vi. 15, on which Account the Lord thus expostulates with them, What hath my Beloved to do in my House, seeing she hath wrought Lewdness with many, and the Holy Flesh is passed from thee; when thou doest Evil, then thou rejoicest, Jer. xi. 15.
Where morality is upheld and supported by the people of a country, there is a certain shame that falls on those individuals who clearly stray from it. But when wrongdoing is committed openly, and those responsible are not held accountable or made to feel ashamed, they become emboldened. The widespread corruption of the Jews just before their state was destroyed by the Chaldeans is illustrated by their boldness in wrongdoing; for as their leaders were united in their wickedness, they encouraged each other and grew more confident. Were they ashamed when they committed abominations? No, they were not at all ashamed, nor could they blush, Jer. vi. 15. For this reason, the Lord speaks out against them: What does my beloved have to do in my house, since she has committed lewdness with many, and the holy flesh has been taken from you; when you do evil, then you rejoice, Jer. xi. 15.
Now the faithful Friends of Christ, who hunger and thirst after Righteousness, and inwardly breathe that his Kingdom may come on Earth as it is in Heaven, he teacheth them to be quick of Understanding in his Fear, and to be very attentive to the Means he may appoint for promoting pure Righteousness in the Earth; and as Shame is due to those whose works manifestly operate against the gracious Design of his Sufferings for us, a Care lives on their Minds that no wrong Customs however supported may bias their Judgments, but that they may humbly abide under the Cross, and be preserved in a[Pg 194] Conduct which may not contribute to strengthen the Hands of the Wicked in their Wickedness, or to remove Shame from those to whom it is justly due. The Coming of that Day is precious, in which we experience the Truth of this Expression, The Lord our Righteousness, Jer. xiii. 6, and feel him to be made unto us Wisdom and Sanctification.
Now the devoted Friends of Christ, who are eager for Righteousness and genuinely pray for His Kingdom to come on Earth as it is in Heaven, He teaches them to be quick to understand in His Fear and to pay close attention to the means He appoints for promoting true Righteousness on Earth. Since shame is deserved by those whose actions clearly go against the gracious purpose of His Sufferings for us, they remain mindful not to let any wrong customs, no matter how strong their support, sway their judgments. Instead, they humbly remain under the Cross and strive to maintain a[Pg 194] conduct that does not help strengthen the hands of the Wicked in their wrongdoing or remove the shame from those who rightly deserve it. The coming of that Day is precious, where we truly experience the meaning of this expression, The Lord our Righteousness, Jer. xiii. 6, and feel Him to be made unto us Wisdom and Sanctification.
The Example of a righteous Man is often looked at with Attention. Where righteous Men join in Business, their Company gives Encouragement to others; and as one Grain of Incense deliberately offered to the Prince of this World, renders an Offering to God in that State unacceptable; and from those esteemed Leaders of the People may be injurious to the Weak; it requires deep Humility of Heart, to follow him faithfully, who alone gives sound Wisdom, and the Spirit of true Discerning; and O how necessary it is, to consider the Weight of a Holy Profession!
The example of a righteous person is often viewed with attention. When righteous people come together in business, their partnership encourages others; and just as one grain of incense deliberately offered to the prince of this world makes an offering to God in that state unacceptable, so the actions of those respected leaders can be harmful to the weak. It takes deep humility of heart to faithfully follow the one who alone provides true wisdom and the spirit of discernment; and oh, how crucial it is to understand the significance of a holy profession!
The Conduct of some formerly gave Occasion of Complaint against them; Thou hast defiled thy Sanctuaries by the Multitude of thine Iniquities, by the Iniquity of thy Traffick, Ezek. xxviii. 18, and in several Places it is charged against Israel, that they had polluted the Holy Name.
The behavior of some in the past led to complaints against them; You have desecrated your sanctuaries with the multitude of your sins, with the sins of your trading, Ezek. xxviii. 18, and in several places it is stated that Israel had profaned the Holy Name.
The Prophet Isaiah represents inward Sanctification in the Similitude of being purged from that which is Fuel for Fire; and particularly describes the outward Fruits, brought forth by those who dwell in this inward Holiness; They walk righteously, and speak uprightly. By walking he represents the Journey through Life, as a righteous Journey; and by speaking uprightly, seems to point at that which Moses appears to have had in View, when he thus express'd himself; Thou shall not follow a Multitude to do Evil, nor speak in a Cause to decline after many to wrest Judgment, Exod. xxiii. 2.
The Prophet Isaiah represents inner purification as being cleared of what fuels the fire, and he specifically describes the outward results produced by those who embody this inner holiness: They walk righteously and speak truthfully. By walking, he symbolizes the journey through life as a righteous path; and by speaking truthfully, he seems to refer to what Moses intended when he said, You shall not follow the crowd to do wrong, nor should you give testimony in a dispute so as to side with the majority to pervert justice, Exod. xxiii. 2.
He goes on to shew their Firmness in Equity; representing them as Persons superior to all the Arts of getting Money, which have not Righteousness for their Foundation; They despise the Gain of Oppressions: And further shews how careful they are that no Prospects of Gain may induce them to become partial in Judgment respecting[Pg 195] an Injury; They shake their Hands from holding Bribes.
He goes on to show their integrity in fairness, portraying them as individuals who rise above all the tricks for making money that lack a foundation of righteousness; They disdain the profits from oppression. He further illustrates how careful they are that no tempting opportunities for profit lead them to be biased in their judgments regarding[Pg 195] a wrongdoing; They refuse to accept bribes.
Again, where any Interest is so connected with shedding Blood, that the Cry of innocent Blood goes also with it; he points out their Care to keep innocent Blood from crying against them, in the Similitude of a Man's stopping his Ears to prevent a Sound from entering his Head; They stop their Ears from hearing Blood: And where they know that Wickedness is committed, he points out with Care, that they do not by an unguarded Friendship with the Authors of it, appear like unconcerned Lookers on, but as People so deeply affected with Sorrow, that they cannot endure to stand by and behold it; this he represents in the Similitude of a Man shutting his Eyes from seeing Evil.
Again, when any interest is so connected to taking lives that the cry of innocent blood is also a part of it, he emphasizes the importance of keeping innocent blood from crying out against them, similar to a man covering his ears to block out a sound; They cover their ears to avoid hearing about the blood: And when they know that wrongdoing is happening, he carefully points out that they should not, through an unguarded friendship with the wrongdoers, appear as indifferent bystanders, but rather as people so deeply affected by sorrow that they can't bear to just watch; he illustrates this by comparing it to a man shutting his eyes to avoid seeing evil.
Who amongst us shall dwell with devouring Fire? Who amongst us shall dwell with everlasting Burnings? He that walketh righteously and speaketh uprightly. He that despiseth the Gain of Oppressions, that shaketh his Hands from holding of Bribes, that stoppeth his Ears from hearing of Blood, and shutteth his Eyes from seeing Evil, Isa. xxxiii. 15.
Who among us can live with consuming fire? Who among us can live with endless burnings? The person who walks righteously and speaks honestly. The one who rejects the profit of oppression, who shakes their hands free of bribes, who stops their ears from hearing about violence, and shuts their eyes to seeing evil, Isa. xxxiii. 15.
He proceeds in the Spirit of Prophecy to shew how the Faithful, being supported under Temptations, would be preserved from that Defilement that there is in the Love of Money; that as they who in a reverent Waiting on God, feel their Strength renewed, are said to mount upward; so here their Preservation from the Snare of unrighteous Gain, is represented in the Likeness of a Man, borne up above all crafty, artful Means of getting the Advantage of another; They shall dwell on high; and points out the Stability and Firmness of their Condition; His Place of Defence shall be the Munition of Rocks; and that under all the outward Appearances of Loss, in denying himself of gainful Profits for Righteousness Sake, yet through the Care of him who provides for the Sparrows, he should have a Supply answerable to his infinite Wisdom; Bread shall be given him, his Waters shall be sure. And as our Saviour mentions the Sight of God to be attainable by the Pure in Heart, so here the Prophet pointed out, how in true Sanctification the[Pg 196] Understanding is opened, to behold the peaceable harmonious Nature of his Kingdom; thine Eyes shall see the King in his Beauty: And that looking beyond all the Afflictions which attend the Righteous, to a Habitation eternal in the Heavens, they with an eye divinely open shall behold the Land that is very far off.
He goes on in the Spirit of Prophecy to show how the Faithful, being supported through Temptations, would be kept safe from the issues that come with the Love of Money; just as those who, with reverent Waiting on God, feel their Strength renewed are said to soar up; here their protection from the trap of dishonest Gain is depicted as a Man lifted above all the clever, crafty ways of gaining an advantage over others; They shall dwell on high; indicating the Stability and Firmness of their situation; His Place of Defense shall be the Fortress of Rocks; and that despite outward signs of Loss, from denying himself profitable Gains for the sake of Righteousness, he will still receive care from the one who provides for the Sparrows, ensuring he has a Supply matching his infinite Wisdom; Bread shall be given to him, his Waters shall be secure. And just as our Savior says that the Vision of God is within reach of the Pure in Heart, the Prophet here points out how in true Sanctification the[Pg 196] Understanding is opened to see the peaceful and harmonious Nature of his Kingdom; your Eyes shall see the King in his Beauty: And by looking beyond all the Afflictions that come with being Righteous, to a Home eternal in the Heavens, they with a divinely opened eye shall see the Land that is very far off.
He shall dwell on high, his Place of Defence shall be the Munition of Rocks, Bread shall be given him, his Waters shall be sure. Thine Eyes shall see the King in his Beauty; they shall behold the Land that is very far off, Isa. xxxiii. 16.
He will live on high, his safe place will be the stronghold of rocks, he will be given bread, and his water will be secure. Your eyes will see the King in his glory; you will look upon the land that is very far away, Isa. xxxiii. 16.
I often remember, and to me the Subject is awful, that the great Judge of all the Earth doeth that which is right, and that he, before whom the Nations are as the Drop of a Bucket, is no Respecter of Persons. Happy for them, who like the inspired Prophet, in the Way of his Judgments wait for him, Isa. xxvi. 8.
I often recall, and it seems terrible to me, that the great Judge of the Earth does what is right, and that he, before whom the nations are like a drop in a bucket, is not biased towards anyone. Blessed are those who, like the inspired Prophet, wait for him in the way of his judgments, Isa. xxvi. 8.
When we feel him to sit as a Refiner with Fire, and know a Resignedness wrought in us, to that which he appoints for us, his Blessing in a very low Estate, is found to be more precious than much outward Treasure in those Ways of Life, where the Leadings of his Spirit are not followed.
When we sense Him sitting as a Refiner with Fire, and recognize a sense of acceptance within us for what He has planned for us, His blessing in a very humble position proves to be more valuable than a lot of external wealth in those paths of life where His Spirit's guidance is not heeded.
The Prophet in a Sight of a divine Work amongst many People, declared in the Name of the Lord, I will gather all Nations and Tongues, and they shall come and see my Glory, Isa. lxvi. 18. And again, from the rising of the Sun to the going down of the same, my Name shall be great amongst the Gentiles, and in every Place Incense shall be offered to my Name, and a pure Offering, Malachi i. 11.
The Prophet, in a vision of divine work among many people, proclaimed in the Name of the Lord, I will gather all nations and languages, and they will come and see my Glory, Isa. lxvi. 18. And again, from the rising of the sun to its setting, my Name will be honored among the Gentiles, and in every place, incense will be offered to my Name, along with a pure offering, Malachi i. 11.
Behold here how the Prophets had an inward Sense of the Spreading of the Kingdom of Christ; and how he was spoken of as one who should take the Heathen for his Inheritance, and the utmost Parts of the Earth for his Possession, Psal. ii. 8. That he was given for a Light to the Gentiles; and for Salvation to the Ends of the Earth, Isa. xlix. 6.
Behold how the Prophets had an inner sense of the expansion of the Kingdom of Christ; and how he was described as someone who would take the Gentiles as his inheritance, and the farthest parts of the Earth as his possession, Psal. ii. 8. That he was given as a light to the Gentiles; and for salvation to the ends of the Earth, Isa. xlix. 6.
When we meditate on this divine Work, as a Work of Ages; a Work that the Prophets felt long before Christ appeared visibly on Earth, and remember the bitter Agonies he endured when he poured out his Soul unto[Pg 197] Death, that the Heathen Nations, as well as others, might come to the Knowledge of the Truth and be saved.
When we reflect on this divine Work, as a Work of Ages; a Work that the Prophets sensed long before Christ was visibly present on Earth, and remember the intense Agonies he suffered when he poured out his Soul unto[Pg 197] Death, so that the heathen Nations, along with others, could come to the Knowledge of the Truth and be saved.
When we contemplate on this marvellous Work, as that which the Angels desire to look into, 1 Pet. i. 12. And behold People amongst whom this Light hath eminently broken forth, and who have received many Favours from the bountiful Hand of our Heavenly Father; not only indifferent with respect to publishing the glad Tidings amongst the Gentiles, as yet sitting in Darkness and entangled with many Superstitions; but aspiring after Wealth and worldly Honours, take hold of Means to obtain their Ends, tending to stir up Wrath and Indignation, and to beget an Abhorrence in them to the Name of Christianity. When these Things are weightily attended to, how mournful is the Subject?
When we think about this amazing work, as something that the Angels desire to look into, 1 Pet. i. 12, and see people among whom this Light has brightly shone, who have received many blessings from the generous hand of our Heavenly Father; not only are they indifferent to spreading the good news among the Gentiles, who are still in darkness and caught up in various superstitions, but they are also chasing after wealth and worldly honors, using whatever means necessary to achieve their goals, which tends to provoke anger and resentment, and creates a disdain for the name of Christianity. When we seriously consider these things, how sorrowful is the situation?
It is worthy of Remembrance, that People in different Ages, deeply baptized into the Nature of that Work for which Christ suffered, have joyfully offered up their Liberty and Lives for the promoting of it in the Earth.
It’s worth remembering that people in different times, deeply committed to the purpose for which Christ suffered, have gladly given up their freedom and lives to promote it on Earth.
Policarp, who was reputed a Disciple of the Apostle John, having attained to great Age, was at length sentenced to die for his Religion; and being brought to the Fire, prayed nearly as follows, "Thou God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, by whom I have received the Knowledge of thee! O God of the Angels and Powers, and of every living Creature, and of all Sorts of just Men which live in thy Presence. I thank thee, that thou hast graciously vouchsafed this Day and this Hour to allot me a Portion among the Number of Martyrs, among the People of Christ, unto the Resurrection of everlasting Life; among whom I shall be received in thy Sight, this Day, as a fruitful and acceptable Sacrifice; wherefore for all this, I praise thee, I bless thee, I glorify thee through the everlasting High Priest, Jesus Christ, thy well-beloved Son; to whom, with thee and the Holy Ghost, be all Glory, World without End. Amen."
Policarp, who was known to be a Disciple of the Apostle John, had lived to a very old age when he was finally sentenced to die for his faith. As he was led to the fire, he prayed something like this: "You, God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, through whom I have come to know you! O God of the Angels and Powers, and of every living Being, and all kinds of righteous People who live in your Presence. I thank you for graciously granting me this Day and this Hour to be counted among the Martyrs, among the People of Christ, for the Resurrection of everlasting Life; where I will be accepted in your Sight today, as a fruitful and acceptable Sacrifice. For all this, I praise you, I bless you, I glorify you through the everlasting High Priest, Jesus Christ, your beloved Son; to whom, along with you and the Holy Spirit, be all Glory, forever and ever. Amen."
Bishop Latimer, when Sentence of Death by Fire was pronounced against him, on Account of his Firmness in the Cause of Religion, he said, "I thank God most heartily, that he hath prolonged my Life to this End;[Pg 198] that I may in this Case glorify him by this Kind of Death." Fox's Acts and Mon. 936.
Bishop Latimer, when he was sentenced to death by fire for his strong beliefs in religion, said, "I thank God sincerely that He has extended my life for this purpose;[Pg 198] that I may glorify Him through this kind of death." Fox's Acts and Mon. 936.
William Dewsbury, who had suffered much for his Religion, in his last Sickness, encouraging his Friends to Faithfulness, made mention, like good old Jacob, of the Loving kindness of God to him in the Course of his Life, and that through the Power of Divine Love, he, for Christ's Sake, had joyfully entered Prisons. See Introduction to his Works.
William Dewsbury, who had endured a lot for his faith, in his final illness, urged his friends to stay strong and faithful. He spoke, much like the old Jacob, about God's kindness to him throughout his life, and that, through the strength of Divine Love, he had joyfully gone to prison for Christ's sake. See Introduction to his Works.
I mention these as a few Examples, out of many of the powerful Operations of the Spirit of Christ, where People are fully devoted to it, and of the ardent Longings in their Minds for the Spreading of his Kingdom amongst Mankind. Now to those, in the present Age, who truly know Christ, and feel the Nature of his peaceable Government opened in their Understandings, how loud is that Call wherewith we are called to Faithfulness; that in following this pure Light of Life, we, as Workers together with him, may labour in that great Work for which he was offered as a Sacrifice on the Cross; and that his peaceable Doctrines may shine through us in their real Harmony, at a Time when the Name of Christianity is become hateful to many of the Heathen.
I mention these as just a few examples of the powerful actions of the Spirit of Christ, where people are fully committed to it and have strong desires in their minds for spreading his Kingdom among humanity. Now, for those in today's world who truly know Christ and understand the nature of his peaceful governance, how loud is the call for us to be faithful; that by following this pure Light of Life, we, as Workers together with him, can contribute to the great work for which he was sacrificed on the Cross; and that his peaceful teachings may shine through us in their true harmony, at a time when the name of Christianity has become despised by many of the Heathen.
When Gehazi had obtained Treasures which the Prophet under divine Direction had refused, and was returned from the Business; the Prophet troubled at his Conduct, queried if it was a Time thus to prepare for a specious Living.
When Gehazi had gotten treasures that the Prophet had refused under divine direction and returned from his tasks, the Prophet, disturbed by his actions, asked if this was the right time to be preparing for a false life of luxury.
Is it a Time to receive Money and Garments, Men Servants and Maid Servants? The Leprosy therefore of Naaman shall cleave to thee, and to thy Seed for ever, 2 Kings v. 26. And O that we may lay to Heart the Condition of the present Time, and humbly follow his Counsel, who alone is able to prepare the Way for a true harmonious Walking amongst Mankind.
Is it a time to receive money and clothes, male servants and female servants? The leprosy of Naaman will stick to you and your descendants forever, 2 Kings 5:26. And oh, that we may truly consider the state of the present time and humbly follow his guidance, who alone can pave the way for true harmonious living among people.
CHAPTER IV
On Divine Admonitions
About Divine Admonitions
Such are the Perfections of our Heavenly Father, that in all the Dispensations of his Providence, it is our Duty, in every Thing, to give Thanks. Though from the first Settlement of this Part of America, he hath not extended his Judgments to the Degree of Famine, yet Worms at Times have come forth beyond numbering, and laid waste Fields of Grain and Grass, where they have appeared; another Kind, in great Multitudes, working out of Sight, in Grass Ground, have so eat the Roots, that the Surface, being loosened from the Soil beneath, might be taken off in great Sheets.
Such are the Perfections of our Heavenly Father that in all the ways he cares for us, it is our Duty, in everything, to give thanks. Even though since the first Settlement of this part of America, he hasn’t let things get so bad that we face famine, there have been times when swarms of worms have appeared, destroying fields of grain and grass. Another type of worm, in huge numbers, has worked unseen in grassy areas, eating the roots so that the surface easily comes off from the soil underneath like large sheets.
These Kind of devouring Creatures appearing seldom, and coming in such Multitudes, their Generation appears different from most other Reptiles, and by the Prophet were call'd God's Army sent amongst the People, Joel ii. 25.
These kinds of devouring creatures appear rarely and come in such large numbers that their generation seems different from most other reptiles, and the Prophet referred to them as God's Army sent among the People, Joel ii. 25.
There have been Tempests of Hail, which have very much destroyed the Grain where they extended. Through long Drought in Summer, Grain in some Places hath been less than half the usual Quantity;[1] and in the Continuance thereof, I have beheld with Attention, from Week to Week, how Dryness from the Top of the Earth, hath extended deeper and deeper, while the Corn and Plants have languished; and with Reverence my Mind hath been turned towards him, who being perfect in Goodness, in Wisdom and Power, doeth all Things right. And after long Drought, when the Sky hath grown dark with a Collection of Matter, and Clouds like Lakes of Water hung over our Heads, from whence the thirsty Land hath been soaked; I have at Times, with Awfulness, beheld the vehement Operation of Lightning, made sometimes[Pg 200] to accompany these Blessings, as a Messenger from him who created all Things, to remind us of our Duty in a right Use of those Benefits, and give striking Admonitions, that we do not misapply those Gifts, in which an Almighty Power is exerted, in bestowing them upon us.
There have been hailstorms that have seriously damaged the grain in the areas they hit. Due to prolonged drought in the summer, the grain in some places has been less than half the usual amount;[1] and during this time, I have watched closely, week by week, as the dryness penetrated deeper into the ground, while the corn and plants have struggled. With reverence, my thoughts have turned to the one who, being perfectly good, wise, and powerful, does all things right. After a long drought, when the sky has darkened with a buildup of moisture, and clouds like lakes of water have hovered above us, soaking the thirsty land; I have occasionally, with awe, witnessed the intense power of lightning, which sometimes[Pg 200] accompanies these blessings, serving as a messenger from the creator of all things, reminding us of our duty to use these gifts properly, and offering striking warnings not to misuse these blessings, through which an Almighty Power is expressed in giving them to us.
When I have considered that many of our Fellow Creatures suffer much in some Places, for want of the Necessaries of Life, whilst those who rule over them are too much given to Luxury, and divers Vanities; and behold the apparent Deviation from pure Wisdom amongst us, in the Use of the outward Gifts of God; those Marks of Famine have appeared like humbling Admonitions from him, that we might be instructed by gentle Chastisements, and might seriously consider our Ways; remembering that the outward Supply of Life is a Gift from our Heavenly Father, and no more venture to use, or apply his Gifts, in a Way contrary to pure Wisdom.
When I've thought about how many of our fellow beings suffer in some places due to not having the basic necessities of life, while those in power indulge in luxury and various distractions; and when I see the clear departure from true wisdom in how we use the blessings from God, those signs of hunger seem like humble reminders from Him, urging us to learn from gentle corrections and to seriously reflect on our actions; reminding us that the basic supplies of life are a gift from our Heavenly Father, and we shouldn't use or apply His gifts in ways that go against true wisdom.
Should we continue to reject those merciful Admonitions, and use his Gifts at Home, contrary to the gracious Design of the Giver, or send them Abroad in a Way of Trade, which the Spirit of Truth doth not lead into; and should he whose Eyes are upon all our Ways, extend his Chastisements so far as to reduce us to much greater Distress than hath yet been felt by these Provinces; with what sorrow of Heart might we meditate on that Subject, Hast thou not procured this unto thyself, in that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God, when he led thee by the Way? Thine own Wickedness shall correct thee, and thy Backslidings shall reprove thee; know therefore, and see that it is an evil Thing and bitter, that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God, and that my Fear is not in thee, saith the Lord of Hosts, Jer. ii. 17, 19.
Should we keep rejecting those compassionate warnings and use his gifts at home, contrary to the kind intention of the giver, or send them abroad for trade, which the Spirit of Truth doesn't guide us to do? And if the one who sees all our actions decides to punish us more harshly than we've experienced in these provinces, how much sorrow might we feel reflecting on this? Hast thou not procured this unto thyself, in that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God, when he led thee by the Way? Thine own Wickedness shall correct thee, and thy Backslidings shall reprove thee; know therefore, and see that it is an evil Thing and bitter, that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God, and that my Fear is not in thee, saith the Lord of Hosts, Jer. ii. 17, 19.
My Mind hath often been affected with Sorrow, in beholding a wrong Application of the Gifts of our Heavenly Father; and those Expressions concerning the Defilement of the Earth have been opened to my Understanding; The Earth was corrupt before God, and the Earth was filled with Violence, Gen. vi. 11. Again, Isaiah xxiv. 5. The Earth also is defiled under the Inhabitants thereof.[Pg 201]
My mind has often been troubled by sadness when I see the wrong use of the gifts from our Heavenly Father. Those statements about the pollution of the Earth have been revealed to me: The Earth was corrupt before God, and the Earth was filled with Violence, Gen. vi. 11. Again, Isaiah xxiv. 5. The Earth also is defiled under the inhabitants thereof.[Pg 201]
The Earth being the Work of a Divine Power, may not as such be accounted unclean; but when Violence is committed thereon, and the Channel of Righteousness so obstructed, that in our Skirts are found the Blood of the Souls of poor Innocents; not by a secret Search, but upon all these,[2] Jer. ii. 34.
The Earth, created by a Divine Power, cannot be considered unclean; however, when Violence occurs upon it, and the path of Righteousness is blocked, then in our Skirts are found the Blood of the Souls of poor Innocents; not by a secret Search, but upon all these,[2] Jer. ii. 34.
When Blood shed unrighteously remains unatoned for, and the Inhabitants are not effectually purged from it, when they do not wash their Hands in Innocency, as was figured in the Law, in the Case of one being found slain; but seek for Gain arising from Scenes of Violence and Oppression, here the Land is polluted with Blood, Deut. xxi. 6.
When innocent bloodshed goes unaddressed and the people are not truly cleansed from it, when they don't cleanse their hands of guilt, as was shown in the law concerning someone found murdered; but instead look for profit from acts of violence and oppression, then the land is tainted with blood, Deut. xxi. 6.
Moreover, when the Earth is planted and tilled, and the Fruits brought forth are applied to support unrighteous Purposes; here the gracious Design of infinite Goodness, in these his Gifts being perverted, the Earth is defiled; and the Complaint formerly uttered becomes applicable; Thou hast made me to serve with thy Sins; thou hast wearied me with thine Iniquities, Isaiah xliii. 24.[Pg 202]
Moreover, when the Earth is cultivated and the fruits it produces are used for unjust purposes, the generous design of infinite goodness in these gifts is twisted, and the Earth becomes corrupted. The complaint that was expressed before now applies: You have made me serve your sins; you have wearied me with your wrongdoings, Isaiah xliii. 24.[Pg 202]
AN EPISTLE TO THE QUARTERLY AND
MONTHLY MEETINGS OF FRIENDS.
By JOHN WOOLMAN.
AN EPISTLE, &c.
Beloved Friends,—Feeling at this Time a renewed Concern that the pure Principle of Light and Life, and the righteous Fruits thereof may spread and prevail amongst Mankind, there is an Engagement on my Heart to labour with my Brethren in religious Profession, that none of us may be a Stumbling-block in the Way of others; but may so walk that our Conduct may reach the pure Witness in the Hearts of such who are not in Profession with us.
Beloved Friends, — Right now, I feel a renewed concern that the true principles of Light and Life, along with their positive outcomes, may spread and thrive among people. I feel compelled to work with my fellow believers so that none of us becomes a stumbling block for others; rather, we should live in a way that our actions resonate with the pure conscience of those who aren’t part of our faith.
And, dear Friends, while we publickly own that the Holy Spirit is our Leader, the Profession is in itself weighty, and the Weightiness thereof increaseth in Proportion as we are noted among the Professors of Truth, and active in dealing with such who walk disorderly.
And, dear friends, while we publicly acknowledge that the Holy Spirit is our leader, this acknowledgment carries a lot of significance, and its importance grows as we stand out among those who advocate for the truth and actively engage with those who behave inappropriately.
Many under our Profession, for Want of due Attention, and a perfect Resignation, to this Divine Teacher, have in some Things manifested a Deviation from the Purity of our religious Principles, and these Deviations having crept in amongst us by little and little, and increasing from less to greater, have been so far unnoticed, that some living in them, have been active in putting Discipline in Practice with relation to others, whose Conduct hath appeared more dishonourable in the World.
Many people in our profession, due to a lack of proper attention and complete submission to this Divine Teacher, have shown some deviation from the purity of our religious principles. These deviations have gradually crept in among us and have increased over time without much notice. Some individuals living in these deviations have even been proactive in enforcing discipline toward others whose actions seem more dishonorable in the world.
Now as my Mind hath been exercised before the Lord, I have seen, that the Discipline of the Church of Christ standeth in that which is pure; that it is the Wisdom from above which gives Authority to Discipline, and that the Weightiness thereof standeth not in any outward Circumstances, but in the Authority of Christ who is the Author of it; and where any walk after the Flesh, and not according to the Purity of Truth, and at the same Time are active in putting Discipline in Practice, a Veil is gradually drawn over the Purity of Discipline, and[Pg 206] over that Holiness of Life, which Christ leads those into, in whom, the Love of God is verily perfected, 1 John ii. 5.
Now, as I've been reflecting before the Lord, I've realized that the Church of Christ's Discipline is based on what is pure; it is the Wisdom from above that gives authority to this Discipline. The significance of it doesn't come from any outward circumstances, but from the authority of Christ, who is its source. When people live according to the Flesh rather than the purity of Truth, yet still try to implement Discipline, a veil slowly covers the purity of that Discipline and[Pg 206] the holiness of life that Christ guides those into, in whom, the love of God is truly perfected, 1 John ii. 5.
When we labour in true Love with Offenders, and they remain obstinate, it sometimes is necessary to proceed as far as our Lord directed; Let him be to thee as an heathen Man, or a Publican, Mat. xviii. 17.
When we work in genuine love with those who do wrong, and they stay stubborn, it can be necessary to go as far as our Lord instructed; Let him be to thee as an heathen Man, or a Publican, Mat. xviii. 17.
Now when such are disowned, and they who act therein feel Christ made unto them Wisdom, and are preserved in his meek, restoring Spirit, there is no just Cause of Offence ministered to any; but when such who are active in dealing with Offenders, indulge themselves in Things which are contrary to the Purity of Truth, and yet judge others whose Conduct appears more dishonourable than theirs, here the pure Authority of Discipline ceaseth as to such Offenders, and a Temptation is laid in their Way to wrangle and contend;—Judge not, said our Lord, that ye be not Judged. Now this forbidding alludes to Man's Judgment, and points out the Necessity of our humbly attending to that sanctifying Power, under which the Faithful experience the Lord to be a Spirit of Judgment to them, Isa. xxviii. 6. And as we feel his Holy Spirit to mortify the Deeds of the Body in us, and can say, It is no more I that live, but Christ that liveth in me, here right Judgment is known.
Now, when people like this are rejected, and those involved understand that Christ has become their Wisdom and keeps them in His gentle, restoring Spirit, there's no valid reason to offend anyone. But when those who deal with offenders indulge in things that go against the purity of truth and then judge others whose behavior seems worse than theirs, the true authority of Discipline fades regarding those offenders, and they're tempted to argue and fight. — Judge not, our Lord said, that ye be not Judged. This caution refers to human judgment and highlights the need for us to humbly seek that sanctifying power, under which the faithful find the Lord to be a Spirit of Judgment to them, Isa. xxvii. 6. As we experience His Holy Spirit helping us overcome our sinful actions, we can honestly say, It is no longer I who live, but Christ who lives in me, and in this, true judgment is understood.
And while Divine Love prevails in our Hearts, and Self in us is brought under Judgment, a Preparation is felt to labour in a right Manner with Offenders; but if we abide not in this Love, our outward Performance in dealing with others, degenerates into Formality; for this is the Love of God, that we keep his Commandments, John i. 3.
And as Divine Love thrives in our hearts, and our sense of self is judged, we feel ready to work in a positive way with those who have done wrong; but if we don't stay in this Love, our actions with others turn into mere routine; because this is the Love of God, that we keep his Commandments, John i. 3.
How weighty are those Instructions of our Redeemer concerning religious Duties, when he points out, that they who pray, should be so obedient to the Teachings of the Holy Spirit, that humbly confiding in his Help, they may say, Thy Name, O Father I be hallowed. Thy Kingdom come. Thy Will be done on Earth, as it is in Heaven.—In this awful State of Mind is felt that Worship which stands in doing the Will of God on Earth, as it is done in Heaven, and keeping the Holy Name sacred: To take a Holy Profession upon us is awful, nor can we keep his[Pg 207] Holy Name sacred, but by humbly abiding under the Cross of Christ. The Apostle laid a heavy Complaint against some who prophaned this Holy Name by their Manner of Living, Through you, he says, the Name of God is blasphemed among the Gentiles, Rom. ii. 24.
How significant are those Instructions from our Savior about our religious Duties when He emphasizes that those who pray should follow the Teachings of the Holy Spirit so closely that, relying on His Help, they can say, Hallowed be Thy Name, O Father. Thy Kingdom come. Thy Will be done on Earth as it is in Heaven.—In this profound state of mind, we experience the Worship that comes from doing God's Will on Earth as it is done in Heaven and keeping the Holy Name sacred: Taking a Holy Profession upon ourselves is serious, and we can only keep His[Pg 207] Holy Name sacred by humbly carrying the Cross of Christ. The Apostle made a strong complaint against those who dishonored this Holy Name by their way of living, Through you, he says, the Name of God is blasphemed among the Gentiles, Rom. ii. 24.
Some of our Ancestors, through many Tribulations, were gathered into the State of true Worshippers, and had Fellowship in that which is pure; and as one was inwardly moved to kneel down in their Assemblies, and publickly call on the Name of the Lord, those in the Harmony of united Exercise then present, joined in the Prayer: I mention this, in order that we of the present Age, may look unto the Rock from whence we were hewn, and remember that to unite in Worship, is an Union in Prayer, and that Prayer acceptable to the Father, is only in a Mind truly sanctified, where the sacred Name is kept Holy, and the Heart resigned to do his Will on Earth, as it is done in Heaven; If ye abide in me, saith Christ, and my Words abide in you, ye shall ask what ye will in my Name, and it shall be done unto you.—Now we know not what to pray for as we ought, but as the Holy Spirit doth open and direct our Minds, and as we faithfully yield to its Influences, our Prayers are in the Will of our Heavenly Father, who fails not to grant that which his own Spirit, through his Children, asketh;—thus Preservation from Sin is known, and the Fruits of Righteousness are brought forth by such who inwardly unite in Prayer.
Some of our ancestors, after going through many challenges, came together as true worshippers and experienced fellowship in what is pure. When someone felt moved to kneel in their gatherings and openly call on the Name of the Lord, those present in a spirit of unity joined in the prayer. I mention this so that we in the present age can remember our roots and understand that coming together in worship is about being united in prayer. Prayer that is pleasing to the Father comes from a truly purified mind, where the sacred Name is kept holy and the heart is willing to do His will on Earth as it is done in Heaven; If you abide in me, says Christ, and my words abide in you, you shall ask what you will in my name, and it shall be done for you.—Now we don’t always know how to pray as we should, but when the Holy Spirit opens and guides our minds, and as we willingly yield to its influence, our prayers align with the will of our Heavenly Father, who always grants what His Spirit asks through His children;—this is how we come to know preservation from sin, and how the fruits of righteousness are produced by those who are united in prayer from within.
How weighty are our solemn Meetings when the Name of Christ is kept Holy!
How significant are our serious gatherings when we keep the Name of Christ holy!
"How precious is that State in which the Children of the Lord are so redeemed from the Love of this World, that they are accepted and blessed in all that they do!" R. Barclay's Apology, Page 404.
"How precious is that state where the Children of the Lord are so freed from the love of this world that they are accepted and blessed in everything they do!" R. Barclay's Apology, Page 404.
How necessary is it that we who profess these Principles, and are outwardly active in supporting them, should faithfully abide in Divine Strength, that as he who has called us, is Holy, so we may be Holy in all manner of Conversation, 1 Pet. i. 15.
How essential is it for us who believe in these principles and actively support them to stay committed to Divine Strength, so that just as the one who has called us is Holy, we may be Holy in every aspect of our lives, 1 Pet. i. 15.
If one professing to be influenced by the Spirit of Christ, propose to unite in a Labour to promote Righteousness[Pg 208] in the Earth, and in Time past he hath manifestly deviated from the Paths of Equity, then to act consistent with this Principle, his first Work is to make Restitution so far as he may be enabled; for if he attempts to contribute toward a Work intended to promote Righteousness, while it appears that he neglecteth, or refuseth to act righteously himself, his Conduct has a Tendency to entangle the Minds of those who are weak in the Faith, who behold these Things, and to draw a Veil over the Purity of Righteousness, by carrying an Appearance as though that was Righteousness which is not.
If someone claims to be guided by the Spirit of Christ and wants to join a movement to promote righteousness[Pg 208] in the world, but in the past has clearly strayed from the path of fairness, then the first step he should take, to stay true to this principle, is to make amends as much as he can. Because if he tries to help a cause aimed at promoting righteousness while neglecting or refusing to act righteously himself, his actions could confuse those who are weak in faith, causing them to see things that aren't truly righteous as if they were.
Again, if I propose to assist in supporting those Doctrines wherein that Purity of Life is held forth, in which Customs proceeding from the Spirit of this World have no Place, and at the same Time strengthen others in those Customs by my Example; the first Step then in an orderly Proceeding, is to cease from those Customs myself, and afterwards to labour, as I may be enabled, to promote the like Disposition and Conduct in others.
Again, if I aim to help uphold those beliefs that promote a pure way of living, where the customs rooted in the ways of this world have no place, and at the same time strengthen others in those customs through my example; the first step in this orderly process is to stop those customs myself, and then to work, as I am able, to encourage the same mindset and behavior in others.
To be convinced of the pure Principle of Truth, and diligently exercised in walking answerable thereto, is necessary before I can consistently recommend this Principle to others.—I often feel a Labour in Spirit, that we who are active Members in religious Society, may experience in ourselves the Truth of those Expressions of the Holy One; I will be sanctified in them that come nigh me, Lev. x. 3.——In this Case, my Mind hath been often exercised when alone, Year after Year, for many Years, and in the Renewings of Divine Love, a tender Care hath been incited in me, that we who profess the inward Principle of Light to be our Teacher, may be a Family united in that Purity of Worship, which comprehends a Holy Life, and ministers Instruction to others.
To truly understand and embody the Principle of Truth, and to actively practice it, is essential before I can sincerely recommend this Principle to anyone else. I often feel a deep concern that we, as active members of our religious community, may genuinely experience the truth of the words of the Holy One; I will be sanctified in those who draw near to me, Lev. x. 3. In this regard, my mind has often been occupied in solitude, year after year, for many years, and in the renewals of Divine Love, a gentle concern has grown within me that we, who acknowledge the inner Principle of Light as our guide, may be united as a community in the purity of worship, which encompasses a holy life and provides guidance to others.
My Mind is often drawn towards Children in the Truth, who having a small Share of the Things of this Life, and coming to have Families, may be inwardly exercised before the Lord to support them in a Way agreeable to the Purity of Truth, in which they may feel his Blessing upon them in their Labours; the Thoughts of such being entangled with Customs, contrary to pure Wisdom,[Pg 209] conveyed to them through our Hands, doth often very tenderly, and movingly affect my Heart, and when I look towards, and think on the succeeding Generation, fervent Desires are raised in me, that we by yielding to that Holy Spirit which leads into all Truth, may not do the Work of the Lord deceitfully, may not live contrary to the Purity of the Divine Principle we profess; but that as faithful Labourers in our Age, we may be instrumental in removing Stumbling-blocks out of the Way of those who may succeed us.
My mind often goes to the children in the Truth, who have a limited share of this life and, as they start families, might feel a deep responsibility before the Lord to support them in a way that aligns with the purity of Truth. In doing so, they can feel His blessing on their efforts. The thought of them getting caught up in customs that contradict pure wisdom, which we have shared with them, deeply touches my heart. When I think about the next generation, I am filled with a strong desire that, by following the Holy Spirit that guides us into all Truth, we do not carry out the Lord's work deceitfully or live in a way that goes against the purity of the Divine Principle we embrace. Instead, as faithful workers in our time, we hope to help remove obstacles for those who will come after us.[Pg 209]
So great was the Love of Christ, that he gave himself for the Church, that he might sanctify and cleanse it, that it should be Holy, and without Blemish, not having Spot or Wrinkle, or any such Thing, Eph. v. 25. and where any take the Name of Christ upon them, professing to be Members of his Church, and led by his Holy Spirit, and yet manifestly deviate from the Purity of Truth, they herein act against the gracious Design of his giving himself for them, and minister Cause for the Continuance of his Afflictions, viz. in his Body the Church.
So deep was Christ's love that he gave himself for the Church, to sanctify and cleanse it, making it holy and without blemish, free from spots, wrinkles, or anything like that, Eph. v. 25. And when anyone takes the name of Christ, claiming to be a member of his Church and led by his Holy Spirit, yet obviously strays from the purity of truth, they go against the wonderful purpose of his sacrifice for them and contribute to the ongoing suffering of his Body, the Church.
Christ suffered Afflictions in a Body of Flesh prepared by the Father, but the Afflictions of his mystical Body are yet unfinished; for they who are baptized into Christ are baptized into his Death; and as we humbly abide under his sanctifying Power, and are brought forth into Newness of Life, we feel Christ to live in us, who being the same Yesterday, To-day, and forever, and always at Unity with himself, his Spirit in the Hearts of his People leads to an inward Exercise for the Salvation of Mankind; and when under a Travail of Spirit, we behold a visited People entangled by the Spirit of the World with its Wickedness and Customs, and thereby rendered incapable of being faithful Examples to others, Sorrow and Heaviness under a Sense of these Things, is often experienced, and thus in some Measure is filled up that which remains of the Afflictions of Christ.
Christ suffered in a physical body prepared by the Father, but the suffering of his mystical Body isn't complete yet; because those who are baptized into Christ are baptized into his Death. As we humbly remain under his sanctifying power and are brought into a new life, we feel Christ living in us, who is the same yesterday, today, and forever, always in unity with himself. His spirit in the hearts of his people guides us towards an inner struggle for the salvation of humanity. When we feel a deep spiritual burden and see a people affected by the world's spirit with its wickedness and customs, making them unable to be faithful examples for others, we often experience sorrow and heaviness because of these matters. In this way, we contribute to what remains of the sufferings of Christ.
Our blessed Saviour speaking concerning Gifts offered in Divine Service, says, If thou bring thy Gift to the Altar, and there remembrest that thy Brother hath ought against thee, leave there thy Gift before the Altar, and go thy Way,[Pg 210] first be reconciled to thy Brother, and then come and offer thy Gift, Mat. v. 23, 24. Now there is no true Unity, but in that wherein the Father and the Son are united, nor can there be a perfect Reconciliation but in ceasing from that which ministers Cause for the Continuation of the Afflictions of Christ; and if any professing to bring their Gift to the Altar, do remember the customary Contradiction which some of their Fruits bear to the pure spiritual Worship, here it appears necessary to lay to Heart this Command, Leave thy Gift by the Altar.
Our blessed Savior, speaking about the gifts offered in Divine Service, says, If you bring your gift to the altar and remember that your brother has something against you, leave your gift there at the altar and go your way, first be reconciled to your brother, and then come and offer your gift, Mat. v. 23, 24. True unity can only exist where the Father and the Son are united, and perfect reconciliation can only happen by stopping what causes the ongoing sufferings of Christ. If anyone claims to bring their gift to the altar while aware that some of their actions contradict pure spiritual worship, it is essential to take this command to heart: Leave your gift at the altar.
Christ graciously calls his People Brethren; Whosoever shall do the Will of God, the same is my Brother, Mark iii. 35. Now if we walk contrary to the Truth as it is in Jesus, while we continue to profess it, we offend against Christ, and if under this Offence we bring our Gift to the Altar, our Redeemer doth not direct us to take back our Gift, he doth not discourage our proceeding in a good Work; but graciously points out the necessary Means by which the Gift may be rendered acceptable, Leave, saith he, thy Gift by the Altar, first go and be reconciled to thy Brother, cease from that which grieves the Holy Spirit, cease from that which is against the Truth, as it is in Jesus, and then come and offer thy Gift.
Christ kindly refers to his people as Brothers; Whoever does the Will of God is my Brother, Mark iii. 35. If we act contrary to the Truth as it is in Jesus while still claiming to believe it, we offend Christ. Even if we are aware of this offense and bring our Gift to the Altar, our Redeemer doesn’t tell us to take back our Gift or discourage us from doing good. Instead, he graciously shows us how to make our Gift acceptable: Leave, he says, your Gift at the Altar, first go and be reconciled to your Brother, stop doing what hurts the Holy Spirit, stop doing what goes against the Truth as it is in Jesus, and then come offer your Gift.
I feel, while I am writing, a Tenderness to those who through Divine Favour are preserved in a lively Sense of the State of the Churches, and at Times may be under Discouragements with regard to proceeding in that pure Way which Christ by his Holy Spirit leads into: The Depth of Disorder and Weakness, which so much prevails, being opened, Doubtings are apt to arise as to the Possibility of proceeding as an Assembly of the Lord's People in the pure Council of Truth; and here I feel a Concern to express in Uprightness, that which hath been opened in my Mind, under the Power of the Cross of Christ, relating to a visible gathered Church, the Members whereof are guided by the Holy Spirit.
I feel, while I’m writing, a sense of compassion for those who, through Divine Favor, are kept aware of the state of the Church and may sometimes feel discouraged about continuing on the pure path that Christ, through His Holy Spirit, leads us on. The depth of disorder and weakness that is so prevalent can lead to doubts about the possibility of moving forward as a congregation of the Lord’s people in the pure pursuit of truth. Here, I feel a need to sincerely express what has been revealed in my mind, under the power of the Cross of Christ, regarding a visible gathered church whose members are guided by the Holy Spirit.
The Church is called the Body of Christ, Col. i. 24.
The Church is referred to as the Body of Christ, Col. i. 24.
Christ is called the Head of the Church, Eph. i. 22.
Christ is referred to as the Head of the Church, Eph. i. 22.
The Church is called the Pillar, and Ground of Truth, 1 Tim. iii. 15.[Pg 211]
The Church is referred to as the Pillar, and Ground of Truth, 1 Tim. iii. 15.[Pg 211]
Thus the Church hath a Name that is sacred, and the Necessity of keeping this Name Holy, appears evident; for where a Number of People unite in a Profession of being led by the Spirit of Christ, and publish their Principles to the World, the Acts and Proceedings of that People may in some Measure be considered as such which Christ is the Author of.
Thus, the Church has a name that is sacred, and it's clear that we need to keep this name holy; because when a group of people comes together professing to be guided by the Spirit of Christ and shares their beliefs with the world, their actions and decisions can be seen as those authored by Christ.
Now while we stand in this Station, if the pure Light of Life is not followed and regarded in our Proceedings, we are in the Way of prophaning the Holy Name, and of going back toward that Wilderness of Sufferings and Persecution, out of which, through the tender Mercies of God, a Church hath been gathered; Christ liveth in sanctified Vessels, Gal. ii. 20. and where they behold his Holy Name prophaned, and the pure Gospel Light eclipsed, through the Unfaithfulness of any who by their Station appear to be Standard-bearers under the Prince of Peace, the living Members in the Body of Christ in beholding these Things, do in some degree experience the Fellowship of his Sufferings; and as the Wisdom of the World more and more takes Place in conducting the Affairs of this visible gathered Church, and the pure Leadings of the Holy Spirit less waited for and followed, so the true Suffering Seed is more and more oppressed.
Now, as we stand in this Station, if we don't follow and respect the pure Light of Life in our actions, we're at risk of disrespecting the Holy Name and heading back toward that Wilderness of Sufferings and Persecution from which, through God's tender Mercies, a Church has been formed; Christ lives in sanctified Vessels, Gal. ii. 20. When they see His Holy Name disrespected and the pure Gospel Light overshadowed because of the unfaithfulness of those who appear to be leaders under the Prince of Peace, the living Members in the Body of Christ, in witnessing these things, do experience some degree of the Fellowship of His Sufferings; and as the Wisdom of the World increasingly influences the management of this visible gathered Church, and the pure guidance of the Holy Spirit is less followed, the true Suffering Seed becomes more and more oppressed.
My Mind is often affected with a Sense of the Condition of sincere-hearted People in some Kingdoms, where Liberty of Conscience is not allowed, many of whom being burthened in their Minds with prevailing Superstition joined with Oppressions, are often under Sorrow; and where such have attended to that pure Light which hath in some degree opened their Understandings, and for their Faithfulness thereto, have been brought to Examination and Trial, how heavy are the Persecutions which in divers Parts of the World are exercised upon them! How mighty, as to the outward, is that Power by which they are borne down, and oppressed!
My mind often reflects on the situation of sincere people in some countries where freedom of conscience isn’t allowed. Many of these individuals, burdened by widespread superstition and oppression, frequently experience sorrow. Those who have opened their minds to that pure light and have remained faithful to it face examination and trial. The persecution they endure in various parts of the world is truly heavy! The power that oppresses and weighs them down is incredibly strong!
How deeply affecting is the Condition of many upright-hearted People who are taken into the Papal Inquisition! What lamentable Cruelties, in deep Vaults, in a private Way, are exercised on many of them! And how lingering[Pg 212] is that Death by a small slow Fire, which they have frequently indured, who have been faithful to the End!
How deeply moving is the situation of many good-hearted people who are caught up in the Papal Inquisition! What terrible cruelties, in hidden places, are inflicted on so many of them! And how torturous is that slow death by a small, constant fire, which they have often endured, who have remained faithful to the end!
How many tender spirited Protestants have been sentenced to spend the Remainder of their Lives in a Galley chained to Oars, under hard-hearted Masters, while their young Children are placed out for Education, and taught Principles so contrary to the Conscience of the Parents, that by dissenting from them, they have hazarded their Liberty, Lives, and all that was dear to them of the Things of this World!
How many compassionate Protestants have been forced to spend the rest of their lives chained to oars in a galley under cruel masters, while their young children are sent away for education, learning principles that clash so much with their parents’ beliefs that by opposing them, the parents have risked their freedom, lives, and everything they hold dear in this world!
There have been in Time past severe Persecutions under the English Government, and many sincere-hearted People have suffered Death for the Testimony of a good Conscience, whose Faithfulness in their Day hath ministred Encouragement to others, and been a Blessing to many who have succeeded them; thus from Age to Age, the Darkness being more and more removed, a Channel at length, through the tender Mercies of God, hath been opened for the Exercise of the pure Gift of the Gospel Ministry, without Interruption from outward Power, a Work, the like of which is rare, and unknown in many Parts of the World.
There have been severe persecutions in the past under the English government, and many sincere people have died for the testimony of a clear conscience, whose faithfulness in their time has encouraged others and been a blessing to many who came after them. Thus, from age to age, as the darkness has been lifted more and more, a path has finally opened up, through the tender mercies of God, for the practice of the true gift of the Gospel ministry, without interruptions from external authority—a work that is rare and unknown in many parts of the world.
As these Things are often fresh in my Mind, and this great Work of God going on in the Earth has been open before me, that Liberty of Conscience with which we are favoured, hath appeared not as a light Matter.
As these things are often fresh in my mind, and this great work of God happening on Earth has been clear to me, the liberty of conscience that we enjoy has not seemed like a small matter.
A Trust is committed to us, a great and weighty Trust, to which our diligent Attention is necessary, wherever the active Members of this visible gathered Church use themselves to that which is contrary to the Purity of our Principles, it appears to be a Breach of this Trust, and one Step back toward the Wilderness, one Step towards undoing what God in infinite Love hath done through his faithful Servants, in a Work of several Ages, and like laying the Foundation for future Sufferings.
A Trust is laid upon us, a significant and serious Trust, that requires our careful attention. Whenever the active members of this visible gathered Church engage in actions that contradict the purity of our principles, it seems to breach this Trust and takes us one step back toward darkness, one step closer to reversing what God, in His infinite love, has achieved through His faithful servants over many ages, setting the groundwork for future struggles.
I feel a living Invitation in my Mind to such who are active in our religious Society, that we may lay to Heart this Matter, and consider the Station in which we stand; a Place of outward Liberty under the free Exercise of our Conscience toward God, not obtained but through[Pg 213] great and manifold Afflictions of those who lived before us. There is Gratitude due from us to our Heavenly Father, and Justice to our Posterity; can our Hearts endure, or our Hands be strong, if we desert a Cause so precious, if we turn aside from a Work, under which so many have patiently laboured?
I feel a strong urge in my mind to those who are active in our religious community, that we should seriously think about this issue and reflect on our position; a place of outward freedom under the ability to fully practice our beliefs towards God, which was achieved only through[Pg 213] the great and numerous hardships faced by those before us. We owe our gratitude to our Heavenly Father and a sense of responsibility to future generations; can our hearts withstand it, or our hands remain strong, if we abandon such a valuable cause, if we turn away from a work that so many have patiently dedicated themselves to?
May the deep Sufferings of our Saviour be so dear to us, that we may never trample under Foot the adorable Son of God, nor count the Blood of the Covenant unholy!
May the deep sufferings of our Savior be so precious to us that we never trample on the beloved Son of God or consider the Blood of the Covenant unholy!
May the Faithfulness of the Martyrs when the Prospect of Death by Fire was before them, be remembred. And may the patient constant Sufferings of the upright-hearted Servants of God in latter Ages be revived in our Minds. And may we so follow on to know the Lord, that neither the Faithful in this Age, nor those in Ages to come, may ever be brought under Suffering, through our sliding back from the Work of Reformation in the World.
May we remember the faithfulness of the martyrs when facing the prospect of being burned alive. And may we be inspired by the enduring sufferings of the upright servants of God in recent times. Let us strive to know the Lord so that neither the faithful in this age nor those in future ages may ever endure suffering because we have strayed from the work of reforming the world.
While the active Members in the visible gathered Church stand upright, and the Affairs thereof are carried on under the Leadings of the Holy Spirit, although Disorders may arise among us, and cause many Exercises to those who feel the Care of the Churches upon them; yet while these continue under the Weight of the Work, and labour in the Meekness of Wisdom for the Help of others, the Name of Christ in the visible gathered Church may be kept sacred; but while they who are active in the Affairs of this Church, continue in a manifest Opposition to the Purity of our Principles, this, as the Prophet Isaiah x. 18. expresseth it, is like as when a Standard-bearer fainteth; and thus the Way opens to great and prevailing Degeneracy, and to Sufferings for such who through the Power of Divine Love, are separated to the Gospel of Christ, and cannot unite with any Thing which stands in Opposition to the Purity of it.
While the active members of the visible gathered Church stand firm, and the church's activities are guided by the Holy Spirit, there may be disruptions among us that cause worry for those responsible for the care of the churches. However, as long as they remain focused on their responsibilities and strive in humility and wisdom to support others, the name of Christ in the visible gathered Church can remain honored. But if those who are involved in the church's affairs resist the purity of our principles, as the Prophet Isaiah x. 18 expresses, it is like when a standard-bearer faints; and this creates a pathway for significant decline and suffering for those who, through the power of divine love, are dedicated to the Gospel of Christ and cannot align with anything that opposes its purity.
The Necessity of an inward Stillness, hath under these Exercises appeared clear to my Mind; in true Silence Strength is renewed, the Mind herein is weaned from all Things, but as they may be enjoyed in the Divine Will, and a Lowliness in outward Living opposite to Worldly[Pg 214] Honour, becomes truly acceptable to us;—in the Desire after outward Gain, the Mind is prevented from a perfect Attention to the Voice of Christ, but being weaned from all Things, but as they may be enjoyed in the Divine Will, the pure Light shines into the Soul, and where the Fruits of that Spirit which is of the World, are brought forth by many who profess to be led by the Spirit of Truth, and Cloudiness is felt to be gathering over the visible gathered Church, the Sincere in Heart who abide in true Stillness, and are exercised therein before the Lord for his Name's Sake, have a Knowledge of Christ in the Fellowship of his Sufferings, and inward Thankfulness is felt at Times, that through Divine Love, our own Wisdom is cast out, and that forward active Part in us subjected, which would rise and do something in the visible gathered Church, without, the pure Leadings of the Spirit of Christ.
The necessity of inner stillness has become clear to me through these practices; in true silence, strength is renewed. The mind is detached from everything except what can be enjoyed in alignment with the divine will, and a humility in our outward lives, contrary to worldly honor, becomes genuinely acceptable to us. In the pursuit of material gain, the mind is distracted from fully listening to Christ's voice, but when we detach from everything except what can be enjoyed in the divine will, pure light shines into the soul. Where the fruits of the worldly spirit are manifest among many who claim to be guided by the spirit of truth, and a heaviness is felt gathering over the visible church, those who are sincere at heart and remain in true stillness, exercising their faith before the Lord for His name's sake, have a deep understanding of Christ through sharing in His sufferings. At times, there is a heartfelt gratitude that through divine love, our own wisdom is set aside, and that the restless part of us, which wants to take action in the visible church without the pure guidance of Christ's spirit, is subdued.
While aught remains in us different from a perfect Resignation of our Wills, it is like a Seal to a Book wherein is written, that good, and acceptable, and perfect Will of God concerning us, Rom. xii. 2. but when our Minds entirely yield to Christ, that Silence is known, which followeth the opening of the last of the Seals, Rev. viii. 1. In this Silence we learn abiding in the Divine Will, and there feel, that we have no Cause to promote but that only in which the Light of Life directs us in our Proceedings, and that the alone Way to be useful in the Church of Christ, is to abide faithfully under the Leadings of his Holy Spirit in all Cases, and being preserved thereby in Purity of Heart, and Holiness of Conversation, a Testimony to the Purity of his Government may be held forth through us, to others.
While anything remains in us that is different from a complete surrender of our wills, it’s like a seal on a book that contains that good, and acceptable, and perfect will of God concerning us, Rom. xii. 2. But when our minds fully submit to Christ, we experience the silence that follows the opening of the last seal, Rev. viii. 1. In this silence, we learn to stay in the Divine Will and recognize that our only purpose is the one that the Light of Life guides us towards in our actions. The only way to be truly useful in the Church of Christ is to faithfully follow the guidance of his Holy Spirit in all situations. By being kept in purity of heart and holiness in our lives, we can provide a testimony to the purity of his governance to others.
As my Mind hath been thus exercised, I have seen that to be active and busy in the visible gathered Church, without the Leadings of the Holy Spirit, is not only unprofitable, but tends to increase Dimness; and where Way is not opened to proceed in the Light of Truth, a Stop is felt by those who humbly attend to the Divine Leader, a Stop which in relation to good Order in the visible gathered Church, is of the greatest Consequence to be observed; thus Robert Barclay in his Treatise on[Pg 215] Discipline holds forth, Page 65, 68, 84. "That the Judgment or Conclusion of the Church or Congregation, is no further effectual as to the true End and Design thereof, but as such Judgment or Conclusion proceeds from the Spirit of God operating on their Minds who are sanctified in Christ Jesus."
As my mind has been engaged, I’ve realized that being active and busy in the visible gathered Church without the guidance of the Holy Spirit is not only unproductive but also tends to create confusion. When a path is not opened to move forward in the Light of Truth, those who sincerely follow the Divine Leader feel a pause; this pause is crucial for maintaining good order in the visible gathered Church. In his Treatise on [Pg 215] Discipline, Robert Barclay states on Pages 65, 68, 84, "The judgment or conclusion of the Church or congregation is only effective in achieving its true purpose if it comes from the Spirit of God working in the minds of those who are sanctified in Christ Jesus."
Now in this Stop I have learned the Necessity of waiting on the Lord in Humility, that the Works of all may be brought to the Light, and those to Judgment which are wrought in the Wisdom of this World; and have also seen, that in a Mind thoroughly subjected to the Power of the Cross, there is a Savour of Life to be felt, which evidently tends to gather Souls to God, while the greatest Works in the visible gathered Church brought forth in Man's Wisdom, remain to be unprofitable.
Now in this Stop, I have learned how important it is to wait on the Lord with humility, so that the actions of everyone can be revealed and those done with worldly wisdom can be judged. I have also seen that in a mind completely surrendered to the power of the Cross, there is a sense of life that can be felt, which clearly draws souls to God, while the biggest works done in the visible gathered Church through human wisdom remain unfruitful.
Where People are divinely gathered into a Holy Fellowship, and faithfully abide under the Influence of that Spirit which leads into all Truth, they are the Light of the World, Mat. v. 14. Now holding this Profession, to me hath appeared weighty, even beyond what I can fully express, and what our blessed Lord seemed to have in View, when he proposed the Necessity of counting the Cost, before we begin to build.
Where people are brought together in a sacred community and faithfully stay under the guidance of the Spirit that leads to all truth, they are the Light of the World, Mat. v. 14. Embracing this belief has felt significant to me, even more than I can adequately express, and it seems to align with what our blessed Lord intended when He highlighted the importance of counting the cost before we start to build.
I trust there are many who at Times, under Divine Visitation, feel an inward Enquiry after God; and when such in the Simplicity of their Hearts mark the Lives of a People, who profess to walk by the Leadings of his Spirit, of what great Concernment is it that our Lights shine clear, that nothing of our Conduct carry a Contradiction to the Truth as it is in Jesus, or be a Means of prophaning his Holy Name, and be a Stumbling-block in the Way of those sincere Enquirers!
I believe there are many who, at times, during moments of divine inspiration, feel a deep desire to seek God. When these people, in the sincerity of their hearts, observe the lives of those who claim to follow the guidance of His Spirit, it’s crucial that our actions shine clearly. We must ensure that nothing in our behavior contradicts the truth as it is in Jesus or becomes a reason to disrespect His Holy Name, nor should it be a stumbling block for those genuine seekers!
When such Seekers, who wearied with empty Forms, look toward uniting with us as a People, and behold active Members among us depart in their customary Way of Living, from that Purity of Life, which under humbling Exercises hath been opened before them, as the Way of the Lord's People, how mournful and discouraging is the Prospect! And how strongly doth such Unfaithfulness operate against the Spreading of the peaceable,[Pg 216] harmonious Principle, and Testimony of Truth amongst Mankind!
When Seekers, tired of hollow practices, look to join us as a community and see active members among us returning to their usual ways of living, straying from the purity of life that has been revealed to them through humbling experiences as the path of the Lord's people, how sad and discouraging is the outlook! And how strongly does such unfaithfulness work against the spreading of the peaceful, harmonious principle and testimony of truth among humanity!
In entering into that Life, which is hid with Christ in God, we behold his peaceable Government, where the whole Family are governed by the same Spirit, and the doing to others as we would they should do unto us, groweth up as good Fruit from a good Tree; the Peace, Quietness, and harmonious Walking in this Government is beheld with humble Reverence to him who is the Author of it; and in partaking of the Spirit of Christ, we partake of that which labours, and suffers for the Increase of this peaceable Government among the Inhabitants of the World; and I have felt a Labour of long Continuance, that we, who profess this peaceable Principle, may be faithful Standard-bearers under the Prince of Peace, and that nothing of a defiling Nature, tending to Discord and Wars, may remain among us.
By embracing the life that is hidden with Christ in God, we see His peaceful governance, where the entire family is guided by the same Spirit, and the doing to others as we would have them do unto us grows as good fruit from a good tree. The peace, tranquility, and harmonious living in this governance is observed with humble respect to Him who is its Author. In sharing the Spirit of Christ, we engage in efforts that strive and endure for the growth of this peaceful governance among the people of the world. I have felt a longstanding urge for us, who profess this peaceful principle, to be faithful representatives under the Prince of Peace, ensuring that nothing harmful, leading to discord and conflict, remains among us.
May each of us query with ourselves, have the Treasures I possess been gathered in that Wisdom which is from above, so far as hath appeared to me?
May each of us ask ourselves, have the treasures I have gathered come from the wisdom that is from above, as much as I have understood?
Have none of my Fellow Creatures an equitable Right to any Part which is called mine?
Have none of my fellow beings a fair right to any part that is called mine?
Have the Gifts, and Possessions received by me from others, been conveyed in a Way free from all Unrighteousness, so far as I have seen?
Have the gifts and possessions I received from others been given to me in a way that is free from all wrongdoing, as far as I've seen?
The Principle of Peace in which our Trust is only in the Lord, and our Minds weaned from a Dependance on the Strength of Armies, hath appeared to me very precious, and I often feel strong Desires, that we who profess this Principle, may so walk, as to give just Cause for none of our Fellow Creatures to be offended at us; that our Lives may evidently manifest, that we are redeemed from that Spirit in which Wars are. Our blessed Saviour in pointing out the Danger of so leaning on Man, as to neglect the Leadings of his Holy Spirit, said, Call no Man your Father upon the Earth; for one is your Father which is in Heaven, Mat. xxiii. 9. Where the Wisdom from above is faithfully followed, and therein we are entrusted with Substance, it is a Treasure committed to our Care in the Nature of an Inheritance, as an Inheritance from him,[Pg 217] who formed, and supports the World. Now in this Condition the true Enjoyment of the good Things of this Life is understood, and that Blessing felt, in which is real Safety; this is what I apprehend our blessed Lord had in View, when he pronounced, Blessed are the Meek, for they shall inherit the Earth.
The principle of peace, where our trust is solely in the Lord and our minds are free from reliance on military might, seems very valuable to me. I often feel a strong desire for those of us who believe in this principle to live in a way that doesn’t give any of our fellow beings a reason to be offended by us. Our lives should clearly show that we have been freed from the spirit that leads to wars. Our blessed Savior pointed out the danger of depending on humans and neglecting the guidance of His Holy Spirit when He said, Call no man your father on earth, for you have one Father, who is in heaven, Mat. xxiii. 9. When we faithfully follow the wisdom from above, and in doing so, are entrusted with substance, it becomes a treasure entrusted to us as an inheritance from Him,[Pg 217] who created and sustains the world. In this state, we truly understand the enjoyment of life’s good things and feel that blessing which provides real safety. I believe this is what our blessed Lord meant when He said, Blessed are the meek, for they shall inherit the earth.
Selfish Worldly-minded Men may hold Lands in the selfish Spirit, and depending on the Strength of the outward Power, be perplexed with secret Uneasiness, lest the Injured should sometime overpower them, and that Measure meted to them, which they measure to others. Thus selfish Men may possess the Earth; but it is the Meek who inherit it, and enjoy it as an Inheritance from the Heavenly Father, free from all the Defilements, and Perplexities of Unrighteousness.
Selfish, materialistic people might own land for their own gain, and no matter how strong their outward power is, they can feel deep, hidden anxiety that those they've wronged might one day overpower them, receiving back what they've given to others. So, while selfish people may have control over the Earth, it's the humble who truly inherit it and enjoy it as a gift from our Heavenly Father, free from all the corruption and troubles of wrongdoing.
Where Proceedings have been in that Wisdom which is from beneath, and inequitable Gain gathered by a Man, and left as a Gift to his Children, who being entangled by the same Worldly Spirit, have not attained to that Clearness of Light in which the Channels of Righteousness are opened, and Justice done to those who remain silent under Injuries: Here I have seen under humbling Exercise of Mind, that the Sins of the Fathers are embraced by the Children, and become their Sins, and thus of the Days of Tribulation, the Iniquities in the Fathers are visited upon these Children, who take hold of the Unrighteousness of their Fathers, and live in that Spirit in which those Iniquities were committed; to which agreeth the Prophecy of Moses, concerning a rebellious People; They that are left of you shall pine away in their Iniquities, in your Enemy's Land, and in the Iniquities of their Fathers shall they pine away, Lev. xxvi. 39. and our blessed Lord in beholding the Hardness of Heart in that Generation, and feeling in himself, that they lived in the same Spirit in which the Prophets had been persecuted unto Death, signified, That the Blood of all the Prophets which was shed from the Foundation of the World, should be required of that Generation, from the Blood of Abel, unto the Blood of Zacharias, who perished between the Altar and the Temple, Luke xi. 51.[Pg 218]
Where actions have come from a wisdom that is not true, and unfair gains have been made by a person and left as a legacy to their children, who, trapped by the same worldly mindset, have not achieved the clarity of understanding that opens the paths of righteousness and delivers justice to those who suffer in silence: Here, I have observed, through a humbling state of mind, that the sins of the fathers carry over to the children and become their own sins. Thus, in times of trouble, the wrongdoings of the fathers are passed down to these children, who embrace the wrongdoing of their parents and live in the same mindset in which those wrongs were committed; this aligns with the prophecy of Moses about a rebellious people: Those who are left of you will waste away in their iniquities in the land of your enemies, and in the iniquities of their fathers will they waste away, Lev. xxvi. 39. Our blessed Lord, witnessing the hardness of heart in that generation and feeling within himself that they lived in the same mindset in which the prophets had been persecuted to death, indicated, That the blood of all the prophets shed from the foundation of the world will be required of that generation, from the blood of Abel, to the blood of Zacharias, who was killed between the altar and the temple, Luke xi. 51.[Pg 218]
Tender Compassion fills my Heart towards my Fellow Creatures estranged from the harmonious Government of the Prince of Peace, and a Labour attends me, that they may be gathered to this peaceable Habitation.
Tender compassion fills my heart for my fellow creatures who are disconnected from the harmonious rule of the Prince of Peace, and I feel a responsibility to help them find their way to this peaceful place.
In being inwardly prepared to suffer Adversity for Christ's Sake, and weaned from a Dependance on the Arm of Flesh, we feel, that there is a Rest for the People of God, and that it stands in a perfect Resignation of ourselves to his Holy Will; in this Condition, all our Wants and Desires are bounded by pure Wisdom, and our Minds wholly attentive to the Counsel of Christ inwardly communicated, which hath appeared to me as a Habitation of Safety for the Lord's People, in Times of outward Commotion and Trouble, and Desires from the Fountain of pure Love, are opened in me, to invite my Brethren and Fellow Creatures to feel for, and seek after that which gathers the Mind into it.
By being internally ready to endure hardship for Christ's sake and moving away from relying on human strength, we realize that there is a rest for God's people, which comes from completely surrendering ourselves to His holy will. In this state, all our needs and desires are guided by perfect wisdom, and our minds are fully focused on the guidance of Christ, which is communicated to us internally. This has shown me that it serves as a place of safety for the Lord's people during times of external chaos and trouble. My desires, stemming from pure love, have opened up in me to invite my brothers and fellow beings to seek and draw close to that which brings the mind together.
John Woolman.
John Woolman.
REMARKS ON SUNDRY SUBJECTS.
By JOHN WOOLMAN.
LONDON:
Printed by Mary Hinde.
LONDON:
Printed by Mary Hinde.
REMARKS &c.
CHAPTER I
On loving our Neighbours as ourselves
On loving our neighbors as ourselves
When we love the Lord with all our Hearts, and his Creatures in his Love, we are then preserv'd in Tenderness both toward Mankind and the Animal Creation; but if another Spirit gets Room in our Minds, and we follow it in our Proceedings, we are then in the Way of disordering the Affairs of Society.
When we love the Lord with all our hearts and His creations by His love, we are then kept in kindness towards both people and animals. However, if a different spirit takes hold of our minds and we follow it in our actions, we then disrupt the order of society.
If a Man successful in Business expends Part of his Income in Things of no real Use, while the Poor employed by him pass through great Difficulties in getting the Necessaries of Life, this requires his serious Attention.
If a man who is successful in business spends part of his income on things that aren't really useful, while the poor workers he employs struggle to get the essentials of life, he needs to pay serious attention to this.
If several principal Men in Business unite in setting the Wages of those who work for Hire, and therein have Regard to a Profit to themselves answerable to unnecessary Expence in their Families, while the Wages of the other on a moderate Industry will not afford a comfortable Living for their Families, and a proper Education for their Children, this is like laying a Temptation in the Way of some to strive for a Place higher than they are in, when they have not Stock sufficient for it.
If several main business leaders come together to set the wages of hired workers, and they consider their own profits while facing unnecessary expenses in their families, while the wages for others based on moderate work don't provide a comfortable living for their families or proper education for their children, this is similar to creating a temptation for some to reach for a position higher than they can afford.
Now I feel a Concern in the Spring of pure Love, that all who have Plenty of outward Substance, may Example others in the right Use of Things; may carefully look into the Condition of poor People, and beware of exacting on them with Regard to their Wages.
Now I feel a concern in the spring of true love, that everyone who has plenty of resources may set an example for others in the proper use of things; they should carefully examine the situation of those who are poor and be cautious about taking advantage of them regarding their wages.
While hired Labourers, by moderate Industry, through the Divine Blessing, may live comfortably, raise up Families, and give them suitable Education, it appears reasonable for them to be content with their Wages.
While employed workers, through hard work and with a bit of luck, can live well, support families, and provide them with a decent education, it seems fair for them to be satisfied with their pay.
If they who have Plenty love their Fellow Creatures[Pg 222] in that Love which is Divine, and in all their Proceedings have an equal Regard to the Good of Mankind universally, their Place in Society is a Place of Care, an Office requiring Attention, and the more we possess, the greater is our Trust, and with an Increase of Treasure, an Increase of Care becomes necessary.
If those who have plenty truly care for their fellow beings[Pg 222] with a divine love and consider the well-being of humanity in everything they do, their role in society is one of responsibility, a position that demands attention. The more we have, the greater our responsibility becomes, and as we gain wealth, the need for care also increases.
When our Will is subject to the Will of God, and in relation to the Things of this World, we have nothing in View, but a comfortable Living equally with the rest of our Fellow Creatures, then outward Treasures are no farther desirable than as we feel a Gift in our Minds equal to the Trust, and Strength to act as dutiful Children in his Service, who hath formed all Mankind, and appointed a Subsistence for us in this World.
When our will aligns with God's will, and we focus on the things of this world just to have a comfortable life like everyone else, then external wealth only becomes desirable if we sense a purpose in our minds that matches the responsibility we've been given, and the strength to act as faithful children in His service, who created all humanity and provided for us in this world.
A Desire for Treasures on any other Motive, appears to be against that Command of our blessed Saviour, Lay not up for yourselves Treasures here on Earth, Mat. vi. 19.
A desire for treasures, for any reason, seems to go against the command of our blessed Savior, Lay not up for yourselves treasures here on Earth, Mat. vi. 19.
He forbids not laying up in the Summer against the Wants of Winter; nor doth he teach us to be slothful in that which properly relates to our being in this World; but in this Prohibition he puts in yourselves, Lay not up for yourselves Treasures here on Earth.
He doesn’t forbid saving up in the summer to prepare for the needs of winter; nor does he teach us to be lazy about things that are important for living in this world. But in this warning, he tells us, don’t store up treasures for yourselves here on Earth.
Now in the pure Light, this Language is understood, for in the Love of Christ there is no Respect of Persons; and while we abide in his Love, we live not to ourselves, but to him who died for us. And as we are thus united in Spirit to Christ, we are engaged to labour in promoting that Work in the Earth for which he suffer'd.
Now in the pure Light, this Language is understood, for in the Love of Christ there is no favoritism; and as long as we remain in his Love, we live not for ourselves, but for him who died for us. And as we are united in Spirit to Christ, we are committed to working towards that mission on Earth for which he suffered.
In this State of Mind our Desires are, that every honest Member in Society may have a Portion of Treasure, and Share of Trust, answerable to that Gift, with which our Heavenly Father hath gifted us.
In this State of Mind, we desire that every honest member of society may have their share of wealth and trust, reflecting the gifts that our Heavenly Father has bestowed upon us.
In great Treasure, there is a great Trust. A great Trust requireth great Care. But the laborious Mind wants Rest.
In great treasure, there is great trust. Great trust requires great care. But a busy mind needs rest.
A pious Man is content to do a Share of Business in Society, answerable to the Gifts with which he is endowed, while the Channels of Business are free from Unrighteousness, but is careful lest at any Time his Heart be over-charg'd.[Pg 223]
A devout person is happy to participate in society, using the talents they have been given, as long as their work is free from wrongdoing. However, they are cautious not to let their heart become overwhelmed.[Pg 223]
In the harmonious Spirit of Society Christ is all in all, Col. iii. 11.
In the united spirit of community, Christ is everything, Col. iii. 11.
Here it is that old Things are past away, all Things are new, all Things are of God, 2 Cor. v. 17, 18, and the Desire for outward Riches is at an End.
Here it is that old things have passed away, all things are new, and all things are from God, 2 Cor. v. 17, 18, and the desire for external wealth is over.
They of low Degree who have small Gifts, enjoy their Help who have large Gifts; those with their small Gifts, have a small degree of Care, while these with their large Gifts, have a large degree of Care: And thus to abide in the Love of Christ, and enjoy a comfortable Living in this World is all that is aimed at by those Members in Society, to whom Christ is made Wisdom and Righteousness.
People of low status who have limited abilities benefit from the support of those who have great talents; those with limited abilities feel little concern, while those with great talents feel much concern. Therefore, to remain in the love of Christ and to have a comfortable life in this world is all that those members of society aim for, to whom Christ is seen as wisdom and righteousness.
But when they who have much Treasure, are not faithful Stewards of the Gifts of God, great Difficulties attend it.
But when those who have a lot of wealth are not responsible managers of God's gifts, it brings about significant challenges.
Now this Matter hath deeply affected my Mind. The Lord, through merciful Chastisements, hath given me a Feeling of that Love, in which the Harmony of Society standeth, and a Sight of the Growth of that Seed which bringeth forth Wars and great Calamities in the World, and a Labour attends me to open it to others.
Now this matter has deeply affected my mind. The Lord, through merciful punishments, has given me a sense of that love, which is the foundation of social harmony, and a vision of the growth of that seed that produces wars and great disasters in the world, and it compels me to share this understanding with others.
Now to act with Integrity, according to that Strength of Mind and Body with which our Creator hath endowed each of us, appears necessary for all, and he who thus stands in the lowest Station, appears to be entitled to as comfortable and convenient a Living, as he whose Gifts of Mind are greater, and whose Cares are more extensive.
Now acting with integrity, based on the strength of mind and body that our creator has given each of us, seems essential for everyone. Even those in the lowest positions deserve to have a comfortable and convenient life, just like those with greater mental abilities and more responsibilities.
If some endowed with strong Understandings as Men, abide not in the harmonious State, in which we love our Neighbours as ourselves, but walk in that Spirit in which the Children of this World are wise in their Generation; these by the Strength of Contrivance may sometimes gather great Treasure, but the Wisdom of this World is Foolishness with God; and if we gather Treasures in Worldly Wisdom, we lay up Treasures for ourselves; and great Treasures managed in any other Spirit, than the Spirit of Truth, disordereth the Affairs of Society, for hereby the good Gifts of God in this outward Creation are turned into the Channels of Worldly Honour, and frequently applied to support Luxury, while the Wages[Pg 224] of poor Labourers are such, that with moderate Industry and Frugality they may not live comfortably, raise up Families, and give them suitable Education, but through the Streightness of their Condition, are often drawn on to labour under Weariness, to toil through Hardships themselves, and frequently to oppress those useful Animals with which we are intrusted.
If some people who are really smart like men don’t stay in the harmonious place where we love our neighbors as ourselves, but instead follow the mindset of those who are wise in this world; they might sometimes gather a lot of wealth through cleverness, but the wisdom of this world is foolishness to God. If we accumulate riches through worldly wisdom, we are storing up treasures for ourselves; and great wealth handled in any spirit other than the Spirit of Truth disrupts the workings of society. This way, God's good gifts in this world are redirected towards worldly honor and often used to support luxury, while the wages[Pg 224] of poor laborers are so low that even with moderate effort and frugality, they struggle to live comfortably, raise families, and provide them with proper education. Instead, due to their tight circumstances, they often end up exhausted, facing hardships themselves, and sometimes having to mistreat the useful animals that we are responsible for.
From Age to Age, throughout all Ages, Divine Love is that alone, in which Dominion has been, is, and will be rightly conducted.
From generation to generation, throughout all time, Divine Love is the only thing in which authority has been, is, and will be properly exercised.
In this the Endowments of Men are so employed, that the Friend and the Governor are united in one, and oppressive Customs come to an End.
In this, people's abilities are used in such a way that the Friend and the Governor become one, and oppressive customs are put to an end.
Riches in the Hands of Individuals in Society, is attended with some degree of Power; and so far as Power is put forth separate from pure Love, so far the Government of the Prince of Peace is interrupted; and as we know not that our Children after us will dwell in that State in which Power is rightly applied, to lay up Riches for them appears to be against the Nature of his Government.
Riches in the Hands of Individuals in Society come with a certain level of Power; and as long as Power is exercised apart from pure Love, the Government of the Prince of Peace is disrupted. Since we cannot be sure that our Children will live in a State where Power is used correctly, saving up Wealth for them seems to go against the Nature of his Government.
The Earth, through the Labour of Men under the Blessing of him who formed it, yieldeth a Supply for the Inhabitants from Generation to Generation, and they who walk in the pure Light, their Minds are prepared to taste and relish not only those Blessings which are spiritual, but also feel a Sweetness and Satisfaction in a right Use of the good Gifts of God in the visible Creation.
The Earth, through the efforts of people under the blessing of the one who created it, provides for its inhabitants from generation to generation. Those who live in pure light are ready to not only appreciate spiritual blessings but also experience joy and satisfaction in the proper use of God’s good gifts in the visible world.
Here we see that Man's Happiness stands not in great Possessions, but in a Heart devoted to follow Christ, in that Use of Things, where Customs contrary to universal Love have no Power over us.
Here we see that true Happiness isn’t found in material wealth, but in a heart committed to following Christ, using things in a way that customs opposed to universal Love have no control over us.
In this State our Hearts are prepared to trust in God, and our Desires for our Children and Posterity are, that they, with the rest of Mankind, in Ages to come, may be of that Number, of whom he hath said, I will be a Father to them, and they shall be my Sons and Daughters, 2 Cor. vi. 18.
In this state, our hearts are ready to trust in God, and our hopes for our children and future generations are that they, along with all of humanity, may be among those of whom He has said, I will be a Father to them, and they shall be my Sons and Daughters, 2 Cor. vi. 18.
When Wages in a fruitful Land bear so small a Proportion to the Necessaries of Life, that poor honest People[Pg 225] who have Families cannot by a moderate Industry attain to a comfortable Living, and give their Children sufficient Learning, but must either labour to a degree of Oppression, or else omit that which appears to be a Duty.
When wages in a productive area are so low compared to the basic needs of life that hardworking, honest people[Pg 225] with families can't make a decent living or provide their children with enough education, they are forced to either work excessively hard or neglect what seems to be their responsibility.
While this is the Case with the Poor, there is an Inclination in the Minds of most People, to prepare at least so much Treasure for their Children, that they with Care and moderate Industry may live free from these Hardships which the Poor pass through.
While this is true for the Poor, most people tend to want to accumulate some wealth for their children so that they can, with a little effort and diligence, live without the struggles that the Poor face.
Now this Subject requireth our serious Consideration: To labour that our Children may be put in a Way to live comfortably, appears in itself to be a Duty, so long as these our Labours are consistent with universal Righteousness; but if in striving to shun Poverty, we do not walk in that State where Christ is our Life, then we wander; He that hath the Son, hath Life, 1 John v. 12. This Life is the Light of Men, 1 John 1. 4. If we walk not in this Light, we walk in Darkness, and he that walketh in Darkness, knoweth not whither he goeth, John xii. 35.
Now this subject requires our serious consideration: Working hard so that our children can live comfortably seems like a responsibility, especially as long as our efforts align with universal righteousness. However, if in trying to avoid poverty we don't live in a way where Christ is our life, then we lose our way; He that hath the Son, hath life, 1 John v. 12. This life is the light of men, 1 John 1. 4. If we don’t walk in this light, we walk in darkness, and he that walketh in darkness, knoweth not whither he goeth, John xii. 35.
To keep to right Means in labouring to attain a right End is necessary: If in striving to shun Poverty, we strive only in that State where Christ is the Light of our Life, our Labours will stand in the true Harmony of Society; but if People are confident that the End aimed at is good, and in this Confidence pursue it so eagerly, as not to wait for the Spirit of Truth to lead them, then they come to Loss. Christ is given to be a Leader and Commander of the People, Isaiah lv. 4. Again; The Lord shall guide thee continually, Isaiah lviii. 12. Again; Lord, thou wilt ordain Peace for us, for thou also hast wrought all our Works in us, Isaiah xxvi. 12.
To stay on the right path while working towards a good goal is essential: If we try to avoid poverty only in the place where Christ is the Light of our Lives, our efforts will align with the true harmony of society. However, if people are certain that their goal is good and pursue it so passionately without waiting for the Spirit of Truth to guide them, they will end up in trouble. Christ is given to be a Leader and Commander of the People, Isaiah lv. 4. Again; The Lord shall guide thee continually, Isaiah lviii. 12. Again; Lord, thou wilt ordain Peace for us, for thou also hast wrought all our Works in us, Isaiah xxvi. 12.
In the Lord have we Righteousness and Strength, Isaiah xlv. 24.
In the Lord, we find righteousness and strength, Isaiah xlv. 24.
In this State our Minds are preserved watchful in following the Leadings of his Spirit in all our Proceedings in this World, and a Care is felt for a Reformation in general. That our own Posterity, with the rest of Mankind in succeeding Ages, may not be entangled by oppressive Customs, transmitted to them through our Hands; but if People in the Narrowness of natural Love, are[Pg 226] afraid that their Children will be oppressed by the Rich, and through an eager Desire to get Treasures, depart from the pure Leadings of Truth in one Case, though it may seem to be a small Matter, yet the Mind even in that small Matter may be embolden'd to continue in a Way of Proceeding, without waiting for the Divine Leader.
In this state, we stay alert and follow the guidance of his Spirit in everything we do in this world, and we feel a responsibility for a general reform. We want to ensure that our own descendants, along with everyone else in future generations, aren't trapped by oppressive customs passed down through us. However, if people, in their limited natural love, worry that their children will be oppressed by the wealthy and, in their eagerness to acquire wealth, stray from the pure guidance of truth in even what may seem like a minor issue, the mind, even in that minor issue, may become emboldened to continue on a path without waiting for the Divine Leader.
Thus People may grow expert in Business, wise in the Wisdom of this World, retain a fair Reputation amongst Men, and yet being Strangers to the Voice of Christ, the safe Leader of his Flock, the Treasures thus gotten, may be like Snares to the Feet of their Posterity.
Thus, people may become skilled in business, knowledgeable about the ways of the world, maintain a good reputation among others, and yet, if they are strangers to the voice of Christ, the true leader of his followers, the treasures they accumulate may end up being traps for their descendants.
Now to keep faithful to the pure Counsellor, and under trying Circumstances suffer Adversity for Righteousness Sake, in this there is a Reward.
Now to stay true to the genuine Advisor, and during tough times endure hardship for the sake of what’s right, there is a reward in this.
If we, being poor, are hardly dealt with by those who are rich, and under this Difficulty are frugal and industrious, and in true Humility open our Case to them who oppress us, this may reach the pure Witness in their Minds; and though we should remain under Difficulties as to the outward, yet if we abide in the Love of Christ, all will work for our Good.
If we, being poor, are treated unfairly by those who are wealthy, and despite this struggle, are careful and hardworking, honestly sharing our situation with those who oppress us, this may touch the good conscience in their minds; and even if we continue to face challenges externally, as long as we stay in the Love of Christ, everything will work out for our benefit.
When we feel what it is to suffer in the true suffering State, then we experience the Truth of those Expressions, that, as the Sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our Consolation aboundeth by Christ, 2 Cor. i. 5.
When we truly understand what it means to suffer, we then grasp the reality of the statement that, just as Christ's sufferings overflow in us, so our comfort also overflows through Christ, 2 Cor. i. 5.
But if poor People who are hardly dealt with, do not attain to the true suffering State, do not labour in true Love with those who deal hardly with them, but envy their outward Greatness, murmur in their Hearts because of their own Poverty, and strive in the Wisdom of this World to get Riches for themselves and their Children; this is like wandering in the Dark.
But if poor people who are treated unfairly don’t reach a genuine state of suffering, don’t truly work with love towards those who mistreat them, but instead envy their outward success, complain in their hearts because of their own poverty, and try to gain wealth for themselves and their children through worldly wisdom, this is like wandering in the dark.
If we who are of a middle Station between Riches and Poverty, are affected at Times with the Oppressions of the Poor, and feel a tender Regard for our Posterity after us, O how necessary is it that we wait for the pure Counsel of Truth!
If we're in a middle position between wealth and poverty, and sometimes feel troubled by the hardships of the poor and care about our future generations, how important it is that we seek the unfiltered advice of truth!
Many have seen the Hardships of the Poor, felt an eager Desire that their Children may be put in a Way to escape[Pg 227] these Hardships; but how few have continued in that pure Love which openeth our Understandings to proceed rightly under these Difficulties!
Many have witnessed the struggles of the poor and have a strong desire for their children to be given a chance to escape[Pg 227] these struggles; but how few have maintained that genuine love that helps us understand how to navigate these challenges correctly!
How few have faithfully followed that Holy Leader who prepares his People to labour for the Restoration of true Harmony amongst our Fellow Creatures!
How few have genuinely followed that Holy Leader who guides his People to work towards restoring true Harmony among our Fellow Creatures!
In the pure Gospel Spirit we walk by Faith and not by Sight, 2 Cor. v. 7.
We walk by faith, not by sight, in the true spirit of the Gospel. 2 Cor. v. 7.
In the Obedience of Faith we die to the Narrowness of Self-love, and our Life being hid with Christ in God, our Hearts are enlarg'd toward Mankind universally; but in departing from the true Light of Life, many in striving to get Treasures have stumbled upon the dark Mountains.
In the Obedience of Faith, we let go of the constraints of selfishness, and with our lives hidden with Christ in God, our hearts expand to embrace all of humanity. However, in turning away from the true Light of Life, many have stumbled upon the dark mountains in their pursuit of wealth.
Now that Purity of Life which proceeds from Faithfulness in following the Spirit of Truth, that State where our Minds are devoted to serve God, and all our Wants are bounded by his Wisdom, this Habitation has often been open'd before me as a Place of Retirement for the Children of the Light, where we may stand separated from that which disordereth and confuseth the Affairs of Society, and where we may have a Testimony of our Innocence in the Hearts of those who behold us.
Now that the Purity of Life comes from being faithful to the Spirit of Truth, that state where our minds are committed to serving God, and all our needs are guided by His Wisdom, this place has often been shown to me as a sanctuary for the Children of Light, where we can be apart from what disrupts and confuses the affairs of society, and where we can have a witness of our innocence in the hearts of those who see us.
Through departing from the Truth as it is in Jesus, through introducing Ways of Life attended with unnecessary Expences, many Wants have arisen, the Minds of People have been employ'd in studying to get Wealth, and in this Pursuit some departing from Equity, have retain'd a Profession of Religion; others have look'd at their Example, and thereby been strengthen'd to proceed further in the same Way: Thus many have encourag'd the Trade of taking Men from Africa, and selling them as Slaves.
Through straying from the Truth found in Jesus and adopting lifestyles that come with unnecessary expenses, many needs have emerged. People’s minds have been consumed with the pursuit of wealth, and in this chase, some have abandoned fairness while still claiming to follow their faith; others have observed their example and been encouraged to follow the same path. As a result, many have supported the business of taking people from Africa and selling them into slavery.
It hath been computed that near One Hundred Thousand Negroes have of late Years been taken annually from that Coast, by Ships employed in the English Trade.
It has been estimated that nearly one hundred thousand Black people have recently been taken each year from that coast by ships involved in the English trade.
As I have travell'd on religious Visits in some Parts of America, I have seen many of these People under the Command of Overseers, in a painful Servitude.
As I have traveled on religious visits in some parts of America, I have seen many of these people under the control of overseers, in a painful servitude.
I have beheld them as Gentiles under People professing Christianity, not only kept ignorant of the Holy Scriptures,[Pg 228] but under great Provocations to Wrath; of whom it may truly be said, They that rule over them make them to howl, and the Holy Name is abundantly blasphemed, Isaiah lii. 5.
I have seen them as Gentiles among people claiming to be Christian, not only kept in the dark about the Holy Scriptures,[Pg 228] but also faced with great provocations to anger; of them, it can truly be said, Those who rule over them make them cry out, and the Holy Name is greatly blasphemed, Isaiah lii. 5.
Where Children are taught to read the Sacred Writings, while young, and exampled in Meekness and Humility, it is often helpful to them; nor is this any more than a Debt due from us to a succeeding Age.
Where children are taught to read the Sacred Writings at a young age and are shown examples of Meekness and Humility, it often benefits them; and this is simply a debt we owe to future generations.
But where Youth are pinched for want of the Necessaries of Life, forced to labour hard under the harsh Rebukes of rigorous Overseers, and many Times endure unmerciful Whippings: In such an Education, how great are the Disadvantages they lie under! And how forcibly do these Things work against the Increase of the Government of the Prince of Peace!
But when young people are struggling because they lack the basic necessities of life, forced to work hard under the harsh criticism of strict supervisors, and often endure severe punishments: in such conditions, what huge disadvantages do they face! And how strongly do these factors undermine the growth of the Kingdom of Peace!
Humphrey Smith, in his Works, p. 125, speaking of the tender Feelings of the Love of God in his Heart when he was a Child, said, "By the violent wrathful Nature that ruled in others, was my Quietness disturbed, and Anger begotten in me toward them, yet that of God in me was not wholly overcome, but his Love was felt in my Heart, and great was my Grief when the Earthly-mindedness and wrathful Nature so provoked me, that I was estranged from it.
Humphrey Smith, in his Works, p. 125, talks about the deep feelings of God’s love that he experienced as a child. He said, "The fierce and angry nature that dominated others disturbed my peace and made me feel anger toward them, yet God’s presence in me was not completely overwhelmed. His love was still felt in my heart, and I felt immense sorrow when the worldly attitude and angry nature provoked me to the point of feeling separated from it."
"And this I write as a Warning to Parents and others, that in the Fear of the living God, you may train up the Youth, and may not be a Means of bringing them into such Alienation."
"And I'm writing this as a warning to parents and others, so that you may raise the youth with a genuine fear of the living God, and not be a cause of their alienation."
Many are the Vanities and Luxuries of the present Age, and in labouring to support a Way of living conformable to the present World, the Departure from that Wisdom that is pure and peaceable hath been great.
Many are the vanities and luxuries of today's age, and in trying to maintain a lifestyle that fits with the modern world, there has been a significant departure from that pure and peaceful wisdom.
Under the Sense of a deep Revolt, and an overflowing Stream of Unrighteousness, my Life has been often a Life of Mourning, and tender Desires are raised in me, that the Nature of this Practice may be laid to Heart.
Under the weight of a deep rebellion and a constant flow of injustice, my life has often been one of sorrow, and I feel a strong urge for this practice to be taken seriously.
I have read some Books wrote by People who were acquainted with the Manner of getting Slaves in Africa.
I have read some books written by people who knew how slaves were obtained in Africa.
I have had verbal Relations of this Nature from several Negroes brought from Africa, who have learn'd to talk English.[Pg 229]
I’ve had conversations about this topic with several Black people from Africa who have learned to speak English.[Pg 229]
I have sundry Times heard Englishmen speak on this Subject, who have been at Africa on this Business; and from all these Accounts it appears evident that great Violence is committed, and much Blood shed in Africa in getting Slaves.
I have heard various English people discuss this topic many times, who have been to Africa for this purpose; and from all these accounts, it is clear that great violence is inflicted, and a lot of blood is shed in Africa to obtain slaves.
When three or four Hundred Slaves are put in the Hold of a Vessel in a hot Climate, their Breathing soon affects the Air. Were that Number of free People to go Passengers with all Things proper for their Voyage, there would Inconvenience arise from their Number; but Slaves are taken by Violence, and frequently endeavour to kill the white People, that they may return to their Native Land. Hence they are frequently kept under some Sort of Confinement, by Means of which a Scent ariseth in the Hold of a Ship, and Distempers often break out amongst them, of which many die. Of this tainted Air in the Hold of Ships freighted with Slaves, I have had several Accounts, some in Print, and some verbal, and all agree that the Scent is grievous. When these People are sold in America, and in the Islands, they are made to labour in a Manner more servile and constant, than that which they were used to at Home, that with Grief, with different Diet from what has been common with them, and with hard Labour, some Thousands are computed to die every Year, in what is called the Seasoning.
When three or four hundred slaves are packed into the hold of a ship in a hot climate, their breathing quickly makes the air uncomfortable. If that many free people were traveling together with everything they needed for the journey, there would still be issues due to their number; but slaves are taken by force and often try to kill the white crew members in hopes of returning to their homeland. As a result, they are frequently kept in some form of confinement, leading to a foul odor in the ship's hold, and diseases often break out among them, causing many to die. I have heard various accounts about this foul air in the holds of slave ships, both in print and through word of mouth, and they all agree that the smell is horrendous. When these people are sold in America and the Islands, they are forced to work in a more oppressive and constant manner than they were used to back home, and due to grief, a different diet than they are accustomed to, and hard labor, thousands are estimated to die each year during what is called the seasoning process.
Thus it appears evident, that great Numbers of these People are brought every Year to an untimely End; many of them being such who never injured us.
Thus it seems clear that a large number of these people meet an early demise each year; many of them being individuals who never harmed us.
When the Innocent suffer under hard-hearted Men, even unto Death, and the Channels of Equity are so obstructed, that the Cause of the Sufferers is not judged in Righteousness, the Land is polluted with Blood, Numb. xxxv. 33.
When innocent people suffer at the hands of cruel men, even to the point of death, and the pathways to fairness are so blocked that the plight of the victims isn't judged with justice, the land is polluted with blood, Numb. xxxv. 33.
When Blood hath been shed unrighteously, and remains unatoned for, the Cry thereof is very piercing.
When blood has been shed unjustly and goes unpunished, its call is very piercing.
Under the humbling Dispensations of Divine Providence, this Cry hath deeply affected my Heart, and I feel a Concern to open, as I may be enabled, that which lieth heavy on my Mind.
Under the humbling guidance of Divine Providence, this cry has deeply moved my heart, and I feel a need to share, as I am able, what weighs heavily on my mind.
When the Iniquity of the House of Israel and of Judah[Pg 230] was exceeding great, when the Land was defiled with Blood, and the City full of Perverseness, Ezek. ix. 9. some were found sighing and crying for the Abominations of the Times, Ezek. ix. 4. and such who live under a right Feeling of our Condition as a Nation, these I trust will be sensible that the Lord at this Day doth call to Mourning, though many are ignorant of it. So powerful are bad Customs when they become general, that People growing bold thro' the Examples one of another, have often been unmoved at the most serious Warnings.
When the wrongdoing of the House of Israel and of Judah[Pg 230] was extremely great, when the land was tainted with blood, and the city was full of corruption, Ezek. ix. 9. some people were found sighing and crying over the evils of the times, Ezek. ix. 4. Those who truly feel our nation's condition, I hope, will recognize that the Lord is calling for mourning today, even if many are unaware of it. Bad customs can be so powerful when they become widespread that people, emboldened by each other's examples, often remain indifferent to the most serious warnings.
Our blessed Saviour speaking of the People of the old World, said, They eat, they drank, they married, and were given in Marriage, until the Day that Noah went into the Ark, and the Flood came and destroy'd them all, Luke xvii. 27.
Our blessed Savior, talking about the people of the old world, said, They ate, they drank, they married, and were given in marriage, until the day that Noah went into the Ark, and the flood came and destroyed them all, Luke xvii. 27.
The like he spake concerning the People of Sodom, who are also represented by the Prophet as haughty, luxurious, and oppressive; This was the Sin of Sodom, Pride, Fulness of Bread, and Abundance of Idleness was found in her, and in her Daughters; neither did she strengthen the Hands of the Poor and Needy, Ezek. xvi. 49.
The way he spoke about the people of Sodom, who are also depicted by the Prophet as arrogant, indulged, and abusive; This was the sin of Sodom, Pride, Excessive Food, and Plenty of Leisure were found in her and in her daughters; she did not support the hands of the poor and needy, Ezek. xvi. 49.
Now in a Revolt so deep as this, when much Blood has been shed unrighteously, in carrying on the Slave Trade, and in supporting the Practice of keeping Slaves, which at this Day is unatoned for, and crieth from the Earth, and from the Seas against the Oppressor!
Now in a revolt this intense, when so much blood has been unjustly spilled to continue the slave trade and to support the practice of keeping slaves, which remains unatoned for today, it cries out from the earth and the seas against the oppressor!
While this Practice is continued, and under a great Load of Guilt there is more Unrighteousness committed, the State of Things is very moving!
While this practice continues, and under a heavy burden of guilt more wrongdoing occurs, the situation is truly alarming!
There is a Love which stands in Nature, and a Parent beholding his Child in Misery, hath a Feeling of the Affliction; but in Divine Love the Heart is enlarged towards Mankind universally, and prepar'd to sympathize with Strangers, though in the lowest Station in Life.
There is a love that exists in nature, and a parent seeing their child in pain feels the sorrow; but in divine love, the heart expands towards all of humanity and is ready to empathize with strangers, even those in the lowest position in life.
Of this the Prophet appears to have had a Feeling, when he said, Have we not all one Father? Hath not one God created us? Why then do we deal treacherously every Man with his Brother, in prophaning the Covenant of our Fathers? Mal. ii. 10.[Pg 231]
Of this, the Prophet seems to have had a sense when he said, Don’t we all have one Father? Didn’t one God create us? So why do we betray each other and break the promise of our ancestors? Mal. ii. 10.[Pg 231]
He who of old heard the Groans of the Children of Israel under the hard Task-masters in Egypt, I trust hath looked down from his Holy Habitation on the Miseries of these deeply oppress'd People. Many Lives have been shorten'd through extreme Oppression while they labour'd to support Luxury and Worldly Greatness; and tho' many People in outward Prosperity may think little of those Things, yet the gracious Creator hath Regard to the Cries of the Innocent, however unnoticed by Men.
He who once heard the cries of the children of Israel under the harsh taskmasters in Egypt, I trust has looked down from his holy dwelling on the suffering of these deeply oppressed people. Many lives have been cut short due to extreme oppression while they worked to support luxury and worldly greatness; and although many people in outward prosperity may think little of these things, the gracious Creator pays attention to the cries of the innocent, even if people overlook them.
The Lord in the Riches of his Goodness is leading some into the Feeling of the Condition of this People, who cannot rest without labouring as their Advocate; of which in some Measure I have had Experience, for, in the Movings of his Love in my Heart, these poor Sufferers have been brought near to me.
The Lord, in the abundance of His goodness, is guiding some to truly understand the struggles of this people, who cannot find peace without advocating for them. I have experienced this to some extent, as the warmth of His love in my heart has drawn me close to these poor sufferers.
The unoffending Aged and Infirm made to labour too hard, kept on a Diet less comfortable than their weak State required, and exposed to great Difficulties under hard-hearted Men, to whose Sufferings I have often been a Witness, and under the Heart-melting Power of Divine Love, their Misery hath felt to me like the Misery of my Parents.
The innocent elderly and sick were forced to work too hard, kept on a diet less comfortable than their frail condition needed, and faced significant challenges under cruel men, whose suffering I have often witnessed. Under the heart-wrenching influence of divine love, their misery felt to me like the misery of my parents.
Innocent Youth taken by Violence from their Native Land, from their Friends and Acquaintance; put on board Ships with Hearts laden with Sorrow; exposed to great Hardships at Sea; placed under People, where their Lives have been attended with great Provocation to Anger and Revenge.
Innocent youth taken by violence from their homeland, away from their friends and acquaintances; put on ships with heavy hearts; exposed to severe hardships at sea; placed among people who provoke anger and revenge in their lives.
With the Condition of these Youth, my Mind hath often been affected, as with the Afflictions of my Children, and in a Feeling of the Misery of these People, and of that great Offence which is minister'd to them, my Tears have been often poured out before the Lord.
With the state of these young people, I’ve often felt moved, just as I do with my own children’s struggles. Feeling the pain of these individuals and the huge wrongs done to them has often led me to cry out to the Lord.
That Holy Spirit which affected my Heart when I was a Youth, I trust is often felt by the Negroes in their Native Land, inclining their Minds to that which is righteous, and had the professed Followers of Christ in all their Conduct towards them, manifested a Disposition answerable to the pure Principle in their Hearts, how might the Holy Name[Pg 232] have been honoured amongst the Gentiles, and how might we have rejoiced in the fulfilling of that Prophecy, I the Lord love Judgment, I hate Robbery for Burnt-offerings, and I will direct their Work in Truth, and make an everlasting Covenant with them. Their Seed shall be known amongst the Gentiles, and their Offspring amongst the People: All that see them shall acknowledge them, that they are the Seed which the Lord hath blessed, Isaiah lxi. 8, 9.
That Holy Spirit that touched my heart when I was young, I believe is often felt by the Black people in their homeland, leading their minds toward what is right. If the professed followers of Christ had shown a disposition that matched the pure principle in their hearts in all their actions toward them, how might the Holy Name[Pg 232] have been honored among the Gentiles, and how might we have rejoiced in the fulfillment of that prophecy: I the Lord love justice, I hate robbery for burnt offerings, and I will direct their work in truth and make an everlasting covenant with them. Their descendants shall be known among the Gentiles, and their offspring among the people: All who see them shall acknowledge them, that they are the seed which the Lord has blessed, Isaiah lxi. 8, 9.
But in the present State of Things, how contrary is this Practice to that meek Spirit, in which our Saviour laid down his Life for us, that all the Ends of the Earth might know Salvation in his Name!
But in the current situation, how conflicting is this practice with the humble spirit in which our Savior gave up his life for us, so that all the ends of the earth might know salvation in his name!
How are the Sufferings of our blessed Redeemer set at nought, and his Name blasphemed amongst the Gentiles, through the unrighteous Proceedings of his profess'd Followers!
How are the sufferings of our blessed Redeemer dismissed, and his name insulted among the Gentiles, through the wrongful actions of his professed followers!
My Mind hath often been affected, even from the Days of my Youth, under a Sense of that marvellous Work, for which God, in infinite Goodness, sent his Son into the World.
My mind has often been impacted, even since my youth, by the awe-inspiring work for which God, in His infinite goodness, sent His Son into the world.
The opening of that Spring of living Waters, which the true Believers in Christ experience, by which they are redeemed from Pride and Covetousness, and brought into a State of Meekness, where their Hearts are enlarged in true Love toward their Fellow Creatures universally; this Work to me has been precious, and the Spreading the Knowledge of the Truth amongst the Gentiles been very desirable. And the professed Followers of Christ joining in Customs evidently unrighteous, which manifestly tend to stir up Wrath, and increase Wars and Desolations, hath often covered my Mind with Sorrow.
The beginning of that Spring of living Waters that true Believers in Christ experience, which redeems them from Pride and Greed and brings them into a state of Humility, where their Hearts are opened in genuine Love for all their fellow beings; this journey has been invaluable to me, and spreading the Knowledge of the Truth among the Gentiles has been very important. It deeply saddens me to see the so-called Followers of Christ participating in practices that are clearly unjust, which stir up Anger and lead to Wars and Destruction.
If we bring this Matter home, and as Job proposed to his Friends, Put our Soul in their Soul's stead, Job xvi. 4.
If we bring this issue closer to home, and as Job suggested to his friends, Put our soul in their soul's place, Job xvi. 4.
If we consider ourselves and our Children as exposed to the Hardships which these People lie under in supporting an imaginary Greatness.
If we see ourselves and our kids as being subjected to the struggles that these people face in upholding an unrealistic sense of greatness.
Did we in such Case behold an Increase of Luxury and Superfluity amongst our Oppressors, and therewith felt an Increase of the Weight of our Burdens, and expected our Posterity to groan under Oppression after us.[Pg 233]
Did we, in that situation, see an increase in luxury and excess among our oppressors, and along with that, feel an increase in the weight of our burdens, while expecting our descendants to suffer under oppression after us.[Pg 233]
Under all this Misery, had we none to plead our Cause, nor any Hope of Relief from Man, how would our Cries ascend to the God of the Spirits of all Flesh, who judgeth the World in Righteousness, and in his own Time is a Refuge for the Oppressed!
Under all this misery, if we had no one to plead our case, nor any hope of relief from people, how would our cries reach the God of all beings, who judges the world with fairness and, in His own time, is a refuge for the oppressed!
If they who thus afflicted us, continued to lay Claim to Religion, and were assisted in their Business by others, esteemed pious People, who through a Friendship with them strengthened their Hands in Tyranny.
If those who oppressed us kept claiming to be religious, and had the support of others considered to be good people, who through their friendship helped reinforce their tyranny.
In such a State, when we were Hunger-bitten, and could not have sufficient Nourishment but saw them in fulness pleasing their Taste with Things fetched from far:
In such a state, when we were starving and couldn't get enough food, we watched them enjoying their meals made from things brought from afar:
When we were wearied with Labour, denied the Liberty to rest, and saw them spending their Time at Ease: When Garments answerable to our Necessities were denied us, while we saw them cloathed in that which was costly and delicate:
When we were exhausted from work, denied the freedom to rest, and watched them relaxing: When clothes suitable for our needs were denied to us, while we saw them dressed in expensive and fine garments:
Under such Affliction, how would these painful Feelings rise up as Witnesses against their pretended Devotion! And if the Name of their Religion was mention'd in our Hearing, how would it sound in our Ears like a Word which signified Self-exaltation, and Hardness of Heart!
Under such Affliction, how would these painful feelings rise up as witnesses against their claimed devotion! And if the name of their religion was mentioned in our hearing, how would it sound in our ears like a word that signified self-exaltation and a hardened heart!
When a Trade is carried on, productive of much Misery, and they who suffer by it are some Thousands Miles off, the Danger is the greater, of not laying their Sufferings to Heart.
When a trade is conducted that causes a lot of suffering, and those who endure it are thousands of miles away, the risk is greater that people won't feel empathy for their hardships.
In procuring Slaves on the Coast of Africa, many Children are stolen privately; Wars also are encouraged amongst the Negroes, but all is at a great Distance.
In acquiring slaves on the coast of Africa, many children are taken secretly; wars are also incited among the Black people, but everything is happening far away.
Many Groans arise from dying Men, which we hear not.
Many moans come from dying people that we don't hear.
Many Cries are uttered by Widows and Fatherless Children, which reach not our Ears.
Many cries come from widows and fatherless children that go unheard by us.
Many Cheeks are wet with Tears, and Faces sad with unutterable Grief, which we see not.
Many cheeks are wet with tears, and faces are sad with indescribable grief, which we do not see.
Cruel Tyranny is encouraged. The Hands of Robbers are strengthened, and Thousands reduced to the most abject Slavery, who never injured us.
Cruel tyranny is promoted. The robbers' grip is strengthened, and thousands are forced into the deepest slavery, who never harmed us.
Were we for the Term of one Year only to be an Eye-witness to what passeth in getting these Slaves:
Were we to witness for just one year what goes into capturing these slaves:
Was the Blood which is there shed to be sprinkled on our Garments:[Pg 234]
Was the blood that was shed there supposed to be splashed on our clothes?[Pg 234]
Were the poor Captives bound with Thongs, heavy laden with Elephants Teeth, to pass before our Eyes on their Way to the Sea:
Were the poor captives tied up with straps, heavily burdened with elephant tusks, passing in front of us on their way to the sea:
Were their bitter Lamentations Day after Day to ring in our Ears, and their mournful Cries in the Night to hinder us from Sleeping:
Were their bitter laments day after day ringing in our ears, and their mournful cries at night keeping us from sleeping:
Were we to hear the Sound of the Tumult when the Slaves on board the Ships attempt to kill the English, and behold the Issue of those bloody Conflicts:
Were we to hear the sound of the chaos when the slaves on board the ships try to kill the English, and witness the outcome of those bloody conflicts:
What pious Man could be a Witness to these Things, and see a Trade carried on in this Manner, without being deeply affected with Sorrow?
What righteous person could witness these events and observe a trade conducted this way without being profoundly saddened?
Through abiding in the Love of Christ we feel a Tenderness in our Hearts toward our Fellow Creatures, entangled in oppressive Customs; and a Concern so to walk, that our Conduct may not be a Means of strength'ning them in Error.
Through living in the Love of Christ, we feel a compassion in our hearts for our fellow beings, caught in harsh traditions; and a desire to act in a way that our behavior doesn’t reinforce their mistakes.
It was the Command of the Lord through Moses, Thou shalt not suffer Sin upon thy Brother: Thou shalt in anywise rebuke thy Brother, and shalt not suffer Sin upon him, Lev. xix. 17.
It was the command of the Lord through Moses, You must not allow sin to affect your brother: You must definitely correct your brother, and you must not allow sin to influence him, Lev. xix. 17.
Again; Keep far from a false Matter; and the Innocent and Righteous slay thou not, Exod. xxiii. 7.
Again; Stay away from false matters; and do not kill the innocent and righteous, Exod. xxiii. 7.
The Prophet Isaiah mentions Oppression as that which the true Church in Time of outward Quiet should not only be clear of, but should be far from it; Thou shalt be far from Oppression, Isaiah liv. 14. Now these Words, far from, appear to have an extensive Meaning, and to convey Instruction in regard to that of which Solomon speaks, Though Hand join in Hand, the Wicked shall not go unpunished, Prov. xvi. 5.
The Prophet Isaiah talks about oppression as something the true Church, even in times of outward peace, should not only avoid but should be far from it; You will be far from oppression, Isaiah liv. 14. The phrase far from seems to have a broad meaning and conveys a lesson related to what Solomon says, Though hand join in hand, the wicked will not go unpunished, Prov. xvi. 5.
It was a Complaint against one of old, When thou sawest a Thief, thou consentedst with him, Psal. l. 18.
It was a complaint about someone from the past, When you saw a thief, you agreed with him, Psal. l. 18.
The Prophet Jeremiah represents the Degrees of Preparation toward Idolatrous Sacrifice, in the Similitude of a Work carried on by Children, Men, and Women: The Children gather Wood, the Fathers kindle the Fire, and the Women knead the Dough to bake Cakes for the Queen of Heaven, Jer. vii. 18.
The Prophet Jeremiah symbolizes the stages of preparation for idol worship, depicted as a task done by children, men, and women: The children collect firewood, the fathers light the fire, and the women knead the dough to bake cakes for the Queen of Heaven, Jer. vii. 18.
It was a complaint of the Lord against Israel, through[Pg 235] his Prophet Ezekiel, that they strengthen'd the Hands of the Wicked, and made the Hearts of the Righteous sad, Ezek. xiii. 12.
It was a complaint from the Lord against Israel, through[Pg 235] his Prophet Ezekiel, that they supported the wicked and discouraged the righteous, Ezek. xiii. 12.
Some Works of Iniquity carried on by the People were represented by the Prophet Hosea, in the Similitude of Ploughing, Reaping, and eating the Fruit; You have ploughed Wickedness, reaped Iniquity, eaten the Fruit of Lying, because thou didst trust in thy own Way, to the Multitude of thy mighty Men, Hosea x. 13.
Some evil deeds done by the people were described by the Prophet Hosea, using the analogy of ploughing, reaping, and enjoying the harvest; You have ploughed wickedness, reaped iniquity, eaten the fruit of lies, because you trusted in your own way and relied on the strength of your mighty men, Hosea x. 13.
I have felt great Distress of Mind since I came on this Island, on Account of the Members of our Society being mixed with the World in various Sorts of Business and Traffick, carried on in impure Channels. Great is the Trade to Africa for Slaves; and in loading these Ships abundance of People are employ'd in the Manufactories.
I have felt a lot of mental distress since I arrived on this island because our society members are involved with the world in various types of business and trade, which are happening in questionable ways. The trade to Africa for slaves is significant, and many people are employed in the factories used to load these ships.
Friends in early Time refused, on a religious Principle, to make or trade in Superfluities, of which we have many large Testimonies on Record, but for want of Faithfulness some gave way, even some whose Examples were of Note in Society, and from thence others took more Liberty: Members of our Society worked in Superfluities, and bought and sold them, and thus Dimness of Sight came over many. At length, Friends got into the Use of some Superfluities in Dress, and in the Furniture of their Houses, and this hath spread from less to more, till Superfluity of some Kind is common amongst us.
Friends in earlier times refused, on a religious basis, to create or trade in unnecessary things, and we have many significant records of this. However, due to a lack of commitment, some individuals, even those who were well-respected in society, began to compromise, leading others to feel more free to do the same. Members of our community started engaging in unnecessary goods, buying and selling them, which caused many to lose their clarity of vision. Eventually, Friends began to adopt some excess in their clothing and home furnishings, and this trend has grown from small instances to the point where excess in some form is now common among us.
In this declining State many look at the Example one of another, and too much neglect the pure Feeling of Truth. Of late Years a deep Exercise hath attended my Mind, that Friends may dig deep, may carefully cast forth the loose Matter, and get down to the Rock, the sure Foundation, and there hearken to that Divine Voice which gives a clear and certain Sound.
In this declining state, many people look at each other's examples and neglect the genuine feeling of truth. Recently, I've been deeply reflecting on the idea that friends should dig deep, carefully discard the loose material, and reach the solid rock, the sure foundation, where they can listen to that divine voice that offers a clear and certain sound.
And I have felt in that which doth not deceive, that if Friends who have known the Truth, keep in that Tenderness of Heart, where all Views of outward Gain are given up, and their Trust is only on the Lord, he will graciously lead some to be Patterns of deep Self-denial, in Things relating to Trade, and handicraft Labour; and that some who have Plenty of the Treasures of this World, will[Pg 236] example in a plain frugal Life, and pay Wages to such whom they may hire, more liberally than is now customary in some Places.
And I have felt in what doesn't deceive, that if friends who know the truth stay in that tenderness of heart, where all thoughts of external gain are set aside, and their trust is solely in the Lord, he will kindly guide some to be examples of true self-denial in areas related to trade and manual labor; and that some who have plenty of worldly treasures will[Pg 236] lead by example in living simply and frugally, and will pay those they hire more generously than what is currently common in some places.
The Prophet, speaking of the true Church, said, Thy People also shall be all righteous.
The Prophet, talking about the true Church, said, Your people will all be righteous.
Of the Depth of this Divine Work several have spoken.
Of the depth of this divine work, several people have spoken.
John Gratton, in his Journal, p. 45, said, "The Lord is my Portion, I shall not want. He hath wrought all my Works in me. I am nothing but what I am in him."
John Gratton, in his Journal, p. 45, said, "The Lord is my portion, I will not lack anything. He has done all my works through me. I am nothing apart from what I am in Him."
Gilbert Latey, through the powerful Operations of the Spirit of Christ in his Soul, was brought to that Depth of Self-denial, that he could not join with that proud Spirit in other People, which inclined them to want Vanities and Superfluities. This Friend was often amongst the chief Rulers of the Nation in Times of Persecution, and it appears by the Testimony of Friends, that his Dwelling was so evidently in the pure Life of Truth, that in his Visits to those great Men, he found a Place in their Minds; and that King James the Second, in the Times of his Troubles, made particular Mention in a very respectful Manner of what Gilbert once said to him.
Gilbert Latey was deeply transformed by the powerful workings of the Spirit of Christ in his soul, reaching a level of self-denial that kept him from joining in with the proud attitudes of others who desired vanity and excess. He often associated with the top leaders of the nation during times of persecution, and accounts from friends show that he lived so genuinely in the pure life of truth that he made a significant impression on these influential people. Even King James the Second, during his troubled times, specifically referenced something Gilbert had once said to him in a very respectful way.
The said Gilbert found a Concern to write an Epistle, in which are these Expressions; "Fear the Lord, ye Men of all Sorts, Trades, and Callings, and leave off all the Evil that is in them, for the Lord is grieved with all the Evils used in your Employments which you are exercised in.
The mentioned Gilbert felt the need to write a letter, which includes these words: "Fear the Lord, you people of all kinds, jobs, and professions, and stop all the wrongdoings involved in them, because the Lord is upset with all the evils associated with your work that you engage in.
"It is even a Grief to see how you are Servants to Sin, and Instruments of Satan." See his Works, Page 42, etc. George Fox, in an Epistle, writes thus: "Friends, stand in the Eternal Power of God, Witness against the Pomps and Vanities of this World.
"It’s truly sad to see how you are slaves to sin and tools of Satan." See his Works, Page 42, etc. George Fox, in a letter, writes: "Friends, stand in the eternal power of God and bear witness against the excesses and distractions of this world."
"Such Tradesmen who stand as Witnesses in the Power of God, cannot fulfil the People's Minds in these Vanities, and therefore they are offended at them.
"Tradespeople who witness the power of God can't satisfy people's desires for these trivial things, and that's why they are upset with them."
"Let all trust in the Lord, and wait patiently on him; for when Trust first broke forth in London, many Tradesmen could not take so much Money in their Shops for some Time, as would buy them Bread and Water, because they withstood the World's Ways, Fashions, and Customs;[Pg 237] yet by their patient waiting on the Lord in their good Life and Conversation, they answer'd the Truth in People's Hearts, and thus their Business increased." Book of Doctrinals, Page 824.
"Let everyone trust in the Lord and wait patiently for Him; because when Trust first appeared in London, many tradespeople couldn’t earn enough money in their shops for a while to buy even bread and water, as they resisted the ways, fashions, and customs of the world;[Pg 237] yet through their patient reliance on the Lord in their good actions and conversations, they resonated with the truth in people's hearts, and their business grew." Book of Doctrinals, Page 824.
Now Christ our Holy Leader graciously continueth to open the Understandings of his People, and as Circumstances alter from Age to Age, some who are deeply baptized into a Feeling of the State of Things, are led by his Holy Spirit into Exercises in some respect different from those which attended the Faithful in foregoing Ages, and through the Constrainings of pure Love, are engaged to open the Feelings they have to others.
Now Christ, our Holy Leader, graciously continues to enlighten the understanding of his people. As circumstances change from age to age, some who are deeply immersed in the reality of the situation are led by his Holy Spirit to engage in practices that differ in some ways from those experienced by the faithful in previous ages. Through the compelling nature of pure love, they are inspired to share their feelings with others.
In faithfully following Christ, the Heart is weaned from the Desires of Riches, and we are led into a Life so plain and simple, that a little doth suffice, and thus the Way openeth to deny ourselves, under all the tempting Allurements of that Gain, which we know is the Gain of Unrighteousness.
In genuinely following Christ, the heart is detached from the desire for wealth, and we're guided into a life that's so straightforward and simple that just a little is enough. This way, we learn to deny ourselves amidst all the tempting attractions of those profits, which we know are the profits of wrongdoing.
The Apostle speaking on this Subject, asketh this Question; What Fellowship hath Righteousness with Unrighteousness? 2 Cor. vi. 14. And again saith, Have no Fellowship with the unfruitful Works of Darkness, but rather reprove them, Ephes. v. 11. Again, Be not Partaker of other Men's Sins, keep thyself pure, 1 Tim. v. 22.
The Apostle speaks on this topic and asks the question: What fellowship does righteousness have with unrighteousness? 2 Cor. vi. 14. He also says, Have no fellowship with the unfruitful works of darkness, but instead expose them, Ephes. v. 11. Additionally, he states, Do not share in other people's sins; keep yourself pure, 1 Tim. v. 22.
Where People through the Power of Christ are thoroughly settled in a right Use of Things, freed from all unnecessary Care and Expence, the Mind in this true Resignation is at Liberty from the Bands of a narrow Self-Interest, to attend from Time to Time on the Movings of his Spirit upon us, though he leads into that through which our Faith is closely tried.
Where people, empowered by Christ, find stability in the proper use of things, free from unnecessary worries and expenses, the mind, in this genuine surrender, is liberated from the constraints of selfishness. This allows us to periodically tune into the guidance of His Spirit, even if it means going through experiences that test our faith.
The Language of Christ is pure, and to the Pure in Heart this pure Language is intelligible; but in the Love of Money, the Mind being intent on Gain, is too full of human Contrivance to attend to it.
The language of Christ is pure, and to those who are pure in heart, this pure language is understandable; but when one is consumed by the love of money, focused solely on profit, the mind becomes too cluttered with human scheming to grasp it.
It appeareth evident, that some Channels of Trade are defiled with Unrighteousness, that the Minds of many are intent on getting Treasures to support a Life, in which there are many unnecessary Expences.
It seems clear that some trade routes are tainted by dishonesty, and that many people are focused on acquiring wealth to maintain a lifestyle filled with unnecessary expenses.
And I feel a living Concern attend my Mind, that under[Pg 238] these Difficulties we may humbly follow our Heavenly Shepherd, who graciously regardeth his Flock, and is willing and able to supply us both inwardly and outwardly with clean Provender, that hath been winnowed with the Shovel and the Fan, where we may sow to ourselves in Righteousness, reap in Mercy, Hosea x. 12. and not be defiled with the Works of Iniquity.
And I have a strong concern in my mind that during[Pg 238] these challenges we can humbly follow our Heavenly Shepherd, who kindly watches over His flock and is willing and able to provide us both internally and externally with pure nourishment, that has been separated with the shovel and the fan, where we may sow to ourselves in righteousness, reap in mercy, Hosea x. 12, and not be tainted by the works of iniquity.
Where Customs contrary to pure Wisdom are transmitted to Posterity, it appears to be an Injury committed against them; and I often feel tender Compassion toward a young Generation, and Desires that their Difficulties may not be increased through Unfaithfulness in us of the present Age.
Where customs that go against pure wisdom are passed down to future generations, it feels like a disservice to them; I often feel a deep compassion for the younger generation and hope that their challenges aren't made worse by our unfaithfulness in this present age.
CHAPTER II
On a Sailor's LIFE
On a Sailor's Life
In the Trade to Africa for Slaves, and in the Management of Ships going on these Voyages, many of our Lads and young Men have a considerable Part of their Education.
In the trade to Africa for slaves and in managing ships on these voyages, many of our young men gain a significant part of their education.
Now what pious Father beholding his Son placed in one of these Ships, to learn the Practice of a Mariner, could forbear mourning over him?
Now what devout Father, seeing his Son put on one of these Ships to learn the ways of a Mariner, could avoid feeling sorrow for him?
Where Youth are exampled in Means of getting Money so full of Violence, and used to exercise such Cruelties on their Fellow Creatures, the Disadvantage to them in their Education is very great.
Where young people see violent ways to make money and act cruelly towards others, their education suffers significantly.
But I feel it in my Mind to write concerning the Seafaring Life in general.
But I feel compelled to write about life at sea in general.
In the Trade carried on from the West-Indies, and from some Part of the Continent, the Produce of the Labour of Slaves is a considerable Part.
In the trade conducted from the West-Indies and parts of the continent, the output of slave labor is a significant component.
And Sailors who are frequently at Ports where Slaves abound, and converse often with People who oppress without the Appearance of Remorse, and often with Sailors employ'd in the Slave Trade, how powerfully do these evil Examples spread amongst the Seafaring Youth!
And sailors who often visit ports where slaves are plentiful and frequently talk to people who oppress others without any sign of remorse, and often with sailors involved in the slave trade—how strongly do these negative examples influence the young people at sea!
I have had many Opportunities to feel and understand the general State of the Seafaring Life amongst us, and my Mind hath often been sad on Account of so many Lads and young Men been trained up amidst so great Corruption.
I’ve had many chances to feel and understand the overall state of life at sea among us, and I often feel sad about so many boys and young men being raised in such a corrupt environment.
Under the humbling Power of Christ I have seen, that if the Leadings of his Holy Spirit were faithfully attended to by his professed Followers in general, the Heathen Nations would be exampled in Righteousness. A less Number of People would be employed on the Seas. The Channels of Trade would be more free from Defilement.[Pg 240] Fewer People would be employed in Vanities and Superfluities.
Under the humbling power of Christ, I've seen that if his professed followers truly listened to the guidance of his Holy Spirit, the heathen nations would be examples of righteousness. Fewer people would be working at sea, and trade routes would be less contaminated. [Pg 240] Fewer people would be caught up in vanity and excess.
The Inhabitants of Cities would be less in Number.
The residents of cities would be fewer in number.
Those who have much Lands would become Fathers to the Poor.
Those who have a lot of land would become supporters of the less fortunate.
More People would be employed in the sweet Employment of Husbandry, and in the Path of pure Wisdom, Labour would be an agreeable, healthful Employment.
More people would be working in the fulfilling job of farming, and through the pursuit of true knowledge, work would be a pleasant and healthy profession.
In the Opening of these Things in my Mind, I feel a living Concern that we who have felt Divine Love in our Hearts may faithfully abide in it, and like good Soldiers endure Hardness for Christ's Sake.
In the beginning of these thoughts in my mind, I have a genuine concern that we who have experienced Divine Love in our hearts may stay true to it and, like good soldiers, endure challenges for Christ's sake.
He, our blessed Saviour, exhorting his Followers to love one another, adds, As I have loved you. John xiii. 34.
He, our blessed Savior, encouraging his followers to love one another, adds, As I have loved you. John xiii. 34.
He loved Lazarus, yet in his Sickness did not heal him, but left him to endure the Pains of Death, that in restoring him to Life, the People might be confirmed in the true Faith.
He loved Lazarus, yet in his sickness did not heal him, but left him to go through the pains of death, so that when he restored him to life, the people might be strengthened in the true faith.
He loved his Disciples, but sent them forth on a Message attended with great Difficulty, amongst Hard-hearted People, some of whom would think that in killing them they did God Service.
He cared for his Disciples but sent them out with a message that came with great challenges, among hardhearted people, some of whom would believe that by killing them, they were doing God's will.
So deep is Divine Love, that in stedfastly abiding in it, we are prepar'd to deny ourselves of all that Gain which is contrary to pure Wisdom, and to follow Christ, even under Contempt, and through Sufferings.
So deep is Divine Love that by steadfastly remaining in it, we are prepared to give up any gain that goes against true wisdom, and to follow Christ, even in the face of contempt and through suffering.
While Friends were kept truly humble, and walked according to the Purity of our Principles, the Divine Witness in many Hearts was reached; but when a Worldly Spirit got Entrance, therewith came in Luxuries and Superfluities, and spread by little and little, even among the foremost Rank in Society, and from thence others took Liberty in that Way more abundantly.
While Friends remained genuinely humble and lived by the purity of our principles, the Divine Witness touched many hearts; but when a worldly spirit entered, luxuries and excess came in gradually, even among the leading members of society, and from there, others felt more freedom to indulge in that lifestyle.
In the Continuation of these Things from Parents to Children, there were many Wants to supply, even Wants unknown to Friends while they faithfully followed Christ. And in striving to supply these Wants many have exacted on the Poor, many have enter'd on Employments, in which they often labour in upholding Pride and Vanity. Many have looked on one another, been strengthen'd in[Pg 241] these Things, one by the Example of another, and as to the pure Divine Seeing, Dimness hath come over many, and the Channels of true Brotherly Love been obstructed.
In passing down these issues from parents to children, there were many needs to address, even needs that friends didn't realize while they were faithfully following Christ. In trying to meet these needs, many have taken advantage of the poor, and many have pursued jobs where they often end up supporting pride and vanity. Many have looked at one another and found strength in these matters, drawing inspiration from each other's examples. However, when it comes to genuine divine understanding, many have become clouded, and the pathways of true brotherly love have been blocked.
People may have no intention to oppress, yet by entering on expensive Ways of Life, their Minds may be so entangled therein, and so engag'd to support expensive Customs, as to be estranged from the pure sympathizing Spirit.
People might not intend to oppress, but by adopting costly lifestyles, their minds can become so wrapped up in them and so committed to maintaining extravagant customs that they distance themselves from a genuine, caring spirit.
As I have travell'd in England, I have had a tender Feeling of the Condition of poor People, some of whom though honest and industrious, have nothing to spare toward paying for the Schooling of their Children.
As I've traveled in England, I've felt deep compassion for the situation of poor people, some of whom, though honest and hardworking, have nothing left to contribute toward their children's education.
There is a Proportion between Labour and the Necessaries of Life, and in true Brotherly Love the Mind is open to feel after the Necessities of the Poor.
There is a balance between work and the essentials of life, and in genuine brotherly love, the mind is receptive to understanding the needs of the less fortunate.
Amongst the Poor there are some that are weak through Age, and others of a weakly Nature, who pass through Straits in very private Life, without asking Relief from the Publick.
Among the poor, there are some who are weak due to age, and others who are naturally frail, who struggle through difficult times in their private lives without seeking help from the public.
Such who are strong and healthy may do that Business, which to the Weakly may be oppressive; and in performing that in a Day which is esteem'd a Day's Labour, by weakly Persons in the Field and in the Shops, and by weakly Women who spin and knit in the Manufactories, they often pass through Weariness; and many Sighs I believe are uttered in secret, unheard by some who might ease their Burdens.
Those who are strong and healthy can handle work that would be overwhelming for the weak. In accomplishing what is considered a day’s work—by weak individuals in the fields and shops, as well as by frail women who spin and knit in factories—they often endure exhaustion; and I believe many sighs are breathed in secret, unheard by those who could help lighten their load.
Labour in the right Medium is healthy, but in too much of it there is a painful Weariness; and the Hardships of the Poor are sometimes increased through Want of a more agreeable Nourishment, more plentiful Fewel for the Fire, and warmer Cloathing in the Winter than their Wages will answer.
Labour in the right environment is healthy, but too much of it can lead to painful exhaustion; and the struggles of the poor are sometimes made worse by lacking more enjoyable food, enough fuel for the fire, and warmer clothing in the winter than their wages can afford.
When I have beheld Plenty in some Houses to a Degree of Luxury, the Condition of poor Children brought up without Learning, and the Condition of the Weakly and Aged, who strive to live by their Labour, have often revived in my Mind, as Cases of which some who live in Fulness need to be put in Remembrance.
When I've seen abundance in some homes to the point of luxury, the situation of poor children raised without education, and the condition of the weak and elderly who struggle to make a living through hard work, often comes to my mind as something that those living in comfort need to be reminded of.
There are few, if any, could behold their Fellow[Pg 242] Creatures lie long in Distress and forbear to help them, when they could do it without any Inconvenience; but Customs requiring much Labour to support them, do often lie heavy on the Poor, while they who live in these Customs are so entangled in a Multitude of unnecessary Concerns that they think but little of the Hardships which the poor People go through.
There are few, if any, who can watch their fellow creatures suffer for a long time and not help them when they could do so easily; however, traditions that require a lot of effort to maintain often weigh heavily on the poor, while those who live by these customs get so caught up in a bunch of unnecessary issues that they hardly think about the struggles that the less fortunate endure.
CHAPTER III
On Silent Worship
During Quiet Reflection
Worship in Silence hath often been refreshing to my Mind, and a Care attends me that a young Generation may feel the Nature of this Worship.
Worshiping in silence has often refreshed my mind, and I worry that the younger generation may understand the essence of this kind of worship.
Great Expence ariseth in Relation to that which is call'd Divine Worship.
Great expenses arise in relation to what is called divine worship.
A considerable Part of this Expence is applied toward outward Greatness, and many poor People in raising of Tithe, labour in supporting Customs contrary to the Simplicity that there is in Christ, toward whom my Mind hath often been moved with Pity.
A significant portion of this expense goes toward outward appearance, and many poor people work hard to pay tithes and support customs that go against the simplicity found in Christ, for whom I often feel deep compassion.
In pure silent Worship, we dwell under the Holy Anointing, and feel Christ to be our Shepherd.
In complete silent worship, we exist under the Holy Anointing and sense Christ as our Shepherd.
Here the best of Teachers ministers to the several Conditions of his Flock, and the Soul receives immediately from the Divine Fountain, that with which it is nourished.
Here, the best of Teachers attends to the different needs of his community, and the Soul receives directly from the Divine Source what it needs to be nourished.
As I have travelled at Times where those of other Societies have attended our Meetings, and have perceiv'd how little some of them knew of the Nature of silent Worship; I have felt tender Desires in my Heart that we who often sit silent in our Meetings, may live answerable to the Nature of an inward Fellowship with God, that no Stumbling-block through us, may be laid in their Way.
As I’ve traveled to places where people from other communities have joined our gatherings, I’ve noticed how little some of them understand the essence of silent worship. I’ve felt a deep desire in my heart that we, who often sit in silence during our meetings, may live in a way that reflects a genuine inner connection with God, so that we don’t become a stumbling block in their path.
Such is the Load of unnecessary Expence which lieth on that which is called Divine Service in many Places, and so much are the Minds of many People employ'd in outward Forms and Ceremonies, that the opening of an inward silent Worship in this Nation to me hath appeared to be a precious Opening.
Such is the burden of unnecessary expenses associated with what is called Divine Service in many places, and so many people are focused on outward forms and ceremonies that the emergence of an inward silent worship in this country has struck me as a valuable opportunity.
Within the last four Hundred Years, many pious People have been deeply exercised in Soul on Account of the Superstition which prevailed amongst the professed[Pg 244] Followers of Christ, and in support of their Testimony against oppressive Idolatry, some in several Ages have finished their Course in the Flames.
Within the last four hundred years, many devout people have wrestled with their beliefs due to the superstition that existed among the self-proclaimed[Pg 244] followers of Christ. In their effort to stand against oppressive idolatry, some have even sacrificed their lives in the flames throughout various ages.
It appears by the History of the Reformation, that through the Faithfulness of the Martyrs, the Understandings of many have been opened, and the Minds of People, from Age to Age, been more and more prepared for a real spiritual Worship.
It seems from the History of the Reformation that, thanks to the dedication of the Martyrs, many people's understanding has been broadened, and the minds of individuals have become increasingly ready for genuine spiritual worship through the ages.
My Mind is often affected with a Sense of the Condition of those People who in different Ages have been meek and patient, following Christ through great Afflictions: And while I behold the several Steps, of Reformation, and that Clearness, to which through Divine Goodness, it hath been brought by our Ancestors; I feel tender Desires that we who sometimes meet in Silence, may never by our Conduct lay Stumbling-blocks in the Way of others, and hinder the Progress of the Reformation in the World.
My mind is often influenced by the condition of those people who, throughout different ages, have been humble and patient, following Christ through significant hardships. As I look at the various steps of reform and the clarity that, thanks to divine goodness, has been achieved by our ancestors, I feel a deep desire that we who sometimes come together in silence never let our actions become stumbling blocks for others and impede the progress of reform in the world.
It was a Complaint against some who were called the Lord's People, that they brought polluted Bread to his Altar, and said the Table of the Lord was contemptible.
It was a complaint against some people known as the Lord's People that they brought impure bread to his altar and claimed that the Lord's table was insignificant.
In real silent Worship the Soul feeds on that which is Divine; but we cannot partake of the Table of the Lord, and that Table which is prepared by the God of this World.
In true silent worship, the soul feeds on what is divine; yet we cannot share in the Lord's table and the table prepared by the God of this world.
If Christ is our Shepherd, and feedeth us, and we are faithful in following him, our Lives will have an inviting Language, and the Table of the Lord will not be polluted.
If Christ is our Shepherd and takes care of us, and we remain loyal in following him, our lives will speak positively, and the Lord's Table will not be desecrated.
SOME EXPRESSIONS OF JOHN WOOLMAN IN HIS LAST ILNESS.
LONDON:
Printed by Mary Hinde.
LONDON:
Printed by Mary Hinde.
SOME EXPRESSIONS, &c.
Being in the Course of his religious Visit at York, and having attended most of the Sittings of the Quarterly-Meeting there, held in the Ninth Month, 1772, he was taken ill of the Small Pox, in which Disorder he continued about two Weeks, at Times under great Affliction of Body, and then departed in full Assurance of a happy Eternity, as the following Expressions, amongst others, taken from his own Mouth, do plainly evidence.
Being on his religious visit in York, and having attended most of the sessions of the quarterly meeting there, held in September 1772, he fell ill with the smallpox. He was sick for about two weeks, sometimes experiencing great physical suffering, and then passed away with full confidence in a blessed afterlife, as the following statements, among others, clearly show.
One Day being asked how he felt himself, he meekly answered, "I don't know that I have slept this Night: I feel the Disorder making its Progress, but my Mind is mercifully preserved in Stillness and Peace." Some Time after he said, "He was sensible the Pains of Death must be hard to bear, but if he escaped them now, he must some Time pass through them, and did not know he could be better prepared, but had no Will in it." Said, "He had settled his outward Affairs to his Mind; had taken Leave of his Wife and Family, as never to return, leaving them to the Divine Protection:" Adding, "And though I feel them near to me at this Time, yet I freely give them up, having an Hope they will be provided for." And a little after said, "This Trial is made easier than I could have thought, by my Will being wholly taken away; for if I was anxious as to the Event, it would be harder, but I am not, and my Mind enjoys a perfect Calm."
One day, when he was asked how he was feeling, he humbly replied, "I don't think I've slept at all last night. I feel the disorder taking its course, but my mind is thankfully at peace and still." Some time later, he remarked, "I realize that the pain of death must be difficult to endure, but if I escape it now, I will have to go through it eventually. I’m not sure I could be better prepared, but I have no control over it." He said, "I have settled my affairs in a way that feels right to me; I’ve said goodbye to my wife and family as if I won’t return, leaving them in divine protection." He added, "Even though I can feel them close to me right now, I willingly let them go, trusting that they will be taken care of." A little later, he mentioned, "This trial is easier than I ever imagined, as my will has completely disappeared; if I was worried about the outcome, it would be harder, but I’m not, and my mind is completely calm."
In the Night a young Woman having given him something to drink, he said, "My Child, thou seemest very kind to me, a poor Creature, the Lord will reward thee for it." A while after he cried out with great Earnestness of Spirit, "Oh! my Father, my Father, how comfortable art thou to my Soul in this trying Season." Being asked if he could take a little Nourishment, after some Pause he replied, "My Child, I cannot tell what to say to it:[Pg 248] I seem nearly arrived where my Soul shall have Rest from all its Troubles." After giving in something to be put into his Journal, he said, "I believe the Lord will now excuse me from Exercises of this Kind, and I see no Work but one, which is to be the last wrought by me in this World; the Messenger will come that will release me from all these Troubles, but it must be in the Lord's Time, which I am waiting for." He said, "He had laboured to do whatever was required, according to the Ability received, in the Remembrance of which he had Peace: And though the Disorder was strong at Times, and would come over his Mind like a Whirlwind, yet it had hitherto been kept steady, and center'd in everlasting Love." Adding, "And if that's mercifully continued, I ask nor desire no more."
In the night, a young woman gave him something to drink, and he said, "My child, you seem very kind to me, a poor soul; the Lord will reward you for this." After a while, he cried out earnestly, "Oh! my Father, my Father, how comforting you are to my soul in this difficult time." When asked if he could have a little nourishment, he hesitated and replied, "My child, I don't know what to say about that: I feel like I'm nearly at a place where my soul will find rest from all its troubles." After writing something for his journal, he said, "I believe the Lord will excuse me from these kinds of activities now, and I see only one task left for me in this world; the messenger will come to free me from all these troubles, but it must be in the Lord’s time, which I'm waiting for." He mentioned, "He had worked to do whatever was needed, according to the ability given to him, and he found peace in that remembrance. And even though the disorder was strong at times, overwhelming his mind like a whirlwind, it had so far remained steady and centered in everlasting love." He added, "And if that mercy continues, I ask for nothing more."
At another Time he said, "He had long had a View of visiting this Nation; and some Time before he came, he had a Dream, in which he saw himself in the Northern Parts of it; and that the Spring of the Gospel was opened in him, much as in the Beginning of Friends, such as George Fox and William Dewsbury; and he saw the different States of People as clear as ever he had seen Flowers in a Garden; but in his going on he was suddenly stopt, though he could not see for what End, but looked towards Home, and in that fell into a Flood of Tears, which waked him." At another Time he said, "My Draught seem'd strongest to the North, and I mentioned in my own Monthly-Meeting, that attending the Quarterly-Meeting at York, and being there, looked like Home to me."
At another time, he said, "I had wanted to visit this country for a long time; and some time before I arrived, I had a dream where I saw myself in the Northern parts of it. The spring of the Gospel opened up in me, much like it did for the early Friends, like George Fox and William Dewsbury; and I could see the different states of people as clearly as I’ve seen flowers in a garden. However, as I continued on, I suddenly felt stopped, though I couldn't understand why, and I looked toward home, which made me burst into tears, waking me up." At another time, he said, "My pull felt strongest toward the North, and I mentioned in my own monthly meeting that being at the quarterly meeting in York felt like home to me."
Having repeatedly consented to take a Medicine with a View to settle his Stomach, but without Effect, the Friend then waiting on him, said, through Distress, "What shall I do now?" He answered with great Composure, "Rejoice evermore, and in every Thing give Thanks." But added a little after, "This is sometimes hard to come at."
Having agreed multiple times to take medicine to settle his stomach, but with no success, his friend, feeling distressed, asked him, "What should I do now?" He replied calmly, "Always rejoice, and be thankful in everything." But he added a bit later, "That can be tough sometimes."
One Morning early he brake forth in Supplication on this wise; "Oh Lord! it was thy Power that enabled me to forsake Sin in my Youth, and I have felt thy[Pg 249] Bruises since for Disobedience, but as I bowed under them thou healedst me; and though I have gone through many Trials and sore Afflictions, thou hast been with me, continuing a Father and a Friend. I feel thy Power now, and beg that in the approaching trying Moments, thou wilt keep my Heart steadfast unto thee." Upon his giving the same Friend Directions concerning some little Matters, she said, "I will take Care, but hope thou mayst live to order them thyself;" he replied, "My Hope is in Christ; and though I may now seem a little better, a Change in the Disorder may soon happen, and my little Strength be dissolved, and if it so happen, I shall be gather'd to my everlasting Rest." On her saying, "She did not doubt that, but could not help mourning to see so many faithful Servants removed at so low a Time," he said, "All Goodness cometh from the Lord, whose Power is the same, and he can work as he sees best." The same Day, after giving her Directions about wrapping his Corpse, and perceiving her to weep, he said, "I had rather thou wouldst guard against Weeping or Sorrowing for me, my Sister; I sorrow not, though I have had some painful Conflicts; but now they seem over, and Matters all settled, and I look at the Face of my dear Redeemer, for sweet is his Voice, and his Countenance comely."
One early morning, he burst into prayer, saying, "Oh Lord! It was your power that enabled me to turn away from sin in my youth, and I have felt your[Pg 249] bruises since for my disobedience, but as I endured them, you healed me. Although I've gone through many trials and severe afflictions, you have been with me, remaining both a Father and a Friend. I feel your power now, and I ask that in the upcoming challenging moments, you will keep my heart steadfast toward you." After he gave the same friend instructions regarding some small matters, she said, "I will take care, but I hope you will live to manage them yourself;" he replied, "My hope is in Christ; even though I may seem a little better now, a change in my condition may happen soon, and my little strength could fade, and if that happens, I shall be gathered to my everlasting rest." When she said, "I have no doubt about that, but I can't help mourning to see so many faithful servants taken away at such a low time," he said, "All goodness comes from the Lord, whose power is the same, and he can act as he sees fit." That same day, after giving her instructions about preparing his body, and seeing her weep, he said, "I would prefer you guard against weeping or mourning for me, my sister; I do not grieve, even though I have had some painful struggles; but now they seem to be over, everything is settled, and I look at the face of my dear Redeemer, for his voice is sweet, and his appearance is lovely."
Being very weak, and in general difficult to be understood, he uttered a few Words in Commemoration of the Lord's Goodness to him; and added, "How tenderly have I been waited upon in this Time of Affliction, in which I may say in Job's Words, Tedious Days and wearisome Nights are appointed unto me; and how many are spending their Time and Money in Vanity and Superfluities, while Thousands and Tens of Thousands want the Necessaries of Life, who might be relieved by them, and their Distresses at such a Time as this, in some degree softened by the administring of suitable Things."
Being very weak and generally hard to understand, he spoke a few words in appreciation of the Lord's goodness to him, and added, "How tenderly I have been cared for during this time of suffering, in which I can echo Job's words, 'I have tedious days and wearisome nights ahead of me'; and how many are wasting their time and money on trivial things while thousands and thousands lack the basic necessities of life, which could be provided by them, easing their distress a bit during such a time as this."
An Apothecary who attended him of his own Accord (he being unwilling to have any sent for) appeared very anxious to assist him, with whom conversing, he queried about the Probability of such a Load of Matter being thrown off his weak Body, and the Apothecary making[Pg 250] some Remarks, implying he thought it might, he spoke with an audible Voice on this wise: "My Dependance is in the Lord Jesus Christ, who I trust will forgive my Sins, which is all I hope for; and if it be his Will to raise up this Body again, I am content, and if to die I am resigned: And if thou canst not be easy without trying to assist Nature, in order to lengthen out my Life, I submit." After this, his Throat was so much affected, that it was very difficult for him to speak so as to be understood, and he frequently wrote when he wanted any Thing. About the second Hour on Fourth-day Morning, being the 7th of the Tenth Month, 1772, he asked for Pen and Ink, and at several Times, with much Difficulty, wrote thus: "I believe my being here is in the Wisdom of Christ; I know not as to Life or Death." About a Quarter before Six the same Morning, he seemed to fall into an easy Sleep, which continued about half an Hour, when seeming to awake, he breathed a few Times with more Difficulty, and so expired without Sigh, Groan, or Struggle.
An apothecary who came to see him of his own accord (he didn't want anyone to be sent for) was very eager to help him. While they talked, he asked about the chances of such a heavy burden being released from his weak body. The apothecary made[Pg 250] some comments, suggesting he thought it was possible. He then said clearly: "My trust is in the Lord Jesus Christ, and I hope he will forgive my sins, which is all I can ask for. If it is His will to raise this body again, I accept that, and if it is to die, I am okay with that as well. And if you feel you cannot be at ease without trying to help nature to prolong my life, I accept that too." After this, his throat was so affected that it was very hard for him to speak understandably, and he often wrote when he needed something. Around 10 AM on Wednesday morning, the 7th of October, 1772, he asked for pen and ink, and at various times, with much difficulty, wrote: "I believe my being here is part of Christ's wisdom; I do not know whether it is life or death." About a quarter before six that same morning, he seemed to drift into a peaceful sleep that lasted about half an hour. When he appeared to wake up, he breathed a few times with more difficulty, and then he passed away without a sigh, groan, or struggle.
Note, He often said, "It was hid from him, whether he might recover, or not, and he was not desirous to know it; but from his own Feeling of the Disorder, and his feeble Constitution, thought he should not."
Note, He often said, "He didn’t know if he would recover or not, and he didn’t really want to find out; but based on how he felt and his weak health, he thought he probably wouldn’t."
FINIS
FINIS
THE TEMPLE PRESS, PRINTERS, LETCHWORTH
THE TEMPLE PRESS, PRINTING, LETCHWORTH

Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!